Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n life_n world_n write_v 4,962 5 5.8081 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A12701 An ansvvere to Master Iohn De Albines, notable discourse against heresies (as his frendes call his booke) compiled by Thomas Spark pastor of Blechley in the county of Buck Sparke, Thomas, 1548-1616.; Albin de Valsergues, Jean d', d. 1566. Marques de la vraye église catholique. English. 1591 (1591) STC 23019; ESTC S117703 494,957 544

There are 63 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

word_n well_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o count_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n straight_o as_o well_o in_o respect_n of_o religion_n as_o life_n and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o usual_a with_o david_n then_o indifferent_o without_o any_o such_o nice_a distinction_n to_o use_v these_o word_n way_n and_o path_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o you_o may_v easy_o perceive_v if_o you_o be_v any_o thing_n conversant_a in_o his_o psalm_n look_v upon_o christ_n time_n whereunto_o he_o have_v a_o especial_a eye_n when_o he_o use_v these_o word_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o true_a religion_n be_v a_o thing_n more_o geyson_n and_o rare_a then_o in_o the_o world_n and_o have_v few_o follower_n then_o a_o holy_a and_o a_o virtuous_a life_n for_o even_o many_o of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o philosopher_n make_v great_a show_n of_o that_o &_o that_o therefore_o to_o lead_v we_o rather_o to_o think_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o religion_n than_o manner_n he_o have_v utter_v those_o word_n immediate_o thereupon_o he_o add_v beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n and_o as_o for_o david_n if_o your_o argument_n be_v ground_v upon_o that_o that_o he_o place_v the_o word_n way_n in_o the_o first_o place_n and_o path_n in_o the_o late_a if_o you_o mark_v he_o well_o you_o shall_v oftentimes_o find_v he_o to_o invert_v that_o order_n in_o the_o psalm_n and_o psalm_n 109._o because_o you_o shall_v plain_o see_v that_o he_o refer_v way_n as_o well_o to_o manner_n as_o to_o religion_n he_o say_v take_v from_o i_o the_o way_n of_o lie_v and_o teach_v i_o the_o way_n of_o thy_o statute_n and_o consider_v that_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o idolatry_n and_o paganism_n in_o christ_n time_n be_v more_o common_a than_o christ_n religion_n &_o therefore_o have_v 10000_o that_o take_v it_o for_o true_a religion_n in_o comparison_n of_o one_o that_o take_v christ_n so_n i_o wonder_v that_o you_o ever_o dare_v thus_o expound_v christ_n word_n for_o by_o your_o exposition_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o they_o to_o embrace_v paganism_n than_o his_o religion_n for_o that_o be_v the_o common_a beat_a way_n and_o his_o be_v but_o a_o small_a bie-path_n again_o in_o liberius_n his_o time_n when_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o find_v one_o true_a catholic_a for_o a_o 100_o arrian_n insomuch_o that_o constantine_n say_v unto_o liberius_n that_o he_o alone_o favour_v athanasius_n theodor._n eccles_n hist_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 16._o by_o your_o rule_n liberius_n do_v well_o in_o that_o see_v arrianisme_n to_o be_v the_o common_a way_n and_o his_o ancient_a religion_n that_o then_o be_v but_o as_o a_o bie-path_n wherein_o few_o walk_v that_o he_o yield_v his_o subscription_n to_o arrianisme_n indeed_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o this_o pope_n liberius_n be_v of_o your_o mind_n &_o so_o long_v you_o care_v not_o i_o be_o sure_a as_o that_o you_o may_v have_v a_o pope_n on_o your_o side_n well_o yet_o if_o you_o have_v but_o remember_v that_o the_o turkish_a religion_n be_v at_o this_o day_n &_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n common_a to_o more_o than_o your_o own_o religion_n be_v or_o ever_o be_v it_o may_v have_v stay_v you_o from_o teach_v man_n to_o measure_v religion_n by_o the_o commonne_n of_o it_o or_o multitude_n of_o follower_n lest_o you_o shall_v have_v so_o persuade_v they_o to_o turkism_n but_o it_o may_v be_v you_o have_v rather_o have_v it_o so_o see_v in_o comparison_n thereof_o we_o be_v but_o a_o narrow_a path_n wherein_o few_o do_v walk_v then_o that_o they_o shall_v follow_v us._n if_o your_o skill_n in_o interpret_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o in_o prescribe_v rule_n for_o the_o direction_n of_o man_n be_v no_o better_o than_o you_o have_v show_v in_o this_o you_o may_v very_o well_o be_v a_o doctor_n and_o great_a master_n in_o your_o blind_a and_o ignorant_a kingdom_n of_o popery_n but_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v little_a hope_n that_o there_o will_v ever_o any_o great_a reckon_n be_v make_v of_o you_o the_o xli_o chapter_n now_o to_o turn_v to_o the_o partition_n that_o we_o have_v upon_o the_o 34._o and_o 37._o of_o ezechiel_n and_o upon_o the_o ten_o of_o john_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o we_o be_v the_o flock_n of_o weak_a and_o sickelie_o sheep_n and_o your_o disciple_n be_v the_o sheep_n that_o run_v this_o way_n and_o that_o way_n astray_o those_o that_o be_v our_o they_o our_o howsoever_o that_o title_n be_v due_a unto_o they_o they_o take_v it_o not_o unto_o they_o ill_a prelate_n take_v upon_o they_o the_o title_n of_o mercenarii_fw-la pastoris_fw-la but_o unto_o your_o minister_n the_o title_n of_o devour_a wolf_n may_v be_v apply_v conscience_n apply_v only_o of_o such_o as_o have_v make_v shipwreck_n of_o conscience_n without_o any_o scrupulositie_n of_o conscience_n for_o you_o watch_v to_o none_o other_o intent_n but_o to_o make_v the_o sheep_n run_v out_o of_o the_o fold_n and_o to_o devour_v they_o because_o that_o our_o pastor_n have_v not_o take_v care_n to_o keep_v they_o and_o although_o they_o be_v not_o excusable_a aswell_o for_o their_o silence_n as_o for_o their_o naughty_a life_n i_o see_v not_o your_o patriarch_n &_o zealous_a manifester_n amend_v much_o themselves_o the_o fault_n that_o they_o find_v in_o we_o for_o beside_o the_o true_a and_o certain_a experience_n that_o we_o have_v have_v by_o the_o trial_n that_o we_o have_v see_v to_o our_o cost_n in_o this_o realm_n within_o these_o five_o or_o six_o year_n lie_n year_n pen_v then_o by_o such_o that_o have_v teach_v their_o pen_n to_o write_v lie_n i_o have_v read_v full_a many_o a_o golden_a legend_n of_o your_o sacred_a martyr_n and_o holy_a bishop_n which_o do_v not_o altogether_o redound_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o your_o pretend_a reform_a church_n and_o among_o other_o theodore_n de_fw-fr beza_n caluins_n successor_n in_o the_o pontificate_n seat_n of_o the_o holy_a city_n of_o geneva_n of_o who_o such_o thing_n be_v preach_v abroad_o that_o if_o the_o one_o half_a of_o they_o be_v true_a ourselves_o true_a neither_o will_v ●e_v nor_o any_o of_o we_o so_o compare_v ourselves_o he_o be_v scant_o so_o good_a a_o man_n as_o s._n john_n baptist_n and_o because_o i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o to_o mislike_v they_o for_o their_o religion_n i_o will_v not_o allege_v to_o verify_v this_o any_o catholic_n author_n but_o soon_o of_o luther_n successor_n your_o first_o founder_n who_o teach_v you_o to_o write_v so_o learned_o i_o will_v say_v rail_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n tilemanus_fw-la heshusius_fw-la a_o minister_n of_o the_o lutheran_n in_o the_o latin_n the_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrif_n write_v in_o latin_n book_n that_o i_o have_v already_o note_v do_v open_o accuse_v the_o say_v beza_n of_o great_a infamy_n that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o content_v he_o content_v heat_v of_o contention_n make_v the_o man_n too_o credulous_a and_o so_o believe_v your_o malicious_a parasite_n that_o most_o impudent_o and_o false_o have_v forge_v these_o thing_n of_o he_o the_o fancy_n of_o his_o mind_n with_o lead_v a_o luxurious_a &_o a_o licentious_a life_n &_o to_o stain_v his_o vow_n with_o a_o bilt_n of_o adulterous_a love_n but_o that_o that_o be_v worse_a he_o himself_o have_v set_v forth_o in_o write_v all_o his_o lascivious_a act_n the_o which_o say_v he_o we_o he_o his_o lascivious_a song_n and_o epigram_n he_o make_v and_o publish_v while_o he_o be_v you_o whereof_o he_o have_v public_o in_o print_n testify_v his_o repentance_n &_o mislike_n since_o he_o be_v we_o he_o have_v song_n in_o sacrilegerime_n to_o the_o instrument_n to_o manifest_v his_o sin_n to_o the_o whole_a sight_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o that_o very_a book_n he_o do_v say_v that_o beza_n who_o as_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o holy_a city_n of_o geneva_n be_v a_o infamous_a monster_n who_o naughty_a life_n any_o man_n may_v read_v set_v forth_o by_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o epigram_n and_o notwithstanding_o say_v he_o to_o hear_v he_o speak_v you_o will_v think_v he_o be_v saint_n john_n baptist_n for_o he_o can_v talk_v of_o nothing_o but_o of_o his_o holy_a life_n this_o same_o very_a minister_n in_o the_o book_n where_o he_o write_v these_o thing_n he_o do_v lie_v to_o slander_n to_o the_o more_o shame_n for_o he_o for_o it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a and_o notorious_a slander_n bezaes_n charge_n that_o he_o take_v with_o he_o to_o geneva_n another_o man_n wife_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o her_o husband_n who_o name_n be_v candida_n neither_o candida_n will_v a_o argument_n from_o one_o to_o all_o follow_v with_o papist_n and_o yet_o this_o one_o not_o prove_v such_o a_o one_o neither_o
mean_n to_o preach_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o i_o tell_v you_o true_o that_o i_o can_v marvel_v yet_o sufficient_o that_o any_o man_n of_o any_o reason_n judgement_n and_o learning_n as_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v shall_v be_v so_o far_o past_o all_o shame_n as_o confident_o to_o set_v down_o in_o print_n that_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o luther_n 1517._o begin_n first_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n &_o that_o we_o can_v name_v none_o 100_o or_o 200._o year_n before_o that_o teach_v it_o when_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a unless_o your_o ignorance_n be_v very_o gross_a that_o we_o name_n unto_o you_o very_o many_o and_o that_o in_o all_o age_n to_o have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o church_n that_o we_o be_v now_o of_o for_o first_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o usual_a with_o we_o then_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o all_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n prophet_n evangelist_n and_o apostle_n witness_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n live_v and_o die_v in_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n the_o same_o opinion_n we_o tell_v you_o we_o have_v of_o all_o the_o christian_a martyr_n who_o number_n be_v infinite_a that_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n under_o the_o 10._o bloody_a persecution_n that_o be_v in_o that_o time_n for_o during_o that_o time_n our_o religion_n be_v only_o profess_v and_o embrace_v in_o the_o church_n and_o very_o little_a or_o nothing_o be_v there_o of_o those_o opinion_n for_o the_o which_o especial_o we_o account_v your_o religion_n antichristian_a unless_o it_o be_v of_o heretic_n and_o such_o as_o have_v learn_v it_o of_o they_o in_o those_o day_n once_o think_v of_o and_o after_o for_o three_o hundred_o year_n more_o at_o least_o in_o all_o the_o most_o substantial_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o great_a question_n betwixt_o we_o and_o you_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o the_o christian_n that_o live_v in_o their_o time_n as_o we_o have_v diverse_a time_n say_v so_o have_v we_o often_o so_o prove_v it_o that_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a therein_o to_o disprove_v we_o be_v full_o we_o and_o though_o after_o these_o time_n when_o boniface_n the_o three_o have_v once_o obtain_v of_o that_o traitorous_a murderer_n phocas_n the_o antichristian_a title_n of_o ecumenical_a or_o universal_a bishop_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v every_o day_n work_v more_o plain_o than_o other_o &_o haste_v to_o his_o height_n yet_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o publisher_n preface_n and_o in_o the_o sixteenth_o chapter_n of_o this_o my_o answer_n to_o yourself_o where_o you_o brag_v again_o as_o you_o do_v here_o of_o 1500._o year_n antiquity_n and_o continuance_n there_o be_v after_o these_o time_n from_o time_n to_o time_n that_o both_o spy_v the_o growth_n and_o proceed_n thereof_o and_o set_v themselves_o against_o it_o for_o bertram_n &_o johannes_n scotus_n be_v with_o we_o against_o your_o gross_a real_a presence_n above_o 700._o year_n ago_o trithemius_n make_v mention_n of_o a_o book_n write_v 400._o year_n ago_o which_o be_v suppose_v be_v write_v by_o one_o arnulphus_n for_o as_o sabellicus_n and_o platina_n testify_v much_o about_o that_o time_n be_v he_o put_v to_o death_n of_o the_o romish_a clergy_n in_o which_o book_n the_o author_n grievous_o complain_v of_o the_o enormity_n among_o the_o say_v clergy_n and_o find_v many_o fault_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n gisburne_n also_o in_o his_o story_n write_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1158._o dulcinus_n navarensis_n and_o gerrhardus_fw-la preach_v earnest_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o they_o have_v thirty_o follower_n who_o they_o bring_v into_o england_n who_o be_v persecute_v then_o here_o for_o preach_v that_o and_o other_o such_o like_a doctrine_n against_o the_o romish_a church_n much_o about_o this_o time_n but_o somewhat_o rather_o before_o a_o company_n of_o christian_n who_o by_o your_o prelate_n be_v nickenamed_a albigenses_n do_v flourish_v and_o there_o be_v great_a multitude_n of_o they_o even_o about_o tholossa_n whereof_o you_o master_n albine_n be_v call_v archdeacon_n who_o do_v vehement_o resist_v your_o pope_n and_o his_o proceed_n set_v up_o unto_o themselves_o a_o bishop_n who_o they_o call_v bartholomew_n oppugn_v the_o gross_a point_n of_o your_o religion_n even_o as_o we_o do_v witness_n nicolas_n trivet_n and_o other_o in_o their_o story_n hildegarde_n though_o she_o be_v a_o nun_n yet_o in_o the_o year_n 1146._o prophesy_v the_o ruin_n of_o your_o kingdom_n at_o rome_n and_o bitter_o inveigh_v against_o the_o wickedness_n of_o your_o clergy_n and_o friar_n so_o do_v geoffrey_n chaucer_n about_o the_o same_o time_n namely_o in_o his_o dialogue_n call_v jacke_n vpland_n very_o salt_o taunt_v and_o deride_v the_o vanity_n of_o your_o frierly_a superstition_n in_o the_o year_n 1164._o be_v petrus_n valdus_n a_o citizen_n of_o lion_n who_o follower_n after_o have_v give_v they_o diverse_a name_n to_o disgrace_v they_o withal_o for_o your_o friend_n call_v they_o waldenses_n albigense_n pauperes_fw-la de_fw-fr lugduno_n picardo_n boslavienses_n thaboritas_fw-la and_o leonistas_n change_v their_o title_n and_o name_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o place_n and_o time_n they_o live_v in_o howsoever_o their_o religion_n be_v all_o one_o and_o these_o have_v be_v of_o ancient_a time_n and_o of_o great_a continuance_n in_o very_a many_o place_n namely_o in_o province_n sarmatia_n lyvonia_n bohemia_n moravia_n polonia_n silesia_n belgia_n and_o in_o calabria_n and_o of_o you_o wheresoever_o or_o whensoever_o they_o be_v they_o have_v be_v cruel_o persecute_v for_o heretic_n and_o yet_o if_o their_o opinion_n be_v judge_v of_o not_o as_o you_o the_o more_o to_o disgrace_v they_o have_v charge_v they_o but_o as_o they_o in_o their_o own_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o apology_n have_v set_v they_o down_o they_o in_o many_o thing_n hold_v the_o very_a same_o that_o we_o do_v and_o condemn_v the_o same_o for_o error_n in_o you_o that_o we_o now_o do_v they_o be_v of_o 400._o year_n continuance_n at_o least_o for_o aeneas_n silvius_n a_o man_n of_o your_o own_o for_o he_o be_v pope_n ere_o he_o die_v write_v handle_v the_o story_n of_o boeme_n that_o they_o have_v continue_v unto_o his_o time_n from_o the_o year_n 1160._o and_o gulielmus_fw-la paruus_fw-la write_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v examine_v in_o oxford_n and_o find_v sound_n concern_v god_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n for_o your_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o iorn_v of_o our_o own_o merit_n with_o christ_n to_o make_v up_o full_a satisfaction_n and_o redemption_n be_v of_o far_o late_a invention_n and_o their_o life_n say_v he_o be_v commendable_a but_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o be_v find_v to_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yea_o reinerus_n a_o writer_n 300._o year_n ago_o who_o as_o he_o himself_o say_v be_v often_o at_o the_o examination_n of_o they_o in_o his_o book_n of_o inquisition_n write_v of_o they_o calling_z they_o leonist_n confess_v that_o some_o say_v they_o have_v continue_v from_o syluester_n time_n and_o that_o some_o say_v they_o have_v be_v even_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o he_o further_o report_n that_o they_o have_v great_a show_n of_o holy_a life_n in_o live_v just_o before_o man_n and_o that_o they_o believe_v all_o thing_n well_o of_o god_n and_o all_o the_o article_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n only_o he_o charge_v they_o that_o they_o hate_v &_o blaspheme_v the_o romish_a church_n and_o this_o he_o further_o write_v that_o there_o be_v no_o land_n wherein_o that_o sect_n do_v not_o creep_v &_o speak_v but_o of_o they_o that_o be_v they_o but_o in_o one_o country_n yet_o this_o he_o testify_v that_o they_o have_v there_o ten_o school_n in_o one_o parish_n call_v camach_n that_o there_o be_v forty_o congregation_n or_o church_n of_o they_o every_o one_o have_v their_o leader_n or_o teacher_n and_o that_o their_o power_n in_o his_o time_n be_v such_o that_o none_o as_o he_o say_v dare_v then_o open_o resist_v they_o there_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v see_v as_o good_a author_n report_n the_o consultation_n and_o record_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o four_o great_a bishop_n in_o france_n against_o they_o write_v three_o hundred_o year_n ago_o namely_o of_o narbonensis_n arelatensis_fw-la aquensis_n and_o albanensis_fw-la yea_o 355._o year_n ago_o i_o read_v there_o be_v a_o council_n keep_v in_o tholossa_n especial_o against_o they_o and_o yet_o though_o both_o of_o ancient_a time_n and_o late_a day_n the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n have_v seek_v to_o root_v they_o out_o by_o all_o possible_a cruelty_n they_o and_o their_o successor_n continue_v unto_o this_o day_n in_o great_a number_n in_o bohemia_n and_o in_o other_o place_n but_o because_o you_o very_o
needs_o be_v a_o monstrous_a misshape_a thing_n in_o join_v the_o christian_n of_o these_o late_a day_n with_o the_o apostle_n without_o any_o betwixt_o and_o fos●●ating_v as_o it_o be_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o body_n hard_o to_o the_o ear_n without_o any_o other_o member_n betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o thus_o have_v frame_v this_o merry_a conceit_n in_o your_o own_o head_n you_o call_v upon_o your_o friend_n to_o laugh_v at_o it_o with_o you_o and_o so_o you_o proceed_v in_o tell_v we_o that_o while_o we_o take_v this_o course_n we_o fly_v without_o wing_n and_o climb_v without_o a_o ladder_n and_o despise_v the_o counsel_n of_o solomon_n which_o after_o your_o manner_n you_o interpret_v that_o we_o shall_v reckon_v by_o succession_n the_o pastor_n that_o have_v succeed_v in_o continuance_n of_o one_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o which_o you_o say_v you_o have_v show_v you_o have_v do_v to_o what_o purpose_n now_o be_v all_o this_o see_v in_o truth_n neither_o we_o do_v thus_o cut_v of_o all_o christian_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o neither_o have_v you_o show_v any_o such_o succession_n of_o pastor_n down_o from_o they_o to_o you_o continue_v in_o your_o doctrine_n true_o to_o no_o other_o purpose_n can_v they_o serve_v but_o to_o express_v your_o own_o ridiculous_a vanity_n howbeit_o because_o you_o call_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n for_o the_o name_n of_o those_o that_o have_v catch_v we_o to_o deny_v your_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o upon_o a_o conceit_n in_o your_o own_o fancy_n that_o you_o have_v pose_v we_o you_o have_v grow_v to_o be_v thus_o full_a of_o these_o swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n and_o because_o i_o fear_v neither_o you_o nor_o many_o of_o your_o disciple_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o peruse_v those_o book_n that_o i_o send_v you_o unto_o for_o answer_v in_o that_o point_n &_o yet_o have_v hope_n that_o for_o your_o sake_n some_o of_o you_o may_v chance_n vouchsafe_v to_o read_v this_o i_o will_v not_o stick_v with_o you_o particular_o to_o satisfy_v your_o request_n a_o little_a further_o first_o therefore_o understand_v that_o we_o have_v learn_v to_o deny_v your_o kind_n of_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n himself_o the_o institutour_n of_o this_o sacrament_n because_o he_o have_v flat_o and_o vehement_o affirm_v without_o exception_n john_n 6.54_o that_o whosoever_o eat_v his_o flesh_n &_o drink_v his_o blood_n have_v eternal_a life_n whereas_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o your_o doctrine_n it_o follow_v because_o all_o that_o receive_v this_o sacrament_n have_v not_o faith_n but_o many_o lack_v it_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v eat_v of_o many_o that_o shall_v be_v never_n the_o better_a by_o it_o but_o the_o worse_o we_o have_v also_o further_o learn_v it_o of_o he_o in_o that_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n speak_v of_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o body_n &_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n he_o draw_v his_o hearer_n from_o a_o gross_a conceit_n of_o eat_v &_o drink_v he_o by_o their_o bodily_a mouth_n by_o use_v of_o the_o word_n believe_v in_o stead_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v ver_fw-la 40.47_o and_o cap._n 7.38_o by_o mention_v unto_o they_o his_o ascension_n john_n 6.62_o &_o latt_o by_o say_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spirit_n &_o life_n ver_fw-la 63._o this_o final_o we_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o say_v if_o any_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o lo_o here_o be_v christ_n there_o be_v christ_n believe_v it_o not_o math._n 24.23_o &_o by_o his_o continue_v at_o the_o table_n when_o he_o first_o institute_v and_o minister_v it_o unto_o his_o apostle_n without_o alteration_n either_o of_o his_o place_n or_o form_n mat._n 26._o mar._n 12._o luke_n 22.1_o cor._n 11._o the_o apostle_n &_o evamgelist_n have_v also_o teach_v we_o to_o deny_v it_o in_o that_o they_o teach_v we_o that_o he_o visible_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n &_o that_o he_o shall_v so_o also_o come_v again_o when_o he_o come_v from_o thence_o etc._n etc._n act._n 1.11_o especial_o see_v his_o come_n to_o judgement_n be_v call_v his_o second_o come_v heb_fw-mi 9.28_o and_o until_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v say_v by_o peter_n the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o act._n 3.21_o the_o euamgelist_n in_o lay_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o story_n of_o his_o nativity_n life_n &_o death_n so_o prove_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o be_v &_o be_v a_o true_a and_o perfect_a man_n encourage_v we_o also_o lest_o we_o shall_v with_o the_o marcionite_n &_o other_o heretic_n deny_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o manhood_n contant_o to_o ●●●y_v your_o real_a presence_n for_o the_o maintenance_n whereof_o you_o be_v drive_v to_o fancy_n a_o number_n of_o thing_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n &_o truth_n of_o his_o manhood_n and_o last_o in_o that_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n command_v that_o to_o be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o luke_n 22.19_o 1._o cor._n 11.24_o &_o there_o paul_n say_v v._n 26._o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n &_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v which_o word_n plain_o argu_n that_o though_o the_o sacrament_n be_v both_o right_o ministress_n receive_v yet_o it_o infer_v not_o any_o such_o real_a presence_n as_o you_o their_o imag●●_n now_o betwixt_o they_o &_o we_o we_o find_v infinite_a place_n in_o writer_n of_o all_o age_n that_o teach_v we_o still_o to_o deny_v your_o real_a presence_n but_o among_o many_o mark_v these_o for_o example_n tertullian_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n against_o martion_n interprete_v these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la thus_o that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n augustine_n against_o adamantus_fw-la the_o manichee_n c._n 12._o write_v that_o christ_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n &_o upon_o the_o 3_o ps_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n admit_v judas_n to_o a_o banquet_n where_o he_o commend_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n to_o his_o disciple_n &_o upon_o the_o 98._o ps_n he_o say_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n that_o you_o see_v neither_o shall_v you_o drink_v that_o blood_n which_o they_o shall_v shed_v that_o crucify_v i_o i_o have_v commend_v unto_o you_o a_o certain_a sacrament_n it_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v will_v give_v you_o life_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n therefore_o of_o christian_a doctrine_n he_o write_v thus_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n seem_v to_o command_v a_o heinous_a thing_n &_o a_o wicked_a therefore_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n command_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n passion_n keep_v in_o our_o mind_n to_o our_o great_a profit_n &_o comfort_n that_o his_o flesh_n be_v crucify_v &_o wound_v for_o us._n c._n 16._o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o miserable_a slavery_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o take_v the_o sign_n for_o the_o thing_n signify_v in_o the_o same_o book_n c._n 5._o and_o therefore_o in_o his_o 23._o epistle_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o similitude_n betwixt_o the_o sign_n &_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o one_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o other_o in_o sacrament_n &_o in_o his_o 57_o question_n upon_o levitic_a he_o give_v we_o this_o rule_n the_o thing_n that_o signify_v be_v wont_a to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o signify_v as_o paul_n say_v the_o rock_n be_v christ_n &_o not_o it_o signify_v christ_n but_o even_o as_o it_o have_v be_v indeed_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o christ_n by_o substance_n but_o by_o signification_n so_o that_o his_o usual_a doctrine_n be_v to_o teach_v we_o in_o this_o sacrament_n to_o seek_v christ_n in_o heaven_n by_o faith_n &_o thereby_o to_o make_v he_o present_a which_o otherwise_v be_v absent_a as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o his_o 50._o tract_n upon_o john_n &_o else_o where_o very_a often_o and_o with_o augustine_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n consent_n in_o this_o matter_n &_o therefore_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a with_o they_o then_o to_o call_v the_o outward_a part_n in_o this_o sacrament_n a_o sign_n figure_n similitude_n resemblance_n or_o representation_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o these_o place_n chrysostom_n in_o his_o 83._o homil_n upon_o mat._n hierom_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n against_o jovinian_a ambr._n in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n c._n 5._o basil_n in_o his_o lyturgy_n ephr_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n against_o the_o impugner_n of_o christ_n manhood_n by_o humane_a reason_n and_o origen_n upon_o levit_fw-la hom_n 7._o teach_v we_o that_o the_o letter_n
not_o think_v that_o he_o himself_o not_o only_a might_n but_o have_v err_v will_v he_o ever_o have_v write_v as_o he_o do_v a_o book_n of_o retraction_n or_o recantation_n and_o indeed_o in_o his_o 2_o book_n &_o 4._o chap._n ad_fw-la bonifacium_fw-la &_o against_o that_o 2._o epist_n of_o the_o pelagian_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o of_o necessity_n child_n be_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n or_o else_o they_o can_v not_o be_v save_v because_o it_o be_v write_v joh._n 6._o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n &_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o and_o pope_n innocent_a and_o many_o of_o the_o father_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n then_o and_o yet_o i_o think_v now_o yourselves_o hold_v this_o to_o be_v a_o error_n aswell_o as_o we_o and_o who_o will_v read_v his_o four_o book_n de_fw-fr animâ_fw-la &_o eius_fw-la origine_fw-la ad_fw-la vincentium_fw-la and_o his_o prologue_n to_o his_o retraction_n he_o shall_v there_o plain_o find_v he_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o his_o word_n worthy_o to_o be_v find_v fault_n withal_o which_o he_o crave_v that_o his_o reader_n will_v not_o cleave_v unto_o in_o any_o case_n but_o rather_o pardon_v and_o follow_v he_o non_fw-la errantem_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o melius_fw-la proficientem_fw-la not_o err_v but_o better_o profit_v yea_o in_o the_o late_a place_n he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o arrogate_v that_o perfection_n to_o himself_o then_o be_v old_a much_o less_o when_o he_o be_v young_a not_o to_o err_v and_o i_o think_v that_o you_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o irenaeus_n and_o papias_n be_v plain_a millenaries_n and_o that_o cyprian_a &_o a_o number_n of_o bishop_n in_o his_o time_n in_o africa_n hold_v in_o council_n decree_v that_o rebaptisation_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n which_o both_o you_o and_o we_o count_v error_n notwithstanding_o now_o why_o therefore_o especial_o when_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o counsel_n or_o man_n be_v urge_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o truth_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n may_v we_o not_o say_v that_o which_o be_v true_a that_o they_o both_o might_n &_o have_v err_v and_o thus_o you_o have_v your_o answer_n first_o general_o to_o your_o principal_a scope_n in_o these_o 4._o or_o 5._o last_o chapter_n set_v down_o together_o because_o the_o drift_n of_o they_o be_v but_o all_o one_o and_o now_o also_o a_o further_a answer_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o word_n therein_o here_o and_o there_o scatter_v but_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o quite_o do_v with_o this_o matter_n let_v we_o therefore_o further_o follow_v you_o to_o see_v if_o you_o have_v say_v any_o more_o to_o the_o purpose_n in_o that_o which_o be_v behind_o then_o in_o that_o which_o we_o have_v hear_v already_o the_o xxvii_o chapter_n i_o pray_v sir_n since_o you_o be_v so_o absolute_a answer_v i_o to_o this_o objection_n so_o objection_n a_o vain_a question_n for_o whoever_o of_o we_o either_o say_v or_o write_v so_o be_v it_o good_a to_o believe_v almane_a of_o people_n that_o do_v allege_v the_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o you_o say_v yea_o why_o do_v not_o you_o believe_v the_o above_o name_v valentinus_n apollinaris_n hebion_n cherintus_fw-la and_o nestorius_n with_o diverse_a other_o that_o have_v seek_v to_o maintain_v their_o error_n with_o the_o new_a &_o old_a testament_n if_o you_o say_v no_o but_o that_o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o s._n john_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n cap._n 4._o the_o which_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v every_o spirit_n but_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o prove_v whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o church_n no_o our_o proof_n be_v that_o our_o sen●e_n wherein_o we_o allege_v they_o stand_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a manner_n &_o receive_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o ancient_a time_n and_o from_o time_n to_o time_n among_o the_o sound_a teacher_n in_o the_o church_n what_o proof_n will_v you_o show_v we_o of_o you_o show_v the_o privilege_n that_o you_o have_v by_o the_o which_o god_n die_v enjoin_v we_o to_o believe_v your_o gospel_n rather_o the_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o pelagian_n novatians_n nestorian_n and_o other_o such_o false_a apostle_n consider_v that_o they_o have_v allege_v the_o scripture_n aswell_o as_o you_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o be_v heretic_n abuser_n of_o the_o people_n and_o ravish_a wolf_n clothe_v in_o lamb_n skin_n and_o false_a interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n all_o this_o be_v certain_a so_o certain_a the_o more_o have_v they_o to_o answer_v for_o that_o report_n so_o for_o they_o can_v never_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v so_o but_o what_o though_o the_o like_a report_n go_v of_o you_o you_o say_v that_o you_o be_v send_v from_o cod_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n they_o say_v as_o much_o antichrist_n much_o which_o of_o they_o i_o pray_v you_o see_v they_o live_v before_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be●ame_n antichrist_n they_o preach_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n one_o antichrist_n yea_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o and_o now_o be_v not_o all_o one_o show_v themselves_o very_o eloquent_a in_o detract_n and_o rail_n against_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n you_o do_v the_o like_a prove_v like_a you_o say_v so_o but_o you_o ●ay_v more_o than_o you_o can_v prove_v at_o every_o word_n they_o do_v allege_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o sermon_n to_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n as_o you_o do_v for_o you_o that_o that_o they_o preach_v be_v call_v by_o they_o the_o gospel_n &_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n these_o be_v the_o very_a term_n that_o you_o use_v among_o your_o holy_a prophet_n they_o have_v be_v condemn_v as_o heretic_n by_o the_o general_a counsel_n condemn_v counsel_n not_o yet_o by_o any_o lawful_a and_o f_o ee_fw-fr general_a council_n be_v ever_o our_o religion_n or_o any_o point_n of_o it_o condemn_v you_o be_v so_o likewise_o they_o do_v appeal_v unto_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n you_o do_v the_o like_a yet_o be_v they_o prove_v to_o be_v false_a eloquence_n false_a this_o i●_n flat_a dog_n eloquence_n cog_a knave_n and_o so_o shall_v you_o then_o see_v there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o uniformity_n between_o you_o upon_o what_o ground_n not_o ground_n upon_o this_o that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v our_o allege_v of_o they_o to_o to_o be_v sound_a and_o catholic_a which_o they_o be_v not_o shall_v we_o confirm_v that_o reason_n that_o shall_v condemn_v they_o as_o heretic_n &_o allow_v you_o for_o catholic_n dominion_n catholic_n this_o question_n be_v rather_o meet_v to_o be_v propose_v to_o you_o who_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o donatist_n to_o tie_v the_o church_n to_o your_o pope_n sleve_n and_o to_o shut_v it_o up_o within_o the_o narrow_a limit_n of_o his_o dominion_n s._n augustine_n in_o his_o epistle_n 161._o do_v put_v unto_o a_o donatist_n call_v honoratus_n this_o problem_n we_o desire_v thou_o not_o to_o think_v it_o much_o to_o answer_v we_o to_o this_o what_o cause_n do_v thou_o know_v or_o what_o thing_n have_v there_o be_v do_v that_o have_v make_v chirst_n loose_v his_o inheritance_n spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n to_o come_v to_o be_v contain_v only_o in_o africa_n &_o there_o only_o to_o remain_v we_o put_v the_o like_a question_n to_o flatterous_a to_o though_o your_o popish_a church_n have_v be_v none_o of_o his_o inheritance_n a_o good_a while_n yet_o he_o have_v have_v his_o inheritance_n always_o and_o ever_o will_v have_v and_o this_o we_o hold_v and_o teach_v and_o therefore_o your_o question_n be_v u●i●e_n frivolous_a and_o flatterous_a caluin_n beza_n viret_n &_o the_o rest_n that_o it_o may_v please_v they_o to_o tell_v we_o if_o that_o by_o chance_n they_o have_v be_v advertise_v through_o what_o occasion_n our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v lose_v his_o inheritance_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n to_o remain_v now_o in_o the_o late_a day_n with_o a_o company_n of_o rude_a switzer_n or_o in_o two_o or_o three_o corner_n beside_o &_o not_o among_o the_o rest_n for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o good_a catholic_n what_o badge_n can_v you_o show_v or_o what_o sign_n to_o make_v we_o know_v that_o you_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n if_o that_o the_o scripture_n that_o you_o allege_v aught_o to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n we_o be_v content_a to_o accept_v it_o corrupt_o it_o there_o as_o no_o need_n that_o we_o shall_v do_v so_o because_o we_o can_v prove_v that_o we_o allege_v they_o sound_o &_o they_o false_o &_o corrupt_o if_o you_o will_v be_v content_a to_o grant_v
let_v these_o thing_n pass_v and_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o scan_n and_o examine_v of_o that_o which_o you_o have_v set_v down_o in_o this_o chapter_n you_o begin_v with_o a_o arrogant_a and_o false_a brag_n that_o all_o ancient_a doctor_n greek_a and_o latin_a since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o four_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v in_o those_o day_n make_v their_o promise_n and_o vow_n etc._n etc._n as_o you_o do_v now_o you_o be_v wonderful_a general_n master_n albine_n and_o your_o word_n be_v very_o confident_a and_o swell_a shall_v we_o think_v that_o you_o be_v a_o man_n of_o that_o learning_n and_o read_v that_o you_o speak_v all_o this_o upon_o your_o own_o knowledge_n why_o then_o have_v such_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n &_o such_o a_o army_n royal_a allege_v you_o so_o few_o of_o they_o nine_o or_o ten_o be_v the_o most_o who_o name_n you_o have_v bring_v we_o in_o all_o this_o chapter_n and_o these_o you_o have_v bring_v forth_o upon_o the_o stage_n dumb_a or_o tongue-tied_a if_o we_o will_v hear_v they_o speak_v we_o must_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o attend_v upon_o they_o by_o your_o direction_n at_o a_o other_o time_n and_o sure_o in_o other_o place_n than_o you_o have_v point_v we_o we_o must_v hear_v a_o good_a sort_n of_o these_o speak_v for_o you_o or_o else_o we_o shall_v never_o find_v they_o willing_a to_o yield_v either_o you_o or_o your_o cause_n any_o one_o word_n good_a or_o bad_a as_o for_o vow_n and_o promise_n which_o you_o make_v to_o god_n unless_o thereby_o you_o mean_v only_o such_o vow_n and_o promise_n as_o both_o you_o and_o we_o make_v in_o our_o baptism_n to_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n etc._n etc._n for_o than_o you_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o name_v we_o one_o father_n greek_a or_o latin_a nor_o yet_o any_o one_o christian_a of_o any_o of_o the_o four_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n you_o speak_v of_o and_o indeed_o you_o have_v among_o you_o such_o rash_a foolish_a undiscreete_a and_o superstitious_a vow_n and_o promise_v a_o number_n for_o the_o which_o you_o can_v not_o nor_o can_v true_o allege_v any_o ancient_a and_o holy_a father_n or_o christian_n indeed_o thereinto_o give_v you_o any_o countenance_n such_o be_v you_o vow_v of_o single_a and_o chaste_a life_n universal_o among_o you_o tie_v to_o holy_a order_n your_o vow_n and_o promise_n to_o god_n some_o of_o you_o always_o &_o some_o for_o a_o time_n to_o abstain_v with_o opinion_n of_o holiness_n and_o merit_n from_o flesh_n and_o whitmeate_n your_o vow_n of_o pilgrimage_n to_o commit_v idolatry_n at_o this_o saint_n shrine_n &_o picture_n or_o at_o that_o and_o a_o number_n of_o like_a stamp_n of_o which_o kind_n of_o vow_n &_o promise_n if_o you_o mean_v i_o say_v first_o your_o glory_n in_o they_o be_v your_o shame_n for_o these_o be_v but_o plain_a will_n worship_n condemn_v by_o christ_n mat._n 15._o and_o by_o paul_n coloss_n 2._o &_o the_o very_a brand_n &_o mark_n of_o such_o as_o according_a to_o s._n paul_n pprophecy_n in_o the_o late_a day_n shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n &_o give_v heed_n unto_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n 1._o tim._n 4._o and_o further_o i_o say_v such_o vow_n be_v better_o never_o make_v they_o make_v &_o be_v make_v they_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n &_o dangerous_a consequence_n that_o the_o best_a way_n be_v first_o to_o repent_v of_o the_o folly_n and_o rashness_n in_o make_v of_o they_o &_o then_o rather_o quite_o to_o give_v they_o over_o they_o with_o such_o superstition_n and_o impiety_n to_o seek_v to_o keep_v they_o as_o be_v use_v &_o break_v forth_o thereby_o shameful_o among_o you_o for_o it_o be_v plentiful_o prove_v both_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o ambrose_n in_o the_o second_o canon_n of_o the_o eight_o council_n of_o toledo_n that_o oath_n that_o can_v be_v perform_v without_o sin_n be_v unlawful_a &_o not_o to_o bind_v and_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o gratian_n causa_fw-la 22_o quest_n 4_o produce_v many_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o same_o end_n and_z the_o namely_o out_o of_o isidor_n there_o he_o have_v note_v &_o set_v down_o this_o for_o a_o good_a rule_n in_o such_o case_n as_o these_o of_o you_o be_v in_o malis_fw-la promissis_fw-la rescinde_fw-la fidem_fw-la in_fw-la turpi_fw-la voto_fw-la muta_n decretum_fw-la quod_fw-la incautè_fw-la vovisti_fw-la ne_fw-la facias_fw-la impia_fw-la est_fw-la promissio_fw-la quae_fw-la scelere_fw-la adimpletur_fw-la that_o be_v in_o evil_a promise_n perform_v they_o not_o in_o a_o filthy_a vow_n change_v thy_o purpose_n the_o which_o rash_o thou_o have_v vow_v do_v not_o it_o be_v a_o ungodly_a promise_n which_o be_v fulfil_v with_o sin_n and_o rather_o than_o man_n that_o have_v vow_v &_o promise_v a_o single_a life_n through_o the_o force_n of_o inward_a concupiscence_n shall_v burn_v and_o fall_n either_o to_o fornication_n adultery_n or_o any_o other_o uncleanness_n or_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n with_o be_v as_o heaven_n &_o earth_n &_o all_o the_o world_n know_v common_a fruit_n of_o your_o priestly_a vow_n of_o single_a life_n the_o ancient_a doctor_n that_o you_o brag_v of_o here_o so_o much_o will_v have_v they_o to_o marry_v and_o to_o repent_v of_o their_o rash_a vow_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o cyril_n in_o his_o three_o &_o 16._o book_n upon_o leviticus_fw-la in_o cyprian_a li._n 1._o epist_n 11._o in_o epiphanius_n himself_o contra_fw-la apostolicos_fw-la l._n 2._o and_o in_o august_n de_fw-mi bono_fw-mi coniugali_fw-la &_o de_fw-la sanctâ_fw-la virginitate_fw-la cap._n 34._o but_o by_o the_o vow_n and_o promise_n that_o you_o speak_v of_o see_v you_o cite_v no_o father_n for_o any_o other_o i_o will_v take_v it_o that_o you_o mean_v only_o those_o that_o you_o use_v to_o make_v to_o god_n in_o baptism_n now_o they_o yet_o therein_o understand_v you_o strive_v without_o a_o adversary_n for_o we_o in_o our_o baptism_n do_v as_o solemn_o make_v those_o vow_n and_o promise_n to_o god_n to_o renounce_v the_o devil_n the_o world_n &_o the_o flesh_n wtall_a their_o fruit_n to_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n as_o ever_o any_o of_o you_o do_v or_o do_v but_o you_o say_v further_o that_o all_o these_o holy_a doctor_n &_o christian_n you_o speak_v of_o at_o their_o baptism_n do_v use_v those_o very_a ceremony_n that_o you_o do_v with_o the_o selfsame_o exorcism_n adjuration_n and_o annoynting_n which_o you_o do_v use_v in_o your_o catholic_a church_n which_o we_o call_v papistical_a for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n whereof_o you_o name_v we_o certain_a place_n out_o of_o tertullian_n cyprian_n origen_n chrysostome_n augustine_n basil_n and_o arnobius_n what_o be_v these_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o christian_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n that_o you_o speak_v of_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v you_o that_o these_o seven_o in_o these_o place_n be_v for_o your_o ceremony_n which_o you_o use_v in_o baptism_n yet_o this_o be_v far_o from_o all_o that_o you_o speak_v of_o before_o thus_o to_o begin_v withal_o every_o body_n may_v see_v that_o you_o be_v a_o far_o mighty_a man_n in_o brag_v they_o you_o dare_v so_o m●●h_o as_o to_o make_v show_v you_o be_v in_o prove_v all_o you_o say_v but_o to_o pass_v by_o this_o fault_n herein_o you_o have_v commit_v a_o second_o fault_n worse_o than_o this_o first_o for_o whereas_o you_o allege_v these_o father_n here_o to_o countenance_v your_o whole_a pomp_n of_o ceremony_n now_o use_v by_o you_o in_o baptism_n there_o be_v not_o you_o know_v well_o enough_o or_o else_o you_o be_v not_o so_o cunning_a in_o these_o place_n as_o you_o will_v have_v man_n think_v you_o be_v the_o half_a of_o your_o ceremony_n &_o fashion_n so_o much_o as_o bare_o mention_v by_o they_o in_o these_o place_n exorcism_n abrenuntiation_n cross_v thrice_o dip_v and_o anoint_v be_v all_o that_o i_o can_v find_v any_o of_o these_o in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n to_o have_v mention_v but_o that_o they_o use_v the_o selfsame_o exorcism_n adjuration_n and_o anointing_n that_o you_o now_o use_v as_o you_o say_v i_o find_v not_o your_o chrism_n that_o you_o anoint_v withal_o must_v have_v as_o you_o hold_v balsom_a in_o it_o and_o in_o they_o i_o find_v only_o mention_v of_o oil_n and_o none_o of_o any_o balsom_a &_o your_o form_n of_o exorcise_a and_o adjure_v set_v down_o in_o your_o service_n book_n be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n nay_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v they_o be_v of_o young_a year_n by_o a_o fair_a deal_n but_o what_o be_v these_o few_o ceremony_n the_o name_n whereof_o and_o use_v whereof_o in_o some_o sort_n they_o have_v
scripture_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a cree_v ground_v upon_o the_o same_o together_o with_o the_o very_a form_n of_o our_o baptism_n allow_v we_o only_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n unanswerable_o thereupon_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v gross_a idolatry_n to_o pray_v unto_o any_o other_o and_o so_o much_o in_o plain_a term_n have_v sedulius_n above_o one_o thousand_o year_n ago_o most_o flat_o set_v down_o upon_o the_o first_o of_o the_o roman_n say_v adorare_fw-la alium_fw-la praeter_fw-la patrem_fw-la filium_fw-la &_o spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la impietatis_fw-la crimen_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v to_o adore_v any_o beside_o the_o father_n the_o son_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o ungodly_a wickedness_n cyril_n also_o ad_fw-la reginas_fw-la de_fw-la rectâ_fw-la fide_fw-la etc._n etc._n send_v they_o that_o will_v obtain_v their_o prayer_n to_o god_n the_o father_n in_o the_o name_n only_o of_o jesus_n christ_n because_o solus_fw-la naturâ_fw-la &_o verè_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la he_o only_o be_v by_o nature_n and_o in_o truth_n god_n &_o contra_fw-la julianum_fw-la lib._n 6._o he_o flat_o say_v the_o holy_a martyr_n neither_o do_v we_o say_v to_o be_v god_n neue_fw-la adorare_fw-la consuevimus_fw-la neither_o do_v we_o use_v to_o worship_v they_o yea_o remigius_n who_o live_v well_o nigh_o 900._o year_n after_o christ_n show_v upon_o the_o 96._o psalm_n that_o not_o only_a image_n be_v not_o to_o be_v adore_v but_o he_o say_v plain_o no_o nor_o a_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v because_o of_o that_o warn_n of_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o apocalips_n to_o conclude_v even_o hierom_n himself_o your_o own_o four_o and_o last_o man_n who_o i_o have_v therefore_o keep_v to_o the_o last_o because_o many_o of_o you_o think_v that_o he_o be_v much_o of_o your_o side_n against_o vigilantius_n write_v against_o the_o say_v vigilantius_n to_o one_o ripacius_n clear_v himself_o to_o be_v far_o from_o this_o folly_n and_o blasphemy_n that_o you_o will_v make_v he_o a_o earnest_a proctor_n for_o for_o there_o he_o have_v to_o show_v his_o judgement_n in_o this_o case_n write_v thus_o non_fw-la colimus_fw-la &_o adoramus_fw-la we_o worship_v not_o and_o adore_v i_o say_v not_o the_o relic_n of_o martyr_n but_o neither_o sun_n moon_n angel_n archangel_n cherubin_n seraphin_n nor_o any_o name_n that_o be_v name_v either_o in_o this_o world_n or_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v beside_o the_o trinity_n for_o so_o he_o must_v be_v understand_v for_o immediate_o he_o add_v this_o reason_n lest_o we_o shall_v serve_v the_o creature_n above_o the_o creator_n who_o be_v bless_v for_o ever_o we_o honour_v say_v he_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o we_o may_v adore_v he_o who_o martyr_n they_o be_v and_o good_a reason_n have_v all_o these_o father_n thus_o flat_o to_o set_v down_o their_o mind_n against_o you_o for_o you_o know_v it_o be_v write_v dominum_fw-la deum_fw-la tuum_fw-la adorabis_fw-la &_o illi_fw-la soli_fw-la seruies_fw-la that_o be_v thou_o shall_v adore_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v deut._n 6._o matth._n 4._o and_o with_o this_o text_n christ_n put_v the_o devil_n to_o silence_n when_o he_o will_v have_v persuade_v he_o to_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v he_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o reply_v against_o it_o i_o pray_v god_n you_o be_v not_o grow_v in_o this_o point_n more_o obstinate_a and_o peevish_a to_o withstand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o text_n and_o more_o cunning_a and_o subtle_a to_o cavil_n against_o it_o for_o your_o own_o defence_n than_o he_o be_v i_o know_v some_o of_o you_o find_v the_o scripture_n and_o father_n thus_o direct_o to_o condemn_v adoration_n of_o the_o saint_n though_o they_o maintain_v still_o all_o your_o practice_n of_o pray_v unto_o they_o yet_o have_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o write_v as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o censure_n of_o colen_n print_v there_o one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o sixty_o that_o among_o you_o it_o be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v that_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v for_o adoration_n be_v due_a only_a to_o god_n whereas_o they_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o their_o legend_n rosary_n and_o other_o their_o book_n of_o devotion_n public_a and_o private_a be_v full_a both_o of_o the_o name_n and_o thing_n do_v they_o not_o know_v that_o the_o whole_a psalter_n be_v turn_v to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o that_o therein_o it_o be_v write_v venite_fw-la adoremus_fw-la eam_fw-la come_v let_v we_o adore_v she_o howsoever_o they_o know_v this_o or_o no_o they_o can_v not_o forget_v their_o old_a say_n of_o the_o cross_n behold_v the_o wood_n of_o the_o cross_n whereon_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n hang_v venite_fw-la adoremus_fw-la come_v let_v we_o adore_v it_o if_o these_o will_v not_o serve_v to_o make_v they_o better_a to_o remember_v themselves_o let_v they_o read_v their_o own_o antonin_n part_n 3._o tit._n 12._o cap._n 8._o and_o they_o shall_v find_v he_o in_o plain_a word_n to_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o saint_n by_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o canonise_a of_o they_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o man_n not_o only_o as_o a_o example_n of_o faith_n and_o holy_a life_n but_o also_o abomnibus_fw-la adorandi_fw-la &_o in_fw-la necessitatibus_fw-la invocandi_fw-la that_o be_v of_o all_o to_o be_v adore_v and_o in_o necessity_n to_o be_v pray_v unto_o wherein_o to_o say_v say_v he_o that_o the_o pope_n err_v be_v heretical_a but_o this_o be_v like_o your_o other_o common_a shift_n when_o you_o say_v you_o use_v the_o saint_n but_o as_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n and_o not_o of_o salvation_n which_o only_o belong_v to_o christ_n and_o that_o you_o do_v not_o give_v they_o latreian_a but_o douleian_n that_o be_v as_o you_o expound_v the_o word_n not_o divine_a honour_n but_o a_o inferior_a honour_n not_o ask_v at_o their_o hand_n that_o they_o shall_v either_o give_v you_o the_o good_a thing_n you_o will_v have_v or_o keep_v from_o you_o the_o evil_a that_o you_o will_v not_o have_v the_o falsehood_n and_o vanity_n whereof_o i_o have_v both_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o preface_n of_o your_o book_n and_o also_o somewhat_o in_o this_o chapter_n already_o bewray_v for_o let_v any_o man_n read_v over_o &_o consider_v your_o prayer_n and_o practice_n and_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o you_o make_v they_o mediator_n of_o salvation_n and_o not_o only_o of_o intercession_n though_o that_o only_o if_o you_o do_v it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o special_a part_n of_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n mediatorship_n to_o be_v the_o very_a altar_n whereupon_o and_o whereby_o we_o must_v acceptable_o present_v these_o our_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n unto_o his_o heavenly_a father_n he_o be_v as_o he_o be_v of_o himself_o alone_o thorough_o both_o able_a &_o willing_a full_o to_o execute_v his_o own_o office_n you_o can_v not_o excuse_v &_o clear_v yourselves_o of_o be_v guilty_a of_o high_a treason_n against_o christ_n and_o he_o shall_v further_o find_v that_o you_o give_v the_o divine_a honour_n that_o may_v be_v &_o that_o you_o do_v direct_o beg_v all_o thing_n even_o at_o their_o hand_n that_o you_o can_v beg_v at_o go_n for_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o you_o to_o sing_v to_o mary_n salua_fw-la eos_fw-la quite_o glorificant_fw-la save_v they_o that_o glorify_v thou_o that_o succour_v the_o miserable_a help_v the_o weak_a refresh_v they_o that_o mourn_v &_o you_o say_v to_o she_o marry_o mother_n of_o grace_n mother_n of_o mercy_n protect_v we_o from_o the_o enemy_n receive_v we_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n &_o in_o the_o psalter_n now_o turn_v &_o put_v forth_o by_o the_o devout_a servant_n of_o she_o bonaventure_n as_o some_o think_v you_o stick_v not_o to_o use_v all_o those_o speech_n to_o she_o that_o in_o the_o psalm_n be_v use_v to_o god_n himself_o and_o therefore_o you_o blush_v not_o to_o say_v unto_o she_o have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o o_o lady_n according_a to_o thy_o great_a mercy_n &_o according_a to_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n blot_v out_o my_o iniquity_n but_o not_o only_o thus_o have_v you_o doubt_v about_o mary_n but_o quite_o contrary_a to_o your_o own_o word_n when_o you_o will_v use_v these_o shift_n you_o deal_v with_o other_o saint_n for_o you_o pray_v to_o basil_n that_o he_o will_v look_v down_o upon_o you_o from_o above_o &_o change_v your_o whole_a life_n and_o you_o pray_v athanasius_n to_o direct_v the_o holy_a people_n &_o s._n cyprian_n to_o direct_v both_o your_o speech_n and_o life_n and_o who_o so_o read_v your_o speculum_fw-la exemplonim_fw-la your_o glass_n of_o example_n he_o shall_v find_v there_o and_o in_o such_o other_o book_n of_o you_o such_o story_n tell_v of_o thing_n do_v by_o this_o saint_n and_o that_o
aside_o of_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o the_o banish_n of_o all_o temptation_n because_o they_o die_v not_o but_o live_v for_o ever_o which_o seem_v to_o die_v and_o therefore_o say_v he_o we_o keep_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o our_o parent_n and_o friend_n which_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n as_o rejoice_v for_o their_o rest_n so_o beg_v for_o ourselves_o consummation_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o this_o end_n to_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o such_o so_o depart_v we_o call_v the_o poor_a together_o and_o satisfy_v they_o with_o victual_n in_o token_n of_o our_o joy_n &_o thankfulness_n for_o their_o quietness_n &_o rest_n he_o that_o get_v not_o forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n here_o shall_v not_o be_v there_o and_o therefore_o say_v david_n forgive_v i_o that_o i_o may_v be_v refresh_v before_o i_o go_v hence_o and_o be_v no_o more_o see_v say_v ambrofe_n de_fw-fr hono_fw-la mortis_fw-la cap._n 2._o and_o cyprian_a against_o demetrian_a say_v most_o flat_o when_o one_o be_v go_v hence_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o repentance_n no_o effect_n of_o satisfaction_n &_o de_fw-la mortalitate_fw-la again_o he_o say_v what_o manner_n of_o one_o god_n find_v thou_o when_o he_o call_v thou_o even_o such_o a_o one_o also_o will_v he_o judge_v thou_o chrysostome_n be_v as_o flat_a as_o ambrose_n in_o these_o point_n for_o upon_o the_o 4._o of_o the_o hebrew_n hom_n 4._o he_o say_v that_o if_o we_o come_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n now_o we_o shall_v have_v grace_n &_o mercy_n now_o be_v the_o time_n of_o gift_n after_o of_o judgement_n and_o in_o his_o sermon_n de_fw-fr eucharistiâ_fw-la in_o eucaen_fw-la there_o be_v say_v he_o after_o this_o life_n end_v no_o negotiation_n this_o be_v the_o time_n of_o suffering_n or_o strive_v that_o of_o crown_n this_o of_o labour_n that_o of_o ease_n this_o of_o sorrow_n that_o of_o reward_n &_o therefore_o in_o the_o 7._o hom_o upon_o the_o 2._o of_o the_o hebrew_n show_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o solemnity_n use_v at_o burial_n he_o say_v that_o the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v that_o we_o may_v glorify_v god_n &_o give_v he_o thank_n that_o have_v crown_v &_o take_v to_o himself_o our_o brother_n depart_v &_o free_v he_o from_o his_o labour_n &_o servitude_n be_v not_o our_o psalm_n &_o hymn_n for_o this_o &_o our_o sing_n omne_fw-la ista_fw-la gaudentium_fw-la sunt_fw-la all_o these_o say_v he_o be_v the_o do_n of_o man_n that_o rejoice_v &_o de_fw-fr beato_fw-la philogonio_fw-la most_o confident_o he_o write_v ego_fw-la fide_fw-la iubeo_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v i_o do_v pawn_v my_o credit_n if_o any_o depart_n from_o his_o sin_n with_o his_o whole_a heart_n &_o true_o and_o unfeigned_o promise_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v return_v no_o more_o unto_o they_o that_o god_n will_v require_v nothing_o more_o of_o he_o to_o satisfaction_n but_o to_o come_v to_o augustin_n he_o in_o his_o 80._o epistle_n to_o hesichius_n say_v in_o what_o state_n soever_o thy_o last_o day_n find_v thou_o in_o the_o same_o will_v the_o last_o day_n of_o the_o world_n come_v upon_o thou_o for_o what_o manner_n of_o one_o every_o man_n die_v such_o a_o one_o than_o he_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o upon_o the_o 25._o psa_fw-la he_o plain_o wish_v that_o only_o the_o price_n of_o the_o lord_n blood_n may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o he_o for_o his_o perfect_a freedom_n and_o deliverance_n herein_o we_o be_v sure_o they_o have_v the_o scripture_n full_a of_o their_o side_n for_o first_o they_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n do_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n 1._o john_n 1._o and_o that_o he_o so_o bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o body_n upon_o the_o tree_n that_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v 1._o pe._n 2._o second_o they_o teach_v we_o that_o bless_v be_v they_o that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o even_o thenceforth_o immediate_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n follow_v they_o apo._n 14._o and_o three_o likewise_o direct_o they_o affirm_v that_o a_o ill_a man_n once_o dead_a there_o be_v no_o more_o hope_n for_o he_o pro._n 11._o and_o that_o therefore_o we_o must_v have_v oil_n in_o our_o lamp_n in_o a_o readiness_n when_o the_o bridegroom_n call_v we_o or_o else_o we_o shall_v be_v shut_v out_o for_o ever_o what_o stir_n soever_o we_o make_v to_o provide_v oil_n after_o mat._n 25._o and_o last_o in_o these_o upon_o these_o ground_n all_o man_n be_v urge_v while_o the_o day_n last_v while_o the_o acceptable_a time_n or_o day_n of_o salvation_n endure_v while_o the_o lord_n be_v nigh_o and_o may_v be_v find_v &_o while_o they_o have_v time_n to_o work_v to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n to_o seek_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o do_v good_a unto_o all_o man_n as_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v and_o therefore_o if_o these_o father_n as_o man_n at_o any_o time_n or_o any_o other_o either_o by_o their_o example_n or_o writing_n have_v in_o any_o point_n never_o so_o little_a in_o any_o kind_n of_o sort_n cross_v themselves_o &_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n in_o any_o of_o these_o point_n either_o in_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a or_o in_o lay_v any_o ground_n or_o occasion_n thereof_o we_o may_v bold_o leave_v they_o &_o choose_v rather_o to_o cleave_v unto_o they_o in_o these_o these_o thing_n thus_o premise_v let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o particular_a examine_v of_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n quotation_n for_o their_o kind_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_z his_o first_o man_n be_v tert._n for_o high_a he_o can_v go_v to_o fetch_v any_o show_n of_o colour_n for_o this_o matter_n unless_o he_o will_v run_v to_o apocrypha_fw-la writing_n to_o philosopher_n &_o poet_n to_o heretic_n or_o to_o the_o notorious_o know_v counterfeit_a writing_n of_o clement_n &_o such_o like_a and_o out_o of_o this_o tertullian_n he_o allege_v two_o place_n the_o first_o out_o of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monogamiâ_n &_o the_o other_o out_o of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr coronâ_fw-la militis_fw-la both_o which_o be_v write_v by_o he_o after_o he_o becane_a a_o montanist_n as_o beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la in_o his_o argument_n of_o those_o two_o book_n be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v for_o in_o the_o late_a he_o mention_v the_o new_a prophecy_n thereby_o understanding_n montanus_n fancy_n &_o in_o the_o other_o he_o most_o plain_o conden_v second_v marriage_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n as_o hierom_n have_v true_o note_v upon_o titus_n and_o therefore_o both_o there_o he_o condemn_v that_o book_n as_o a_o heretical_a book_n and_o also_o in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n as_o a_o book_n write_v against_o the_o church_n albine_v therefore_o have_v aptly_o than_o he_o be_v aware_a of_o seek_v out_o a_o heretic_n in_o his_o heretical_a write_n to_o be_v the_o first_o man_n to_o speak_v for_o the_o patronise_a of_o this_o popish_a heresy_n of_o he_o but_o perhaps_o he_o will_v say_v that_o he_o learn_v not_o of_o heretic_n to_o speak_v for_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a whereunto_o i_o reply_v that_o if_o ever_o he_o write_v any_o thing_n therein_o to_o serve_v your_o turn_n he_o learn_v it_o of_o no_o better_a schoolmaster_n then_o of_o such_o or_o of_o philosopher_n their_o ordinary_a teacher_n for_o as_o he_o himself_o write_v the_o prescript_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la as_o the_o original_n of_o all_o truth_n be_v doctrine_n receive_v by_o the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n so_o the_o spring_n of_o all_o error_n have_v be_v from_o the_o devil_n by_o philosopher_n and_o touch_v this_o particular_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr animâ_fw-la he_o write_v that_o the_o philosopher_n that_o hold_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o pythagoras_n empedocles_n and_o plato_n assign_v for_o soul_n depart_v heaven_n hell_n and_o a_o third_o purify_n place_n and_o in_o that_o book_n he_o show_v that_o montanus_n his_o master_n hold_v that_o the_o patriarch_n before_o christ_n come_n be_v in_o hell_n that_o abraham_n bosom_n be_v in_o hell_n or_o in_o the_o low_a part_n that_o only_o perfect_a man_n and_o martyr_n go_v to_o heaven_n straight_o and_o that_o all_o small_a offence_n must_v be_v punish_v after_o this_o life_n to_o the_o uttermost_a farthing_n his_o paraclet_n so_o expound_v that_o of_o mat._n ca._n the_o inf_n &_o ult_v and_o in_o that_o book_n also_o he_o tell_v of_o a_o woman_n lie_v to_o be_v bury_v that_o at_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o priest_n over_o she_o lift_v up_o her_o hand_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o heretic_n montanus_n &_o his_o paraclet_n may_v be_v very_o fit_a schoolmaster_n to_o teach_v he_o a_o great_a part_n of_o your_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n further_o that_o you_o may_v see_v not_o only_o by_o his_o own_o
testimony_n that_o he_o may_v have_v such_o school_n master_n as_o i_o have_v say_v to_o teach_v he_o herein_o somewhat_o to_o favour_v you_o &_o to_o speak_v of_o your_o side_n irenaeus_n in_o his_o first_o book_n &_o 24._o chapter_n testify_v of_o the_o heretic_n carpocrates_n that_o he_o be_v a_o great_a admirer_n of_o philosophy_n insomuch_o that_o to_o the_o image_n he_o make_v of_o christ_n and_o of_o some_o of_o his_o apostle_n he_o join_v the_o image_n of_o pythagoras_n plato_n and_o aristotle_n of_o who_o he_o learn_v to_o imagine_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purify_n place_n after_o this_o life_n and_o so_o to_o prove_v purgatory_n out_o of_o that_o place_n of_o matthew_n as_o you_o hear_v before_o montanus_n paraclet_n do_v and_o the_o heretic_n heracleones_n as_o augustine_n write_v of_o they_o use_v over_o their_o dead_a oil_n balm_n water_n and_o invocation_n in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n hereunto_o join_v you_o virgil_n 6_o book_n of_o his_o aeneidos_n &_o lie_v vision_n &_o you_o have_v the_o right_a schoolmaster_n that_o have_v teach_v you_o &_o all_o that_o favour_n you_o in_o this_o point_n but_o concern_v the_o place_n in_o tertullian_n which_o you_o quote_v we_o need_v not_o thus_o answer_v you_o for_o they_o be_v not_o so_o pregnant_a for_o you_o as_o you_o imagine_v for_o the_o word_n you_o ground_n on_o in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v these_o speak_v by_o he_o to_o the_o wife_n to_o teach_v she_o how_o in_o this_o point_n to_o behave_v herself_o towards_o her_o dead_a husband_n &_o pro_fw-la animâ_fw-la eius_fw-la oret_fw-la &_o refrigerium_fw-la interim_n adpostulet_fw-la ei_fw-la &_o in_o primâ_fw-la resurrectione_n consortium_fw-la &_o offerat_fw-la annuis_fw-la diebus_fw-la dormitionis_fw-la eius_fw-la that_o be_v let_v she_o pray_v for_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n desire_v refresh_v for_o he_o and_o fellowship_n in_o the_o first_o resurrection_n and_o let_v she_o offer_v always_o when_o the_o year_n day_n come_v for_o his_o sleep_a which_o be_v the_o word_n as_o beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la confess_v that_o he_o have_v so_o set_v down_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o find_v it_o far_o otherwise_o in_o all_o example_n before_o again_o not_o only_o this_o obscurity_n of_o tertullians_n word_n and_o the_o uncertainty_n what_o they_o be_v disable_v this_o place_n from_o be_v of_o any_o force_n for_o you_o to_o ground_n upon_o but_o also_o unless_o you_o must_v have_v it_o grant_v that_o every_o woman_n husband_n to_o who_o he_o give_v this_o counsel_n be_v in_o purgatory_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n at_o all_o in_o his_o word_n in_o that_o book_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a whereby_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o as_o be_v go_v before_o in_o peace_n to_o the_o lord_n his_o word_n if_o they_o be_v these_o prove_v not_o your_o pray_v to_o relieve_v soul_n there_o and_o the_o offering_n that_o he_o last_o speak_v of_o be_v either_o the_o offering_n of_o thanks_n to_o god_n for_o his_o quiet_a rest_n and_o sleep_v or_o a_o offering_n or_o give_v of_o alm_n to_o the_o poor_a in_o token_n of_o joy_n for_o the_o same_o and_o to_o provoke_v they_o to_o be_v thankful_a therefore_o also_o as_o you_o hear_v i_o before_o note_n the_o fashion_n be_v when_o the_o tract_n of_o job_n father_v upon_o origen_n be_v write_v out_o of_o the_o three_o tract_n of_o the_o same_o and_o not_o as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o take_v a_o offering_n of_o your_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n in_o your_o mass_n for_o his_o sin_n for_o he_o say_v for_o his_o fall_v a_o sleep_n and_o not_o for_o his_o sin_n and_o he_o will_v the_o woman_n to_o offer_v and_o not_o that_o she_o shall_v get_v the_o priest_n to_o do_v it_o and_o in_o answer_v of_o this_o place_n your_o other_o be_v also_o answer_v for_o there_o only_o he_o say_v oblationes_fw-la pro_fw-la defunctis_fw-la pro_fw-la natalitiis_fw-la annuâ_fw-la die_fw-la facimus_fw-la that_o be_v we_o offer_v oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o their_o birth_n day_n every_o year_n day_n for_o in_o that_o he_o express_o say_v pro_fw-la natalitiis_fw-la for_o their_o birth_n day_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o can_v nor_o may_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o any_o other_o oblation_n but_o of_o thankfulness_n and_o rejoice_v but_o this_o offering_n for_o their_o birth_n day_n beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la upon_o this_o place_n in_o his_o note_n say_v be_v heathenish_a and_o afterward_o be_v condemn_v and_o abolish_v by_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o other_o and_o yet_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o these_o word_n of_o tertullian_n enforce_v in_o this_o place_n he_o speak_v of_o no_o other_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a but_o for_o their_o birth_n day_n so_o that_o long_o ago_o the_o date_n and_o credit_n of_o this_o testimony_n and_o fashion_n be_v abrogate_a and_o last_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v forget_v that_o he_o himself_o within_o few_o line_n after_o these_o word_n speak_v of_o this_o fashion_n &_o of_o sundry_a other_o that_o there_o also_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o plain_o confess_v that_o these_o thing_n have_v no_o ground_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o by_o tradition_n that_o which_o other_o of_o your_o fellow_n allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n out_o of_o tertullian_n in_o his_o exhortation_n to_o charity_n may_v receive_v the_o same_o answer_n with_o these_o for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o book_n also_o be_v write_v in_o his_o montanisme_n for_o there_o he_o be_v against_o second_o marriage_n as_o in_o the_o first_o and_o so_o against_o paul_n roman_n 7._o 1._o cor._n 7._o and_o with_o montanus_n and_o the_o word_n be_v no_o more_o pregnant_a to_o ground_n prayer_n to_o relieve_v soul_n in_o purgatory_n than_o the_o former_a be_v now_o next_o be_v cyprian_a who_o be_v a_o bishop_n in_o that_o city_n wherein_o sometime_o tertullian_n have_v live_v in_o he_o for_o your_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a you_o will_v have_v we_o read_v his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la furnensem_fw-la in_o his_o first_o book_n i_o be_o sure_a you_o mean_v the_o nine_o epistle_n of_o that_o book_n write_v as_o it_o appear_v there_o ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la furnilanorum_fw-la though_o either_o you_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o to_o put_v your_o reader_n to_o a_o little_a more_o pain_n to_o seek_v it_o out_o tell_v we_o so_o much_o but_o have_v find_v it_o and_o read_v it_o howsoever_o you_o be_v persuade_v of_o it_o we_o find_v little_a or_o nothing_o there_o that_o can_v do_v you_o any_o good_a for_o only_o there_o of_o a_o decree_n make_v in_o some_o african_a synod_n before_o his_o time_n he_o ground_v his_o persuasion_n to_o that_o people_n forasmuch_o as_o one_o victor_n have_v contrary_a to_o that_o decree_n make_v one_o heminius_n faustinus_n minister_n executor_n of_o his_o will_n and_o testament_n therefore_o to_o stay_v other_o from_o dare_v any_o more_o so_o to_o violate_v that_o decree_n to_o the_o call_n away_o the_o minister_n from_o attendance_n of_o their_o ministry_n that_o they_o shall_v execute_v that_o decree_n against_o that_o their_o brother_n victor_n depart_v which_o be_v that_o for_o this_o cause_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o offering_n for_o he_o nor_o sacrifice_n for_o his_o fall_v a_o sleep_n for_o say_v he_o he_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v name_v in_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o priest_n that_o will_v so_o call_v away_o the_o minister_n or_o priest_n from_o the_o altar_n &_o therefore_o see_v this_o be_v victor_n fault_n let_v there_o be_v no_o oblation_n with_o you_o for_o his_o sleep_v nor_o in_o his_o name_n any_o deprecation_n frequent_v in_o the_o church_n do_v you_o think_v in_o good_a earnest_n master_n albine_n that_o if_o cyprian_a have_v think_v that_o his_o brother_n victor_n soul_n have_v be_v in_o such_o pain_n in_o purgatory_n as_o you_o teach_v be_v there_o and_o that_o these_o be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n to_o ease_v soul_n there_o that_o for_o so_o small_a a_o matter_n as_o this_o the_o break_n of_o this_o positive_a law_n which_o with_o you_o be_v usual_o break_v if_o in_o your_o sense_n these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o oblation_n sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o ease_n of_o the_o party_n so_o depart_v from_o under_o the_o punishment_n upon_o he_o for_o his_o sin_n that_o cyprian_a either_o might_n lawful_o can_v without_o too_o too_o much_o cruelty_n or_o will_v so_o without_o all_o mercy_n and_o charity_n persuade_v to_o deprive_v a_o brother_n depart_v of_o these_o thing_n you_o can_v be_v so_o without_o reason_n as_o once_o to_o think_v so_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o canon_n against_o victor_n be_v but_o only_o a_o note_n of_o some_o disgrace_n &_o ignominy_n lay_v upon_o he_o the_o better_a to_o make_v other_o after_o to_o regard_v that_o canon_n and_o not_o any_o deny_v of_o his_o soul_n any_o thing_n so_o necessary_a
a_o answer_n to_o master_n john_n de_fw-fr albines_n notable_a discourse_n against_o heresy_n as_o his_o friend_n call_v his_o book_n compile_v by_o thomas_n spark_n pastor_n of_o blechley_n in_o the_o county_n of_o buck._n and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n revelat._n 18_o vers_fw-la 4._o put_v yourselves_o in_o array_n against_o babylon_n round_o about_o all_o you_o that_o bend_v the_o bow_n shoot_v at_o she_o spare_v no_o arrow_n for_o she_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n jerem._n 50._o vers_fw-la 14._o academia_n oxoniensis_fw-la sapientiae_fw-la et_fw-la felicitatis_fw-la print_a at_o oxford_n by_o joseph_n barnes_n printer_n to_o the_o university_n 1591._o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a arthure_n lord_n grey_z of_o wilton_n knight_n of_o the_o most_o honourable_a order_n of_o the_o garter_n his_o especial_a good_a lord_n and_o patron_n thomas_n spark_n wish_v all_o good_a perseverance_n in_o christian_a courage_n and_o constancy_n in_o the_o profession_n and_o furtherance_n of_o god_n sincere_a truth_n with_o all_o other_o ornament_n of_o true_a nobility_n to_o god_n glory_n our_o comfort_n and_o his_o own_o heart_n good_a contentation_n now_o and_o ever_o although_o right_o honourable_a when_o i_o have_v first_o peruse_v this_o treatise_n of_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n i_o find_v it_o through_o out_o a_o most_o bitter_a invective_n &_o a_o malicious_a declamation_n write_v only_o of_o purpose_n to_o deface_v &_o disgrace_v among_o the_o simple_a both_o our_o religion_n &_o the_o minister_n &_o professor_n thereof_o yet_o find_v withal_o as_o i_o do_v &_o as_o any_o indifferent_a man_n that_o read_v it_o shall_v that_o neither_o for_o matter_n nor_o manner_n of_o writing_n there_o be_v any_o new_a thing_n of_o any_o importance_n in_o it_o which_o have_v not_o be_v before_o ever_o this_o discourse_n of_o his_o see_v the_o light_n often_o &_o that_o far_o more_o substantial_o urge_v by_o some_o other_o of_o that_o side_n &_o therefore_o which_o have_v not_o also_o heretofore_o be_v as_o often_o full_o &_o effectual_o answer_v by_o some_o or_o other_o of_o we_o i_o not_o only_o judge_v this_o to_o be_v the_o reason_n when_o it_o have_v now_o be_v among_o we_o in_o english_a these_o 16._o or_o 17._o year_n none_o hitherto_o have_v vouchsafe_v it_o any_o further_a particular_a answer_n but_o also_o though_o urge_v as_o your_o honour_n know_v to_o frame_v unto_o it_o a_o special_a &_o direct_a answer_n i_o can_v yet_o hardly_o be_v bring_v to_o think_v it_o necessary_a so_o base_o i_o esteem_v of_o it_o to_o aford_v it_o any_o other_o answer_n then_o either_o a_o few_o marginal_a note_n that_o when_o i_o first_o read_v it_o i_o bestow_v upon_o it_o or_o from_o point_n to_o point_n as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o table_n to_o have_v show_v the_o reader_n where_o and_o by_o who_o he_o may_v read_v the_o same_o thing_n long_o ago_o &_o often_o object_v on_o the_o one_o side_n &_o answer_v by_o the_o other_o which_o may_v have_v be_v in_o one_o sheet_n of_o paper_n very_o well_o dispatch_v howbeit_o in_o the_o end_n call_v to_o mind_n what_o your_o lordship_n tell_v i_o concern_v the_o opinion_n that_o our_o poor_a seduce_a countryman_n seem_v secret_o to_o have_v among_o themselves_o of_o it_o as_o you_o learn_v by_o one_o of_o their_o own_o speech_n have_v thereof_o unto_o yourself_o in_o acquaint_v you_o first_o with_o the_o book_n and_o mark_v how_o not_o only_o by_o publish_v it_o in_o english_a but_o also_o by_o entitle_v it_o both_o in_o the_o forehead_n &_o over_o every_o leaf_n a_o notable_a discourse_n against_o heresy_n they_o themselves_o have_v plain_o show_v that_o they_o have_v it_o in_o no_o base_a account_n &_o find_v it_o also_o since_o to_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o certain_a learned_a man_n of_o ancient_a and_o long_a experience_n even_o of_o our_o own_o side_n now_o this_o last_o year_n publish_v in_o print_n that_o the_o have_v of_o this_o very_a book_n so_o long_o in_o secret_a among_o they_o unanswered_a have_v be_v one_o great_a cause_n of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o so_o many_o young_a man_n as_o of_o late_a year_n in_o this_o our_o country_n have_v revolt_v from_o the_o truth_n to_o popery_n at_o the_o last_o i_o resolve_v with_o myself_o though_o i_o know_v that_o when_o i_o have_v do_v what_o i_o can_v herein_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v say_v little_a or_o nothing_o not_o say_v &_o write_v aswell_o before_o by_o some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o our_o side_n that_o yet_o your_o lordship_n request_n make_v unto_o i_o to_o answer_v it_o as_o full_o and_o direct_o as_o i_o can_v when_o you_o first_o show_v i_o the_o book_n &_o how_o you_o come_v by_o it_o be_v &_o be_v such_o as_o that_o both_o of_o duty_n to_o yourself_o particular_o for_o sundry_a cause_n &_o to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n general_o for_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v many_o may_v see_v together_o a_o answer_n to_o that_o which_o otherwise_o in_o great_a part_n either_o they_o may_v chance_v never_o to_o hit_v of_o in_o any_o other_o writer_n of_o we_o or_o else_o be_v drive_v to_o search_v more_o &_o those_o further_a than_o it_o be_v likely_a they_o will_v or_o can_v i_o be_v bind_v to_o satisfy_v in_o as_o good_a sort_n as_o any_o way_n convenient_o i_o can_v have_v therefore_o encouradgement_n by_o these_o reason_n to_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n &_o have_v now_o by_o god_n grace_n finish_v it_o in_o manner_n as_o you_o see_v i_o present_v the_o same_o unto_o your_o honour_n as_o a_o undoubted_a token_n of_o my_o dutiful_a affection_n towards_o you_o beseech_v you_o not_o only_o to_o take_v the_o pain_n as_o your_o leisure_n serve_v you_o to_o peruse_v it_o over_o yourself_o but_o also_o desyre_v you_o to_o be_v unto_o it_o such_o a_o patron_n as_o that_o it_o come_v abroad_o thus_o by_o your_o provocation_n it_o may_v have_v your_o best_a protection_n and_o countenance_n to_o pass_v up_o and_o down_o open_o and_o bold_o both_o in_o the_o view_n of_o friend_n and_o foe_n unto_o it_o there_o be_v prefix_v before_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n book_n which_o your_o honour_n deliver_v i_o a_o long_a preface_n to_o the_o reader_n make_v as_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o the_o publisher_n thereof_o in_o english_a and_o there_o be_v annex_v unto_o it_o in_o the_o late_a end_n a_o offer_n of_o a_o catholic_a as_o he_o be_v there_o term_v to_o a_o learned_a protestant_n consist_v of_o two_o and_o twenty_o demand_n and_o six_o sign_n of_o false_a prophet_n heretic_n and_o schismatics_n the_o preface_n i_o have_v answer_v and_o the_o answer_n thereunto_o i_o have_v place_v next_o unto_o my_o answer_n unto_o albines_n book_n itself_o somewhat_o also_o i_o have_v annex_v that_o answer_n of_o i_o to_o his_o book_n finish_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n to_o show_v the_o vanity_n and_o childishness_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o author_n have_v utter_v in_o the_o application_n of_o those_o six_o sign_n to_o we_o but_o to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v concern_v those_o two_o and_o twenty_o demand_n i_o have_v say_v nothing_o and_o indeed_o because_o otherwise_o the_o book_n be_v grow_v far_o great_a than_o i_o imagine_v at_o the_o first_o it_o will_v i_o have_v not_o at_o all_o insert_v that_o offer_n nor_o any_o part_n thereof_o the_o reason_n of_o my_o not_o meddle_v at_o all_o with_o those_o two_o and_o twenty_o demand_n and_o not_o trouble_v this_o my_o book_n at_o all_o with_o any_o part_n of_o that_o offer_n be_v that_o doctor_n fulke_n long_o ago_o have_v answer_v those_o demand_n and_o that_o also_o now_o of_o late_a master_n crowley_n have_v at_o large_a answer_v both_o they_o and_o that_o which_o be_v add_v concern_v those_o sign_n doctor_n fulke_n answer_v thereunto_o may_v be_v have_v under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o answer_n of_o a_o christian_a protestant_n to_o the_o proud_a challenge_n of_o a_o popish_a catholic_a and_o it_o be_v prefix_v common_o before_o his_o book_n write_v in_o confutation_n of_o allens_n of_o purgatory_n indeed_o concern_v the_o six_o sign_n he_o say_v nothing_o not_o because_o of_o any_o great_a matter_n in_o they_o then_o in_o the_o rest_n but_o because_o at_o the_o first_o they_o be_v not_o publish_v with_o the_o other_o the_o demand_n though_o he_o have_v answer_v short_o according_a to_o his_o manner_n yet_o so_o sharp_o and_o effectual_o he_o have_v do_v it_o that_o if_o the_o challenger_n be_v a_o man_n of_o his_o word_n he_o continue_v not_o long_o after_o a_o popish_a catholic_a master_n crowleys_n answer_v to_o the_o whole_a offer_n word_n for_o word_n as_o it_o be_v annex_v
to_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n book_n be_v extant_a under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o deliberate_a answer_n to_o a_o rash_a offer_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v print_v by_o john_n charlewoode_n in_o london_n 1588._o they_o both_o have_v with_o their_o answer_n set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o the_o offerer_n the_o travel_n of_o these_o two_o man_n have_v ease_v both_o i_o &_o this_o book_n of_o i_o of_o meddle_v any_o further_a than_o i_o have_v say_v with_o that_o challenger_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o since_o he_o have_v his_o first_o answer_n we_o never_o yet_o hear_v that_o he_o have_v either_o skill_n or_o will_n to_o reply_v i_o may_v well_o enough_o consider_v the_o largeness_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o master_n crowleys_n answer_v thereunto_o have_v omit_v that_o which_o i_o further_o have_v say_v to_o answer_v his_o six_o sign_n not_o touch_v by_o doctor_n fulke_n but_o that_o what_o i_o have_v write_v thereabouts_o be_v write_v before_o i_o see_v master_n crowleys_n answer_v and_o that_o i_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o let_v it_o stand_v that_o so_o betwixt_o we_o three_o the_o whole_a thus_o may_v be_v twice_o answer_v though_o it_o be_v master_n crowley_n who_o as_o i_o note_v before_o in_o the_o first_o leaf_n of_o his_o book_n make_v answer_n to_o this_o offer_n that_o give_v that_o judgement_n that_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n book_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o so_o much_o apostasy_n of_o late_a here_o among_o we_o yet_o he_o as_o he_o there_o show_v will_v not_o bestow_v time_n in_o answer_v of_o it_o because_o suppose_v by_o the_o title_n it_o be_v write_v by_o a_o frenchman_n &_o therefore_o either_o in_o french_a or_o latin_a he_o think_v that_o either_o beza_n or_o some_o other_o french_a protestant_n have_v do_v it_o already_o sufficient_o this_o when_o i_o read_v first_o it_o cause_v i_o to_o be_v the_o slack_a both_o in_o finish_v and_o publish_v this_o answer_n of_o i_o yet_o in_o the_o end_n forasmuch_o as_o this_o be_v now_o among_o we_o in_o english_a and_o therefore_o in_o his_o opinion_n have_v hurt_v so_o much_o and_o so_o many_o english_a person_n and_o i_o can_v never_o learn_v of_o any_o certainty_n that_o in_o any_o other_o language_n it_o have_v be_v direct_o answer_v by_o any_o i_o think_v it_o needful_a and_o the_o best_a way_n whether_o any_o such_o answer_n in_o any_o other_o tongue_n have_v be_v make_v unto_o it_o elsewhere_o or_o not_o to_o prevent_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v any_o further_a such_o danger_n among_o we_o by_o it_o to_o accompany_v such_o poison_n with_o his_o fit_a counterpoison_v that_o be_v such_o a_o english_a popish_a discourse_n with_o a_o english_a christian_n answer_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o howsoever_o by_o the_o title_n there_o be_v show_v that_o the_o author_n be_v a_o frenchman_n yet_o indeed_o i_o can_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o be_v so_o for_o his_o publisher_n in_o english_a take_v leisure_n as_o he_o have_v to_o trouble_v his_o reader_n with_o a_o long_a tedious_a and_o frivolous_a preface_n have_v not_o therein_o so_o much_o as_o secret_o once_o insinuate_v unto_o we_o in_o what_o language_n the_o author_n write_v it_o yea_o he_o have_v not_o once_o mention_v any_o translation_n of_o it_o either_o by_o himself_o or_o any_o other_o the_o consideration_n whereof_o together_o with_o sundry_a phrase_n and_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o book_n make_v i_o rather_o think_v that_o some_o of_o our_o own_o fugitive_n english_a jesuit_n or_o seminary_a priest_n indeed_o have_v make_v it_o than_o any_o such_o archdeacon_n of_o tolosa_n in_o france_n as_o be_v pretend_v but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v not_o much_o material_a and_o therefore_o i_o have_v not_o be_v herein_o curious_a for_o these_o my_o reason_n notwithstanding_o in_o all_o this_o my_o answer_n unto_o he_o i_o frame_v my_o speech_n as_o to_o the_o author_n who_o name_n it_o bear_v and_o howsoever_o i_o may_v doubt_v of_o his_o person_n and_o country_n of_o this_o i_o be_o certain_a whosoever_o he_o be_v french_z or_o english_a the_o son_n of_o that_o bondwoman_n ishmael_n be_v never_o cunning_a in_o persecute_v the_o son_n of_o the_o freewoman_n isaac_n with_o scoff_n &_o mock_n than_o the_o author_n thereof_o be_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n to_o do_v what_o may_v be_v do_v to_o vex_v and_o grieve_v us._n whosoever_o he_o be_v the_o right_a popish_a vain_a &_o spirit_n of_o writing_n he_o have_v for_o in_o so_o short_a a_o piece_n of_o work_n i_o be_o persuade_v by_o that_o you_o have_v view_v he_o over_o together_o with_o this_o answer_n of_o i_o your_o lordship_n will_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o never_o any_o of_o that_o faction_n go_v beyond_o he_o in_o shameful_a beg_n always_o the_o thing_n most_o in_o question_n in_o subtle_a slip_n from_o the_o matter_n undertake_v to_o prove_v into_o other_o more_o easy_a for_o he_o &_o not_o in_o question_n in_o false_a quote_v &_o abuse_v the_o testimony_n which_o he_o allege_n or_o in_o barrenness_n of_o matter_n or_o method_n in_o such_o copy_n of_o swell_a brag_a and_o triumph_v word_n sure_o i_o be_o for_o my_o own_o part_n though_o i_o know_v these_o be_v the_o common_a ornament_n of_o popish_a writer_n that_o i_o never_o read_v any_o who_o book_n consist_v so_o whole_o of_o these_o as_o this_o of_o he_o but_o to_o leave_v he_o as_o he_o be_v whosoever_o he_o be_v and_o to_o return_v unto_o your_o lordship_n once_o again_o i_o dedicate_v and_o offer_v this_o my_o poor_a labour_n unto_o your_o honourable_a view_n &_o protection_n which_o i_o do_v not_o because_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n which_o i_o have_v therein_o teach_v and_o defend_v stand_v need_n of_o the_o patronage_n of_o man_n for_o god_n the_o author_n thereof_o can_v and_o will_v defend_v and_o protect_v that_o though_o all_o the_o great_a man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v band_v themselves_o against_o it_o but_o for_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a other_o reason_n just_o i_o move_v thereunto_o one_o be_v which_o i_o have_v touch_v already_o that_o of_o right_a the_o dedication_n hereof_o appertain_v to_o you_o because_o i_o have_v never_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n but_o by_o your_o lordship_n motion_n &_o persuasion_n a_o other_o be_v that_o you_o since_o my_o come_n to_o the_o place_n where_o i_o be_o for_o these_o eleven_o year_n last_o pass_v have_v always_o be_v &_o yet_o be_v a_o most_o love_a &_o fatherly_a patron_n to_o my_o ministry_n i_o and_o i_o by_o which_o right_n though_o that_o former_a reason_n have_v not_o be_v your_o honour_n may_v worthy_o challenge_v not_o only_o in_o this_o but_o also_o in_o all_o other_o such_o poor_a fruit_n of_o i_o grow_v from_o i_o thus_o nourish_v and_o cherish_v under_o your_o lordship_n patronage_n great_a interest_n than_o this_o which_o i_o offer_v you_o now_o herein_o but_o if_o neither_o of_o these_o two_o reason_n have_v be_v yet_o you_o be_v the_o man_n you_o be_v that_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n &_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o far_o as_o you_o be_v know_v which_o be_v very_o far_o among_o the_o godly_a and_o true_o religious_a a_o man_n by_o birth_n honourable_a for_o martial_a prowess_n more_o and_o for_o gift_n of_o sound_n learning_n religion_n and_o virtue_n most_o of_o of_o all_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o esteem_v even_o that_o will_v have_v draw_v i_o though_o otherwise_o i_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a stranger_n unto_o you_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o have_v seek_v to_o have_v testify_v my_o dutiful_a and_o hearty_a good_a affection_n towards_o you_o for_o piety_n join_v with_o christian_a nobility_n have_v be_v the_o ancient_a cause_n why_o the_o godly_a learned_a in_o ancient_a time_n have_v dedicate_v their_o work_n to_o such_o as_o they_o have_v judge_v true_o qualify_v therewith_o doubtless_o thereby_o both_o the_o better_a to_o encourage_v they_o to_o who_o they_o dedicate_v their_o labour_n to_o proceed_v and_o go_v on_o in_o the_o good_a course_n they_o have_v begin_v and_o thereby_o to_o provoke_v other_o to_o imitate_v their_o good_a example_n that_o the_o like_a honourable_a opinion_n may_v by_o such_o also_o be_v conceive_v of_o they_o &_o likewise_o when_o occasion_n shall_v serve_v to_o their_o comfort_n testify_v public_o of_o they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n what_o else_o move_v ambrose_n to_o dedicate_v his_o book_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o spirit_n to_o gratian_n the_o emperor_n what_o else_o cause_v lactantius_n to_o dedicate_v his_o divine_a institu●●ons_n to_o constantine_n or_o what_o else_o enduce_v the_o holy_a evangelist_n s._n luke_n to_o dedicate_v his_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o noble_a theophilus_n it_o be_v doubtless_o great_a honour_n unto_o these_o man_n in_o their_o ●imes_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n
word_n to_o trust_v they_o any_o more_o in_o their_o quote_v or_o cite_v of_o the_o father_n but_o lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o slip_n of_o he_o by_o chance_n &_o that_o he_o be_v not_o his_o craftes-master_n in_o this_o kind_n of_o deal_v he_o have_v play_v we_o the_o very_a like_o trick_n again_o with_o this_o same_o father_n pa._n 18._o &_o where_o he_o allege_v the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v irenaeus_n three_o book_n to_o justify_v their_o tradition_n not_o warrant_v by_o the_o write_a word_n for_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o say_a chapter_n not_o five_o line_n before_o the_o word_n cite_v by_o he_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n write_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o euamgelist_n he_o say_v that_o they_o into_o that_o rich_a treasury_n most_o full_o have_v bring_v all_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o truth_n so_o that_o every_o one_o that_o will_v may_v from_o thence_o take_v the_o drink_n of_o life_n and_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n allege_v by_o he_o of_o follow_v of_o tradition_n it_o be_v speak_v only_o by_o way_n of_o supposition_n to_o show_v what_o course_n have_v be_v best_a for_o the_o church_n when_o any_o question_n shall_v have_v arisen_a if_o they_o have_v not_o leave_v we_o scripture_n for_o his_o word_n be_v these_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o leave_v we_o scripture_n must_v we_o not_o have_v follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o give_v to_o they_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v church_n in_o which_o case_n which_o be_v not_o our_o case_n now_o see_v they_o have_v leave_v we_o scripture_n we_o grant_v we_o shall_v have_v be_v in_o the_o decide_n of_o all_o controversy_n that_o can_v have_v arisen_a overrule_v by_o that_o which_o they_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n to_o such_o and_o therefore_o that_o be_v the_o case_n no_o better_o or_o ready_a way_n for_o the_o end_n of_o controversy_n shall_v there_o have_v be_v then_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o they_o be_v conversant_a and_o so_o by_o their_o tradition_n to_o have_v learn_v the_o certainty_n therein_o but_o thus_o by_o way_n of_o supposition_n irenaeus_n speak_v of_o their_o tradition_n in_o the_o case_n suppose_v by_o he_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o by_o their_o tradition_n he_o understand_v that_o sound_a form_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v by_o their_o preach_n &_o teach_v which_o they_o will_v &_o shall_v have_v be_v the_o same_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o speak_v &_o write_v by_o one_o spirit_n that_o now_o they_o have_v leave_v we_o in_o writing_n and_o therefore_o even_o then_o the_o romish_a church_n shall_v have_v be_v as_o far_o to_o seek_v as_o she_o be_v now_o for_o have_v any_o warrant_n from_o thence_o for_o those_o thing_n that_o she_o hold_v either_o contrary_a or_o beside_o the_o word_n write_v and_o that_o by_o tradition_n he_o mean_v here_o no_o other_o thing_n it_o be_v evident_a for_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n he_o say_v plain_o quod_fw-la tum_fw-la praeconiaverunt_fw-la postea_fw-la per_fw-la dei_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la nobis_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la in_o scripture_n columnam_fw-la &_o fundamentum_fw-la fidei_fw-la futurum_fw-la that_o be_v that_o which_o first_o they_o preach_v after_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n have_v before_o speak_v of_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n he_o after_o show_v what_o he_o mean_v thereby_o namely_o this_o that_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n &c_n &c_n as_o he_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n contrary_a to_o the_o fantastical_a frantic_a dream_n of_o valentinian_n so_o plain_o show_v that_o they_o that_o will_v even_o by_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o may_v learn_v what_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n be_v now_o what_o be_v this_o for_o the_o authorish_a the_o unwriten_a tradition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n which_o be_v not_o only_o all_o beside_o the_o scripture_n but_o whereof_o the_o most_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o but_o this_o gentle_a reader_n be_v the_o right_a trick_n of_o all_o the_o crew_n of_o these_o romanist_n thus_o by_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o seek_v to_o colour_v their_o absurd_a opinion_n &_o so_o ere_fw-we thou_o be_v a_o ware_n to_o deceive_v thou_o if_o thou_o take_v not_o heed_n as_o for_o example_n to_o persuade_v a_o man_n to_o like_v of_o their_o beggarly_a unwritten_a tradition_n whatsoever_o any_o father_n speak_v of_o tradition_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o plain_a in_o the_o author_n himself_o that_o thereby_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o such_o tradition_n as_o they_o yet_o that_o must_v be_v confident_o bring_v in_o as_o fit_v &_o most_o pregnant_a for_o their_o purpose_n likewise_o whatsoever_o any_o father_n have_v say_v of_o any_o sacramental_a change_n of_o the_o outward_a element_n for_o that_o therein_o their_o name_n use_v &_o estimation_n be_v change_v though_o the_o same_o father_n in_o a_o thousand_o other_o place_n show_v that_o his_o judgement_n be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o change_n at_o all_o there_o in_o substance_n yet_o that_o must_v be_v quote_v as_o a_o flat_a place_n for_o popish_a transubstantiation_n and_o even_o so_o if_o they_o find_v in_o a_o father_n speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n any_o mention_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n but_o that_o which_o they_o dream_v to_o be_v there_o that_o must_v be_v urge_v as_o a_o strong_a place_n to_o prove_v their_o blasphemous_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a &_o the_o dead_a and_o this_o juggle_n with_o the_o father_n and_o cozen_v of_o their_o poor_a simple_a reader_n use_v they_o in_o all_o their_o controversy_n but_o at_o this_o time_n thou_o must_v pardon_v this_o preface_n writer_n this_o fault_n because_o herein_o he_o do_v but_o study_n to_o be_v like_o he_o before_o who_o book_n he_o have_v set_v this_o his_o preface_n for_o chapter_n the_o five_o he_o himself_o most_o gross_o commit_v this_o same_o fault_n in_o the_o detection_n whereof_o i_o have_v more_o at_o large_a discover_v this_o lewd_a deal_n of_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o not_o forget_v that_o irenaeus_n have_v teach_v we_o what_o that_o church_n be_v who_o those_o pastor_n be_v &_o what_o those_o tradition_n be_v that_o we_o must_v obey_v &_o be_v rule_v by_o namely_o only_o that_o church_n that_o have_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o her_o faith_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 1._o those_o pastor_n that_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n li._n 4._o cap._n 43._o &_o those_o tradition_n which_o have_v good_a warrant_n from_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o whereof_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o place_n &_o reason_n quote_v by_o he_o either_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o father_n to_o bind_v we_o to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o their_o church_n ordinance_n their_o prelate_n commandment_n &_o to_o the_o point_v warrant_v only_o by_o their_o tradition_n their_o church_n have_v another_o foundation_n of_o her_o faith_n then_o the_o word_n write_v namely_o always_o their_o pope_n will_n as_o it_o have_v &_o the_o commandment_n of_o their_o prelate_n &_o tradition_n be_v not_o only_o beside_o but_o also_o often_o most_o gross_o contrary_a to_o that_o word_n of_o god_n write_v as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o sundry_a place_n o_z i_o have_v do_v with_o albine_n in_o irenaeus_n judgement_n be_v but_o so_o many_o abusing_n and_o corrupting_n of_o their_o holy_a &_o good_a meaning_n and_o yet_o thus_o have_v to_o no_o purpose_n bestow_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o idle_a pain_n as_o one_o that_o have_v say_v enough_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o learned_a father_n the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o christian_a region_n &_o prescription_n of_o time_n be_v all_o full_a &_o fast_o of_o his_o side_n he_o lusty_o brag_v p._n 22._o that_n if_o their_o be_v any_o weight_n in_o any_o or_o all_o these_o together_o that_o his_o side_n have_v the_o true_a gospel_n &_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o very_a christian_a religion_n their_o order_n of_o ceremony_n the_o right_a order_n and_o that_o their_o fast_n and_o pray_v be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o therefore_o their_o church_n be_v the_o lawful_a and_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n from_o which_o who_o so_o separate_v himself_o be_v in_o state_n of_o damnation_n this_o thus_o only_o say_v thereupon_o by_o and_o by_o as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o
the_o picture_n of_o jesus_n or_o soon_o of_o the_o saint_n yet_o he_o condemn_v it_o as_o contrary_a both_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o christian_a religion_n &_o therefore_o persuade_v he_o not_o to_o suffer_v any_o such_o thing_n any_o more_o for_o it_o become_v he_o to_o banish_v such_o superstition_n which_o be_v unseemly_a for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n yea_o lactantius_n lib._n 2_o cap._n 19_o of_o his_o divine_a institution_n say_v flat_o that_o their_o can_v be_v no_o religion_n where_o there_o be_v a_o image_n he_o live_v &_o flourish_v in_o the_o year_n 320._o and_o s_o augustine_n who_o live_v after_o all_o these_o before_o name_v for_o he_o die_v not_o before_o the_o year_n 430._o de_fw-la consensu_fw-la euangelistarum_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap_n 2._o write_v that_o they_o even_o deserve_v to_o err_v which_o seek_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n not_o in_o book_n but_o in_o paint_a wall_n yea_o gregory_n the_o great_a as_o they_o call_v he_o bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o the_o paint_n of_o story_n for_o a_o ornament_n of_o the_o church_n be_v think_v tolerable_a yet_o he_o lib._n 7._o epist_n 109._o &_o lib._n 9_o epist_n 9_o to_o serenus_n slat_o condemn_v the_o adore_a &_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o whereas_o by_o occasion_n of_o this_o tolerate_n of_o historical_a paint_n of_o they_o through_o the_o superstition_n &_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n within_o short_a time_n by_o little_a &_o little_a the_o worship_v of_o they_o grow_v to_o be_v too_o much_o use_v &_o like_v of_o many_o especial_o in_o these_o western_a part_n &_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o by_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 700._o the_o emperor_n leo_n the_o three_o in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n consist_v of_o 330._o bishop_n there_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o that_o council_n decree_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v quite_o remove_v out_o of_o church_n &_o burn_v &_o severe_o he_o punish_v those_o which_o notwithstanding_o will_v persevere_v in_o the_o worship_v of_o they_o and_o the_o same_o course_n take_v his_o successor_n constantine_n by_o another_o great_a council_n hold_v their_o ratify_v the_o former_a &_o two_o emperor_n more_o succeed_v he_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o while_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o stand_v they_o what_o they_o may_v &_o decree_v as_o fast_o for_o the_o retain_v &_o worship_v of_o they_o as_o they_o can_v as_o it_o appear_v in_o sigebert_n blondus_n &_o other_o howbeit_o though_o also_o in_o the_o time_n of_o irene_n &_o the_o nonage_n of_o her_o son_n constantine_n in_o the_o east_n through_o the_o suggestion_n of_o therasius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n they_o get_v there_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o nicaea_n consist_v of_o three_o hundred_o &_o fifty_o bishop_n where_o to_o curry_v favour_n again_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o upon_o the_o former_a occasion_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o sigebert_n &_o other_o have_v be_v a_o shrewd_a traitorous_a mean_n to_o cause_v these_o western_a part_n to_o revolt_v from_o the_o empire_n they_o decree_v according_a to_o their_o humour_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o image_n yet_o africa_n &_o asia_n the_o great_a can_v never_o be_v bring_v to_o receive_v those_o canon_n there_o make_v yea_o &_o that_o more_o be_v though_o by_o that_o time_n the_o pope_n have_v make_v charles_n the_o great_a very_o much_o behold_v to_o he_o in_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o translate_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n unto_o he_o so_o be_v those_o canon_n in_o this_o point_n mislike_v &_o contradict_v here_o in_o thes_n western_a part_n that_o a_o council_n in_o his_o time_n &_o by_o his_o mean_n as_o the_o emperor_n be_v call_v at_o francford_n whereunto_o come_v many_o bishop_n of_o italy_n france_n germany_n &_o other_o country_n yet_o there_o even_o for_o this_o point_n be_v that_o council_n of_o nice_a reject_v &_o conden_v as_o a_o wicked_a council_n witness_n both_o regino_n lib._n 2._o anno_fw-la 794._o &_o also_o one_o hinckmare_n not_o long_o after_o those_o time_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n write_v against_o another_o of_o his_o name_n they_o bishop_n of_o jandune_n or_o lavedune_n as_o some_o call_v it_o ca._n 20._o where_o he_o for_o further_a proof_n of_o this_o to_o be_v true_a write_v that_o the_o bishop_n their_o assemble_v cause_v a_o book_n of_o purpose_n to_o be_v write_v &_o send_v to_o rome_n contain_v at_o large_a a_o confutation_n of_o all_o the_o reason_n use_v for_o image_n at_o nicaea_n which_o in_o his_o young_a year_n he_o see_v &_o which_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o pope_n library_n augustine_n steuchus_n confess_v to_o lie_v there_o write_v in_o ancient_a character_n the_o donatione_n constantini_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 59_o nu_fw-la 60._o and_o roger_n hovoden_n who_o live_v 400._o year_n ago_o in_o his_o continuation_n of_o bedeas_n story_n in_o the_o year_n 792._o show_v how_o charles_n send_v the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n of_o nice_a hither_o wherein_o as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v decree_v that_o image_n ought_v to_o be_v adore_v which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n utter_o detest_v report_v that_o one_o albirus_n here_o write_v a_o epistle_n against_o that_o determination_n marvellous_o ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o carry_v into_o france_n as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o bishop_n by_o occasion_n whereof_o the_o rather_o it_o shall_v seem_v short_o after_o charles_n think_v meet_v to_o call_v the_o foresay_a council_n at_o francford_n all_o these_o thing_n notwithstanding_o never_o be_v image_n pillar_n and_o cross_n more_o idolatrous_o decree_v to_o be_v worship_v their_o nor_o ever_o be_v idol_n more_o gross_o adore_v of_o heretic_n or_o the_o very_a pagan_n and_o heathen_a than_o they_o have_v be_v &_o yet_o be_v of_o superstitious_a papist_n for_o they_o crouch_v &_o kneel_v unto_o they_o present_a offering_n before_o they_o they_o run_v a_o pilgrimage_n unto_o they_o and_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o that_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o who_o image_n and_o monument_n they_o be_v though_o in_o a_o other_o manner_n not_o for_o their_o own_o sake_n but_o for_o they_o who_o remembrance_n they_o be_v but_o indeed_o if_o in_o worship_v of_o they_o they_o do_v not_o principal_o respect_v the_o image_n themselves_o why_o shall_v there_o not_o be_v as_o great_a devotion_n as_o many_o pilgrimage_n &_o as_o great_a offering_n present_v &_o yield_v to_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n mary_n or_o of_o any_o other_o aswell_o in_o one_o place_n as_o in_o a_o other_o well_o howsoever_o they_o will_v do_v wicked_o herein_o and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v seek_v to_o colour_v the_o matter_n such_o in_o truth_n all_o the_o world_n see_v herein_o have_v be_v their_o deal_n that_o euthymius_n in_o his_o panoply_n have_v never_o more_o cause_v to_o name_v the_o armenian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v idolater_n to_o the_o cross_n for_o their_o gross_a and_o superstitious_a worship_v of_o it_o than_o we_o have_v general_o to_o count_v and_o call_v the_o romanist_n flat_a idolater_n for_o their_o behaviour_n towards_o it_o and_o other_o image_n also_o thus_o then_o hope_v by_o this_o that_o i_o have_v say_v concern_v this_o point_n that_o not_o only_o thou_o may_v see_v goodreader_n when_o and_o how_o this_o point_n of_o popery_n first_o come_v in_o but_o how_o and_o by_o who_o it_o have_v be_v oppugn_v but_o consequent_o also_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v herein_o destitute_a both_o of_o scripture_n father_n consent_n of_o christian_a region_n and_o all_o that_o she_o brag_v of_o let_v we_o see_v if_o we_o can_v show_v the_o like_a concern_v the_o other_o point_n of_o force_a single_a life_n upon_o the_o clergy_n which_o she_o hold_v to_o be_v so_o necessary_a and_o holy_a a_o ordinance_n as_o that_o by_o no_o mean_n without_o deadly_a sin_n it_o may_v be_v transgress_v even_o in_o this_o as_o in_o the_o former_a if_o we_o search_v the_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n well_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o have_v very_o ancient_a heretic_n to_o be_v their_o first_o father_n &_o leader_n for_o the_o tacianist_n common_o call_v encratites_n of_o their_o abstinence_n from_o marriage_n &_o certain_a other_o thing_n who_o begin_v about_o the_o year_n one_o hundred_o forty_o two_o be_v great_a condemner_n of_o marriage_n as_o appear_v in_o aug._n ad_fw-la quodvult_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o in_o epiphanius_n write_v of_o they_o heresi_n 46._o after_o they_o spring_v up_o the_o manichee_n who_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v enemy_n to_o marriage_n but_o not_o so_o universal_o as_o the_o former_a for_o they_o permit_v it_o to_o other_o and_o restrain_v only_o their_o clergy_n from_o it_o who_o they_o call_v their_o elect_a as_o august_n witness_v of_o they_o epist_n 74._o but_o indeed_o as_o many_o as_o
will_v be_v perfect_a &_o have_v in_o any_o great_a reckon_n among_o they_o they_o be_v in_o any_o case_n to_o abstain_v from_o marriage_n and_o as_o we_o find_v that_o these_o and_o other_o heretic_n be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o this_o point_n so_o we_o find_v that_o augustine_n epiphanius_n and_o other_o that_o write_v against_o they_o condemn_v this_o for_o a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n in_o they_o but_o i_o know_v they_o will_v reply_v that_o herein_o we_o do_v they_o wrong_v in_o that_o we_o resemble_v they_o to_o these_o for_o these_o they_o say_v make_v this_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o their_o do_v that_o they_o hold_v marriage_n itself_o to_o be_v a_o unclean_a and_o filthy_a estate_n of_o life_n and_o therefore_o not_o fit_a for_o they_o that_o will_v serve_v the_o lord_n to_o live_v in_o which_o they_o say_v they_o do_v not_o hold_v indeed_o thus_o it_o be_v their_o fashion_n when_o for_o any_o of_o their_o absurd_a error_n they_o be_v press_v with_o our_o objection_n against_o they_o than_o somewhat_o to_o avoid_v the_o extremity_n of_o the_o foil_n to_o set_v a_o far_o better_a state_n of_o the_o question_n than_o otherwise_o either_o their_o common_a practice_n or_o doctrine_n will_v bear_v but_o when_o they_o find_v the_o chase_n end_v and_o themselves_o by_o such_o shift_n in_o some_o sort_n as_o they_o think_v to_o have_v escape_v then_o have_v recover_v their_o breath_n again_o they_o fall_v to_o their_o old_a flat_a grossness_n in_o the_o point_n in_o their_o life_n and_o teach_n and_o even_o so_o deal_v they_o in_o this_o for_o their_o whole_a and_o general_a practice_n make_v it_o most_o evident_a in_o that_o they_o rather_o tolerate_v their_o priest_n to_o have_v concubine_n to_o run_v to_o the_o stue_n yea_o and_o to_o commit_v sodomitry_n then_o to_o marry_o that_o indeed_o they_o think_v marriage_n be_v more_o unclean_a and_o defile_v their_o priesthood_n more_o than_o all_o these_o and_o dist_n 82._o gratian_n cite_v a_o say_n of_o pope_n siritius_n wherein_o in_o plain_a term_n he_o advouch_v they_o that_o hold_v that_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v marry_v and_o beget_v child_n as_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v to_o be_v follower_n of_o lust_n and_o therein_o teacher_n of_o vice_n fron_n which_o profound_a divinity_n it_o come_v that_o the_o same_o siritius_n will_v persuade_v that_o therefore_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v not_o marry_v because_o saint_n paul_n say_v they_o that_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n as_o though_o to_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n with_o paul_n and_o to_o live_v in_o the_o state_n of_o marriage_n be_v all_o one_o which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o what_o mean_v s._n paul_n to_o teach_v 1._o cor._n 7._o that_o he_o that_o bestow_v his_o daughter_n in_o marriage_n do_v well_o that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a heb._n 13._o and_o that_o they_o that_o deny_v in_o hypocrisy_n the_o lawfulness_n thereof_o be_v such_o as_o have_v therein_o give_v ear_n unto_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n and_o thereby_o show_v that_o their_o conscience_n be_v burn_v as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n and_o that_o they_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n 1._o tim._n 4._o but_o they_o will_v say_v perhaps_o they_o be_v now_o ashamed_a of_o this_o old_a siritius_n &_o of_o his_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n doubtless_o if_o they_o be_v not_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n why_o they_o shall_v but_o i_o have_v two_o reason_n why_o i_o think_v they_o be_v not_o first_o because_o he_o be_v pope_n of_o rome_n they_o know_v then_o because_o even_o of_o late_a one_o gregory_n martin_n a_o great_a learned_a man_n as_o they_o account_v he_o write_v against_o our_o english_a translation_n chap._n 15._o sect_n 2._o write_v of_o this_o point_n even_o now_o as_o though_o that_o pope_n spirit_n still_o direct_v he_o flat_o that_o by_o marriage_n their_o priesthood_n be_v profane_v and_o make_v mere_a laical_a and_o popular_a wherefore_o i_o see_v not_o but_o that_o they_o be_v and_o may_v worthy_o still_o of_o we_o herein_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o right_a scholar_n &_o successor_n of_o the_o former_a heretic_n howbeit_o this_o i_o must_v needs_o further_o grant_v they_o that_o in_o peruse_v the_o writing_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o chronicle_n of_o time_n i_o find_v even_o among_o they_o that_o otherwise_o yet_o seem_v to_o be_v christian_n and_o not_o heretic_n and_o that_o of_o very_o ancient_a time_n and_o so_o from_o time_n to_o time_n that_o have_v be_v favourer_n and_o urger_n of_o single_a life_n in_o minister_n for_o i_o find_v by_o that_o that_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n have_v write_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o the_o 3._o &_o 7._o book_n stromat_n who_o flourish_v within_o 200._o year_n after_o christ_n that_o they_o some_o earnest_o urge_v single_a life_n as_o a_o life_n most_o holy_a &_o fit_a for_o such_o and_o i_o know_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o constantine_n time_n it_o be_v attempt_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o canon_n to_o bind_v minister_n universal_o to_o live_v single_a without_o the_o use_n or_o company_n of_o wife_n &_o that_o after_o that_o siritius_n before_o speak_v of_o about_o the_o year_n 390._o after_o he_o gregory_n the_o first_o ann_n 600._o or_o thereabouts_o &_o after_o that_o sundry_a other_o pope_n namely_o &_o especial_o about_o 1000_o year_n after_o christ_n &_o after_o be_v marvelous_a eager_a and_o busy_a by_o their_o own_o authority_n &_o decree_n of_o counsel_n summon_v by_o their_o mean_n to_o establish_v &_o ratify_v this_o point_n whereupon_o as_o in_o other_o cuntreies_n of_o these_o western_a part_n to_o please_v they_o withal_o herein_o england_n many_o bishop_n as_o namely_o lancfranke_a dunstane_n &_o anselme_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v marvelous_a forward_o in_o their_o time_n to_o further_o this_o device_n by_o mean_n whereof_o many_o decree_n pass_v in_o smode_n and_o counsel_n and_o many_o great_a thing_n be_v attempt_v &_o do_v to_o this_o end_n but_o yet_o then_o understand_v withal_o well-beloved_a that_o clemens_n in_o the_o place_n before_o quote_v confute_v &_o withstand_v notable_o these_o hypocrite_n both_o by_o example_n &_o reason_n even_o now_o use_v by_o we_o against_o these_o their_o successor_n that_o one_o paphnutius_fw-la in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a though_o unmarried_a himself_o do_v so_o effectual_o withstand_v that_o attempt_n that_o it_o do_v not_o there_o pass_v that_o siritius_n be_v by_o a_o bishop_n of_o terragon_n confute_v &_o withstand_v &_o that_o gregory_n the_o first_o upon_o the_o find_n of_o 600._o child_n head_n after_o the_o cast_n of_o certain_a great_a pond_n near_o unto_o the_o abode_n of_o many_o enforce_v to_o that_o vow_n of_o single_a life_n revoke_v his_o determination_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o a_o epistle_n of_o one_o hulricke_n bishop_n of_o augusta_n to_o pope_n nicolas_n upon_o this_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o let_v they_o marry_v they_o to_o give_v occasion_n of_o such_o murder_n further_o in_o hildebrands_n time_n who_o after_o he_o be_v pope_n be_v call_v gregory_n the_o seven_o though_o we_o find_v that_o he_o of_o all_o that_o go_v before_o he_o be_v herein_o most_o extreme_a and_o go_v further_a yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o read_v in_o sigebert_n h._n mutiꝰ_n &_o other_o that_o he_o and_o his_o decree_n in_o this_o point_n be_v open_o &_o stout_o resist_v not_o only_o at_o constance_n &_o mentz_n in_o germany_n but_o also_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n and_o other_o cuntreies_n both_o by_o open_a preach_n &_o live_v with_o their_o wife_n do_v what_o he_o can_v and_o his_o successor_n for_o a_o great_a space_n he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o bind_v bishop_n &_o archbishop_n upon_o their_o oath_n to_o admit_v none_o into_o the_o ministry_n unless_o first_o they_o will_v vow_v a_o single_a life_n &_o yet_o after_o he_o have_v do_v what_o he_o can_v &_o pascalis_n that_o succeed_v he_o &_o anselme_n also_o their_o chaplein_n here_o to_o cause_v that_o decree_n to_o take_v place_n yet_o as_o our_o chronicle_n show_v gerhardus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o york_n write_v to_o that_o anselme_n that_o those_o that_o come_v for_o order_n to_o he_o will_v not_o vow_v single_a life_n and_o howsoever_o they_o prevail_v in_o other_o place_n before_o polidor_n say_v that_o the_o restraint_n of_o their_o marriage_n begin_v here_o first_o to_o be_v attempt_v ann_n 670._o hist_o ang._n l._n 6._o &_o the_o inventoribꝰ_n rerum_fw-la l._n 5._o &_o fabian_n p._n 293._o write_v that_o bishop_n &_o priest_n live_v here_o 1000_o year_n together_o with_o their_o wife_n no_o law_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_n yea_o auentinus_n l_o 5._o historiae_fw-la biorun_n say_v speak_v of_o hildebrands_n time_n which_o be_v 40._o year_n at_o
least_o after_o this_o that_o priest_n have_v wife_n &_o beget_v child_n as_o other_o man_n and_o none_o of_o any_o learning_n be_v ignorant_a that_o all_o these_o stir_n about_o this_o matter_n notwitstanding_n christian_a bishop_n &_o minister_n in_o all_o other_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n under_o the_o other_o patriarch_n from_o the_o begin_n unto_o this_o day_n have_v be_v be_v marry_v &_o beget_v child_n also_o after_o they_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o ministry_n this_o also_o be_v as_o well_o know_v of_o the_o learned_a that_o not_o only_o particular_a learned_a man_n &_o holy_a father_n as_o i_o note_v before_o &_o other_o but_o also_o sundry_a counsel_n where_o multitude_n of_o such_o father_n have_v meet_v have_v write_v &_o decree_v to_o withstand_v &_o contrary_v the_o go_v forward_o of_o this_o antichristian_a ordinance_n yea_o they_o themselves_o be_v not_o ignorant_a hereof_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o sundry_a thing_n set_v down_o both_o in_o their_o text_n and_o gloss_n do_v 81.84_o &_o elsewhere_o in_o their_o canon_n law_n for_o in_o the_o 28._o distinction_n be_v note_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o gangra_n which_o be_v about_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n whereby_o he_o be_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o council_n anathematise_v that_o shall_v for_o his_o marriage_n put_v difference_n betwixt_o a_o marry_a minister_n ministry_n and_o another_o and_o therefore_o abstain_v from_o communicate_v with_o he_o and_o there_o also_o be_v cite_v a_o canon_n father_v of_o the_o apostle_n whereby_o he_o be_v accurse_v that_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n for_o religion_n sake_n and_o in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n these_o thing_n be_v remember_v with_o other_o and_o therefore_o there_o it_o be_v decree_v tom._n conc._n 2._o cap._n 13._o that_o he_o shall_v be_v depose_v that_o after_o that_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o debar_v priest_n or_o deacons_n either_o of_o marriage_n or_o of_o the_o use_n of_o their_o wife_n yea_o after_o ordination_n and_o there_o also_o further_o it_o be_v enact_v that_o if_o they_o themselves_o be_v order_v shall_v under_o pretence_n of_o piety_n put_v away_o their_o wife_n that_o they_o shall_v therefore_o be_v excommunicate_a and_o yet_o this_o be_v 680._o year_n after_o christ_n moreover_o hierom_n speak_v of_o his_o time_n say_v that_o then_o plurum_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la habebant_fw-la matrimonia_fw-la that_o be_v most_o priest_n be_v marry_v adversus_fw-la jovinianum_fw-la libro_fw-la 1._o tertullian_n himself_o be_v a_o marry_a man_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o his_o writing_n to_o his_o wife_n to_o hold_v that_o minister_n may_v not_o marry_v ignatius_n ad_fw-la philadelphenses_fw-la say_v come_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o dionysius_n corinthiacus_n write_v to_o the_o gnosian_o persuade_v their_o bishop_n pinitus_n not_o to_o impose_v a_o unnecessary_a &_o too_o heavy_a a_o burden_n of_o single_a life_n or_o chastity_n upon_o the_o brethren_n as_o we_o read_v in_o euseb_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 22._o last_o s._n bernard_n though_o he_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 1120._o which_o be_v a_o very_a corrupt_a time_n for_o this_o matter_n yet_o even_o he_o in_o his_o sixty_o six_o sermon_n upon_o the_o canticle_n thus_o far_o concern_v this_o point_n have_v plain_o write_v take_v from_o the_o church_n honourable_a matrimony_n &_o the_o bed_n undefiled_a say_v he_o and_o thou_o fille_v it_o with_o concubine_n keeper_n with_o incestuous_a person_n with_o such_o as_o have_v unclean_a issue_n of_o seed_n flow_v from_o they_o with_o wanton_n with_o sodomite_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o unclean_a person_n but_o when_o the_o bright_a evidence_n of_o these_o allegation_n seem_v to_o make_v they_o somewhat_o to_o bold_a down_o their_o head_n yet_o i_o know_v they_o have_v this_o shift_n for_o their_o last_o refuge_n that_o they_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o such_o as_o have_v be_v marry_v or_o at_o that_o present_a have_v wife_n may_v enter_v into_o the_o ministry_n but_o they_o they_o must_v be_v such_o as_o voluntary_a will_v vow_v and_o perform_v a_o single_a life_n and_o so_o thence_o forth_o abstain_v insomuch_o that_o they_o be_v so_o in_o love_n with_o this_o shift_n that_o they_o say_v &_o write_v as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o rhemish_a note_n upon_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o paul_n canon_n touch_v the_o be_v of_o such_o the_o husband_n of_o one_o wife_n be_v so_o to_o be_v understand_v &_o not_o so_o as_o that_o they_o or_o after_o once_o he_o be_v minister_v he_o may_v continue_v the_o office_n of_o a_o husband_n towards_o his_o wife_n and_o confident_o they_o dare_v and_o do_v brag_v that_o we_o never_o read_v of_o any_o other_o that_o marry_v or_o get_v child_n after_o they_o enter_v once_o into_o holy_a order_n wherein_o first_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n &_o all_o other_o church_n but_o these_o in_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n direct_o cross_v they_o again_o let_v paul_n word_n in_o deliver_v of_o his_o canon_n concern_v the_o quality_n that_o minister_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v well_o consider_v and_o any_o man_n shall_v see_v that_o it_o be_v absurd_a so_o to_o understand_v he_o that_o he_o require_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o qualify_v only_o de_fw-la praeterito_fw-la for_o the_o time_n past_a &_o not_o rather_o especial_o for_o the_o time_n present_a and_o to_o come_v see_v they_o be_v so_o confident_a in_o this_o that_o none_o marry_v ever_o or_o beget_v child_n after_o they_o be_v minister_n let_v they_o tell_v i_o of_o who_o peter_n have_v his_o daughter_n petronella_n of_o who_o their_o own_o croniclc_n speak_v so_o much_o have_v he_o she_o not_o of_o a_o lawful_a wife_n and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o we_o read_v that_o in_o the_o persecution_n under_o domitian_n she_o be_v of_o such_o flourish_a year_n that_o then_o flaccus_n a_o noble_a roman_a county_n will_v have_v have_v she_o to_o wife_n the_o time_n betwixt_o that_o and_o peter_n enter_v upon_o his_o apostleship_n be_v at_o the_o least_o fifty_o five_o year_n after_o christ_n by_o all_o likelihood_n she_o be_v get_v after_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n and_o well_o may_v it_o be_v for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o christ_n have_v teach_v they_o that_o unless_o it_o be_v for_o fornication_n no_o man_n shall_v forsake_v his_o wife_n math._n 19_o and_o therefore_o that_o paul_n have_v note_v that_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o cephas_n do_v carry_v up_o and_o down_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o apostleshippe_n their_o wife_n be_v also_o convert_v aswell_o as_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o sister_n 1._o cor._n 7._o take_v maintenance_n for_o themselves_o &_o then_o as_o they_o go_v that_o sometime_o in_o that_o peregrination_n of_o they_o in_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o office_n this_o petronella_n be_v bear_v for_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o gospel_n of_o math._n 8._o that_o peter_n have_v a_o wife_n and_o by_o their_o own_o story_n that_o she_o be_v a_o live_a a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n &_o at_o rome_n with_o he_o &_o that_o he_o count_v not_o his_o apostleship_n fornication_n &_o that_o neither_o he_o will_v leave_v his_o wife_n company_n &_o take_v other_o woman_n with_o he_o nor_o that_o she_o come_v to_o rome_n rather_o in_o the_o company_n of_o other_o man_n they_o of_o he_o her_o own_o husband_n too_o too_o gross_a and_o absurd_a be_v it_o with_o they_o to_o think_v that_o he_o &_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o have_v wife_n forsake_v their_o wife_n quite_o and_o go_v up_o and_o down_o rather_o after_o the_o popish_a manner_n accompany_v with_o other_o woman_n their_o translate_n and_o pervert_v the_o order_n of_o paul_n word_n a_o woman_n a_o sister_n will_v not_o defend_v their_o interpretation_n for_o he_o place_v his_o word_n thus_o a_o sister_n a_o wife_n where_o in_o the_o late_a place_n it_o be_v absurd_a the_o greek_a word_n be_v that_o which_o sometime_o stand_v general_o for_o a_o woman_n sometime_o for_o such_o a_o woman_n as_o be_v also_o a_o wife_n to_o take_v it_o in_o the_o former_a sense_n for_o then_o therein_o there_o be_v a_o needless_a tautology_n for_o there_o be_v no_o sister_n but_o she_o be_v a_o woman_n also_o but_o to_o leave_v peter_n with_o his_o wife_n and_o daughter_n what_o can_v they_o say_v to_o socrates_n who_o in_o his_o five_o book_n and_o twenty_o one_o chapter_n of_o his_o story_n write_v that_o omnes_fw-la praesbyteri_fw-la illustres_fw-la that_o be_v all_o renown_v minister_n in_o the_o east_n and_o bishop_n also_o if_o they_o will_v no_o law_n compel_v they_o may_v obstaine_v from_o their_o wife_n for_o not_o a_o few_o of_o they_o while_o they_o be_v bishop_n beget_v child_n of_o their_o lawful_a wife_n historiae_fw-la tripartitae_fw-la lib._n 9_o ca._n 38._o again_o the_o 10._o canon_n of_o the_o ancyran_n
the_o condition_n of_o most_o of_o they_o or_o else_o if_o they_o do_v it_o in_o stead_n of_o feed_v the_o people_n with_o the_o milk_n of_o god_n word_n which_o only_a saint_n peter_n warrant_v to_o be_v without_o deceit_n 1._o pet._n 2.2_o they_o feed_v they_o with_o vain_a dream_n fancy_n tale_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n for_o these_o only_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o which_o be_v proper_o now_o the_o romish_a religion_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n when_o they_o be_v order_v their_o especial_a business_n appoint_v for_o they_o be_v to_o sacrifice_v for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o only_o beside_o the_o office_n of_o any_o true_a minister_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o direct_o contrary_a both_o to_o their_o office_n and_o christ_n also_o for_o they_o by_o warrant_n express_o from_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v to_o teach_v their_o people_n that_o christ_n himself_o in_o his_o own_o person_n once_o for_o all_o when_o he_o die_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n offer_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o for_o both_o quick_a and_o dead_a sole_o and_o whole_o full_o and_o effectual_o must_v serve_v the_o turn_n for_o ever_o and_o that_o in_o offer_v this_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n he_o be_v a_o everlasting_a priest_n and_o may_v have_v no_o successor_n either_o to_o offer_v another_o sacrifice_n as_o though_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a or_o to_o offer_v this_o again_o as_o though_o he_o have_v not_o himself_o offer_v it_o well_o enough_o beside_o herein_o commission_n be_v give_v they_o direct_o to_o pervert_v christ_n institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o whereas_o by_o the_o right_a use_n thereof_o thereby_o shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o man_n the_o body_n break_v and_o blood_n shed_v of_o christ_n for_o he_o to_o be_v feed_v on_o and_o receive_v by_o he_o to_o salvation_n by_o their_o commission_n and_o intention_n herein_o they_o offer_v these_o thing_n to_o god_n the_o father_n further_o if_o we_o consider_v their_o read_n unto_o the_o people_n all_o in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n their_o pray_v to_o saint_n and_o angel_n their_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a their_o blasphemous_a imagination_n that_o they_o by_o breathe_v a_o set_a number_n of_o word_n upon_o a_o wafer_n cake_n make_v it_o very_a christ_n and_o other_o their_o superstitious_a and_o magical_a incatation_n and_o conjuration_n of_o water_n oil_n salt_n palm_n and_o other_o creature_n these_o be_v so_o direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o they_o be_v whatsoever_o here_o albine_n have_v say_v of_o they_o we_o may_v most_o justly_o and_o true_o advoutch_v they_o to_o be_v right_a priest_n of_o antichrist_n and_o consequent_o no_o right_a priest_n of_o christ_n but_o see_v he_o will_v needs_o so_o indefinite_o and_o general_o pronounce_v his_o sentence_n that_o their_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v right_a bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o leave_v these_o general_a objection_n and_o reason_n against_o they_o and_o to_o come_v to_o some_o particular_a example_n first_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o he_o whereas_o there_o have_v be_v a_o twenty_o three_o schism_n at_o least_o in_o the_o papal_a see_v sometime_o two_o sometime_o three_o sometime_o four_o all_o at_o once_o contend_v that_o they_o be_v right_a pope_n which_o of_o these_o be_v always_o he_o that_o for_o the_o time_n be_v to_o be_v account_v the_o right_a bishop_n and_o if_o never_o but_o one_o of_o they_o yea_o sometime_o none_o of_o they_o be_v right_a and_o therefore_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o depose_v and_o suppress_v they_o and_o to_o set_v up_o a_o new_a they_o all_o during_o their_o time_n have_v have_v many_o follower_n and_o many_o be_v make_v bishop_n and_o priest_n by_o they_o and_o so_o success●uelie_o from_o these_o infinite_z other_o have_v have_v their_o consecration_n and_o order_n how_o can_v we_o count_v these_o right_a bishop_n and_o priest_n that_o be_v make_v by_o such_o as_o have_v no_o right_a to_o make_v any_o or_o how_o shall_v we_o sever_v they_o that_o if_o they_o fetch_v their_o pedigree_n have_v have_v their_o original_n from_o such_o from_o those_o that_o be_v descend_v from_o they_o that_o be_v make_v by_o the_o right_a pope_n this_o nut_n will_v trouble_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o rome_n to_o crack_v but_o to_o deal_v plain_o and_o particular_o what_o can_v he_o or_o any_o of_o they_o unless_o they_o be_v dispose_v to_o be_v convince_v of_o wrangle_v by_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n say_v for_o joan_n the_o eight_o that_o in_o the_o end_n prove_v herself_o open_o in_o a_o solemn_a procession_n to_o be_v a_o harlot_n by_o her_o fruitfulness_n for_o christopher_n sergius_n laudo_fw-la john_n the_o 11.12_o &_o 13._o all_o pope_n in_o a_o row_n and_o yet_o especial_o advance_v unto_o and_o keep_v in_o that_o dignity_n by_o their_o concubine_n and_o harlot_n for_o silvester_n the_o second_o and_o a_o number_n of_o his_o successor_n who_o be_v promote_v by_o nicromancy_n and_o poison_v their_o predecessor_n or_o for_o hildebrand_n after_o call_v gregory_n 7._o who_o the_o same_o evening_n that_o his_o predecessor_n be_v dead_a thrust_v into_o the_o place_n not_o one_o cardinal_n subscribe_v to_o his_o election_n rather_o even_o by_o force_n then_o by_o any_o mean_n else_o boniface_n the_o eightth_v get_v the_o place_n by_o cozen_a celestine_n his_o predecessor_n by_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o voice_n through_o a_o trunk_n through_o the_o wall_n of_o his_o chamber_n boniface_n the_o nine_o be_v choose_v pope_n by_o the_o cardinal_n at_o rome_n and_o yet_o as_o i_o say_v before_o when_o they_o choose_v he_o he_o be_v but_o twenty_o year_n old_a he_o can_v neither_o write_v nor_o sing_v nor_o understand_v his_o latin_a tongue_n balthasar_n de_fw-fr cossa_n cardinal_n through_o fear_n at_o bononia_n drive_v the_o cardinal_n to_o refer_v the_o nomination_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o there_o they_o be_v about_o to_o choose_v to_o himself_o who_o by_o and_o by_o choose_v and_o set_v up_o himself_o sixtus_n the_o four_o build_v a_o famous_a stew_n at_o rome_n of_o both_o kind_n as_o agryppa_n write_v of_o he_o and_o witness_v wesselus_n groningensis_n he_o grant_v a_o indulgence_n to_o the_o family_n of_o s._n lucia_n that_o for_o the_o three_o hot_a month_n in_o the_o year_n they_o may_v use_v the_o sin_n not_o to_o be_v name_v the_o like_a indulgence_n grant_v pope_n alexander_n the_o six_o to_o a_o spaniard_n petrus_n mendoza_n cardinal_n of_o valentia_n so_o to_o abuse_v his_o base_a son_n marques_n sanatensis_n monstrous_a be_v the_o incest_n adultery_n &_o sodomitry_n that_o story_n report_v of_o paul_n the_o 3._o and_o julius_n the_o 3._o his_o sodomitry_n especial_o with_o one_o innocentius_n while_o he_o be_v cardinal_n at_o bononia_n who_o therefore_o he_o make_v be_v still_o but_o a_o very_a boy_n cardinal_n when_o he_o be_v pope_n be_v in_o the_o story_n report_v very_o ill_o of_o and_o the_o rather_o that_o which_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v write_v of_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v true_a because_o in_o his_o time_n there_o be_v one_o hieron_n mutius_z set_v up_o public_o in_o book_n to_o defend_v certain_a filthy_a and_o loathsome_a amorous_a verse_n write_v by_o one_o camillus_n oliws_fw-la companion_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n to_o one_o hannibal_n coliws_n &_o that_o in_o his_o time_n johamnes_n casa_n archbishop_n of_o beneventum_n deane_n of_o the_o chamber_n apostolic_a and_o the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o dominion_n of_o venice_n write_v in_o the_o commendation_n of_o that_o filthy_a fact_n of_o petrus_n aloysius_n paulus_n 3._o his_o son_n with_o cosmus_n cherius_n bishop_n of_o fane_n and_o that_o with_o the_o applause_n and_o like_n of_o that_o time_n now_o what_o will_v albine_n say_v for_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o these_o be_v right_a pope_n bishop_n and_o cardinal_n right_n and_o seemly_a they_o may_v be_v to_o serve_v the_o whoar_n of_o babylon_n otherwise_o such_o can_v never_o be_v right_a bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o serve_v the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o if_o neither_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v concern_v their_o come_n to_o their_o place_n by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n nor_o this_o vaunt_n of_o he_o that_o their_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v right_a bishop_n and_o priest_n can_v do_v he_o any_o good_a yet_o it_o may_v be_v he_o hope_v some_o credit_n will_v grow_v unto_o they_o in_o that_o he_o have_v say_v they_o have_v their_o place_n vy_z right_a succession_n indeed_o succession_n and_o the_o derivation_n of_o it_o without_o interruption_n down_o from_o the_o apostle_n especial_o in_o their_o line_n of_o pope_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o such_o as_o he_o brag_v much_o of_o say_v that_o that_o they_o have_v &_o we_o have_v not_o &_o that_o therefore_o their_o church_n &_o the_o minister_n thereof_o
and_o so_o do_v tertullian_n the_o resurrectione_n carnis_fw-la cap._n 3._o say_v auferantur_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticis_fw-la quae_fw-la cum_fw-la aethnicis_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la de_fw-fr scripture_n solis_fw-la svas_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la fistant_n &_o stare_v non_fw-la possunt_fw-la that_o be_v let_v those_o thing_n be_v take_v from_o heretic_n which_o they_o hold_v with_o the_o heathen_a that_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n they_o may_v determine_v their_o question_n and_o they_o can_v stand_v and_o nothing_o be_v more_o usual_a and_o familiar_a with_o augustine_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n then_o to_o call_v they_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o question_n both_o whither_o he_o or_o they_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n &_o also_o whither_o of_o they_o have_v the_o truth_n to_o this_o way_n of_o trial_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o de_fw-la unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nolo_fw-la humanis_fw-la documentis_fw-la sed_fw-la divinis_fw-la oraculis_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la demonstrare_fw-la i_o will_v not_o make_v demonstration_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o writing_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o divine_a oracle_n say_v he_o cap_n 3._o &_o again_o there_o also_o he_o further_o add_v press_v the_o heretic_n with_o who_o he_o have_v there_o to_o do_v sunt_fw-la libri_fw-la dominici_fw-la quorun_v authoritati_fw-la utrique_fw-la consentimus_fw-la ibi_fw-la quaeramus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la ibi_fw-la discutiamus_fw-la causam_fw-la nostram_fw-la that_o be_v there_o be_v certain_a book_n of_o the_o lord_n unto_o the_o authority_n whereof_o we_o both_o consent_n there_o let_v we_o seek_v the_o church_n there_o let_v we_o discuss_v our_o cause_n to_o the_o like_a effect_n he_o write_v in_o the_o 2_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n and_o elsewhere_o very_a often_o unless_o therefore_o they_o will_v once_o be_v content_v to_o come_v to_o this_o trial_n of_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o &_o we_o we_o must_v needs_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o be_v not_o desirous_a in_o earnest_n ever_o to_o have_v it_o appear_v which_o of_o we_o have_v the_o better_a cause_n but_o as_o man_n who_o know_v in_o their_o own_o conscience_n that_o their_o cause_n be_v bad_a they_o labour_v to_o maintain_v the_o credit_n thereof_o as_o long_o as_o they_o can_v by_o cunning_a shift_n &_o delay_n but_o yet_o let_v they_o assure_v themselves_o as_o long_o as_o they_o shun_v this_o trial_n how_o cunning_o &_o colourable_o soever_o though_o simple_a fool_n already_o besot_v with_o superstition_n &_o bewitch_v with_o popish_a enchantment_n upon_o their_o bare_a word_n &_o stought_n brag_n that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n that_o they_o teach_v may_v sometime_o believe_v they_o that_o yet_o withal_o those_o that_o have_v any_o wisdom_n at_o all_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o lose_v quite_o both_o the_o credit_n of_o themselves_o &_o their_o cause_n for_o faith_n be_v as_o it_o be_v not_o a_o waver_a &_o uncertain_a conceit_n &_o opinion_n of_o the_o thing_n believe_v but_o a_o most_o certain_a sure_a &_o infallible_a persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o how_o can_v any_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o doctrine_n that_o he_o believe_v be_v such_o as_o he_o may_v sound_o &_o firm_o rest_v upon_o for_o undoubted_a truth_n without_o evident_a ground_n thereof_o out_o of_o the_o write_v word_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n for_o thence_o only_a peter_n dare_v warrant_v the_o sincere_a milk_n which_o can_v deceive_v the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o be_v fetch_v 1._o pet._n 2_o 2._o &_o therefore_o that_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o desire_v as_o new_o bear_v babe_n do_v milk_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v up_o thereby_o and_o as_o for_o the_o writing_n &_o tradition_n of_o man_n beside_o have_v not_o &_o do_v not_o experience_n daily_o teach_v that_o they_o may_v not_o nor_o can_v challenge_v the_o preeminence_n &_o prerogative_n always_o to_o be_v free_a from_o error_n and_o every_o one_o that_o be_v a_o christian_n have_v learn_v that_o this_o prerogative_n all_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v in_o the_o write_n thereof_o therein_o not_o to_o have_v err_v at_o al._n who_o therefore_o can_v be_v so_o simple_a unless_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o justice_n have_v blind_v he_o because_o he_o will_v not_o see_v the_o truth_n shine_v about_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v receive_v that_o for_o the_o sound_a catholic_a faith_n that_o he_o hear_v not_o first_o from_o point_n to_o point_n prove_v unto_o he_o so_o to_o be_v out_o of_o this_o undoubted_a certain_a word_n of_o god_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n what_o show_n or_o colour_n of_o proof_n soever_o otherwise_o be_v make_v thereof_o and_o this_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n can_v not_o but_o conceive_v &_o yet_o never_o once_o go_v about_o in_o this_o his_o discourse_n thus_o to_o countenance_v his_o cause_n &_o religion_n but_o as_o one_o loath_a to_o be_v bring_v to_o this_o trial_n he_o labour_v most_o earnest_o to_o discourage_v all_o man_n from_o appeal_n unto_o it_o &_o yet_o almost_o in_o every_o leaf_n brag_v and_o boast_v that_o both_o his_o church_n his_o doctrine_n and_o all_o be_v sound_a &_o catholic_a wherein_o howsoever_o he_o please_v himself_o in_o that_o his_o vain_a any_o indifferent_a man_n may_v see_v he_o have_v rather_o bewray_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o own_o cause_n they_o any_o way_n whatsoever_o he_o have_v say_v otherwise_o impair_v the_o credit_n of_o we_o but_o how_o vain_o he_o have_v sweat_v even_o to_o the_o tire_a of_o himself_o &_o his_o reader_n about_o this_o point_n in_o many_o chapter_n that_o by_o the_o scripture_n controversy_n be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v try_v &_o determine_v when_o i_o come_v unto_o that_o place_n i_o shall_v god_n willing_a show_n more_o full_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n john_n de_fw-fr albine_n to_o turn_v my_o speech_n to_o you_o i_o have_v thus_o examine_v your_o answer_n to_o our_o demand_n how_o you_o come_v to_o your_o prelacy_n and_o office_n and_o have_v find_v the_o weakness_n and_o untruethe_n thereof_o such_o as_o that_o your_o call_n or_o come_v thereunto_o can_v claim_v no_o more_o credit_n thereby_o they_o the_o calling_z &_o come_v to_o their_o office_n among_o the_o arrian_n &_o greek_n who_o you_o count_v heretic_n and_o scismatiques_n can_v do_v because_o they_o can_v &_o can_v say_v as_o much_o and_o that_o as_o true_o for_o they_o as_o you_o have_v here_o say_v for_o you_o let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o chapter_n quote_v by_o you_o &_o urge_v as_o you_o think_v strong_o to_o your_o purpose_n by_o the_o mat._n 5._o you_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n by_o christ_n speak_v proper_o to_o his_o apostle_n you_o will_v seem_v to_o prove_v that_o therefore_o right_a succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n in_o the_o apostolic_a truth_n in_o all_o age_n in_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v be_v ever_o clear_a &_o shine_a like_o a_o light_n set_v on_o a_o table_n &_o by_o that_o eph._n 4._o &_o esa_n 62._o with_o your_o book_n quote_v sap._n 61._o very_o wise_o you_o will_v infer_v that_o not_o only_o always_o until_o christ_n body_n come_v to_o full_a perfection_n there_o shall_v be_v doctor_n &_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n to_o teach_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o most_o that_o by_o those_o place_n can_v be_v prove_v but_o also_o that_o they_o and_o their_o congregation_n have_v ever_o be_v know_v &_o visible_a thereby_o doubtless_o mean_v so_o visible_a as_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o side_n do_v when_o to_o this_o end_n they_o allege_v these_o or_o the_o like_a place_n as_o that_o from_o time_n to_o time_n in_o all_o age_n man_n may_v be_v able_a to_o name_v they_o and_o their_o place_n whereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o you_o stretch_v these_o place_n and_o the_o word_n therein_o further_o they_o their_o native_a sense_n will_v bear_v for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v proper_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n apostle_n only_o who_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o ministry_n &_o other_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o shall_v be_v pour_v &_o bestow_v upon_o they_o to_o beautify_v &_o strengthen_v their_o extraordinary_a ministry_n withal_o be_v there_o by_o christ_n comp●●●●●_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n to_o a_o light_a candle_n set_v upon_o a_o candlestick_n not_o put_v under_o a_o bushel_n lightning_n all_o in_o the_o house_n and_o to_o a_o city_n 〈◊〉_d on_o a_o hill_n which_o can_v not_o be_v bid_v all_o which_o afterward_o they_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o apostleship_n and_o holy_a conversation_n prove_v to_o be_v ●●●tles_n true_o and_o just_o give_v they_o this_o be_v no_o pprophecy_n as_o yo●_n will_v make_v it_o that_o their_o shall_v be_v until_o the_o second_o come_v 〈◊〉_d christ_n a_o visible_a and_o
quick_o forsake_v your_o popery_n and_o join_v with_o us._n to_o follow_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n stand_v to_o that_o that_o ever_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v teach_v &_o not_o to_o turn_v at_o every_o blast_n upon_o this_o matter_n one_o haer_fw-mi one_o lib._n con_v haer_fw-mi vincentius_n lyrinensis_n who_o flourish_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o he_o say_v thus_o if_o any_o man_n perchance_o demand_v say_v since_o that_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v certain_a &_o write_v &_o yea_o and_o more_o than_o sufficient_a say_v he_o mark_v he_o grant_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a how_o be_v then_o that_o true_a which_o your_o andradius_fw-la say_v the_o great_a part_n be_v leave_v to_o tradition_n not_o write_v sufficient_a of_o themselves_o and_o what_o need_n have_v we_o they_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n he_o answer_v for_o that_o say_v he_o that_o the_o secret_n &_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v such_o that_o every_o man_n do_v not_o understand_v they_o &_o interpret_v they_o after_o one_o sort_n but_o that_o of_o one_o place_n this_o man_n &_o that_o man_n shall_v seem_v to_o maintain_v their_o opinion_n be_v clean_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o so_o that_o look_v how_o many_o man_n so_o many_o interpretation_n for_o one_o way_n it_o be_v interpret_v by_o nestorius_n another_o way_n by_o arrius_n another_o way_n by_o sabellius_n &_o so_o forth_o according_a to_o diverse_a heresy_n that_o have_v rise_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n among_o so_o many_o error_n to_o draw_v the_o scripture_n the_o and_o for_o these_o reason_n we_o allow_v of_o vincentius_n rule_n understanding_n as_o he_o do_v that_o by_o the_o right_a line_n and_o rule_v of_o interpret_n be_v mean_v that_o sense_n which_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o catholic_a church_n for_o no_o other_o sense_n we_o give_v of_o the_o scripture_n right_a line_n of_o the_o prophetical_a &_o apostolical_a interpretation_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n &_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o be_v the_o learned_a opinion_n of_o this_o ancient_a father_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n the_o iii_o chapter_n in_o the_o 3_o chapter_n you_o say_v as_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n as_o in_o the_o second_o for_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n the_o true_a catholic_a church_n indeed_o and_o not_o your_o late_a synagogue_n of_o rome_n false_o by_o you_o so_o name_v because_o neither_o it_o nor_o the_o faith_n thereof_o be_v universal_a neither_o in_o respect_n of_o time_n nor_o person_n whatsoever_o you_o have_v write_v therein_o we_o confess_v to_o be_v most_o true_a and_o sure_o we_o be_v it_o make_v more_o for_o we_o then_o for_o you_o for_o we_o never_o deny_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v needful_a according_a to_o vincentius_n rule_v to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o certain_a we_o be_v that_o we_o be_v far_o better_a able_a to_o justify_v our_o interpretation_n thereby_o than_o you_o be_v you_o and_o he_o live_v a_o 1000_o year_n ago_o as_o you_o write_v we_o bold_o affirm_v that_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o her_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n before_o or_o in_o his_o time_n teach_v the_o error_n and_o heresy_n now_o teach_v by_o you_o for_o the_o which_o we_o account_v your_o antichristian_a and_o yet_o as_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n most_o beggarly_a you_o beg_v this_o principle_n that_o your_o doctrine_n be_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n so_o here_o in_o this_o you_o beg_v this_o also_o that_o your_o church_n be_v the_o true_a and_o undoubted_a catholic_a church_n but_o you_o must_v understand_v howsoever_o your_o own_o friend_n will_v give_v you_o at_o your_o first_o ask_v both_o these_o that_o yet_o we_o will_v grant_v you_o neither_o of_o they_o both_o and_o therefore_o write_v as_o you_o will_v seem_v purposely_o against_o we_o you_o shall_v not_o thus_o miserable_o always_o have_v beg_v they_o at_o our_o hand_n but_o by_o sound_n and_o just_a proof_n at_o least_o have_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o you_o have_v just_a right_n thereunto_o and_o then_o with_o some_o more_o honesty_n and_o credit_n may_v you_o have_v go_v on_o in_o this_o supposal_n that_o they_o be_v you_o this_o also_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o when_o it_o be_v in_o question_n which_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o religion_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v betwixt_o you_o and_o we_o it_o be_v always_o also_o in_o question_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o as_o both_o part_n imagine_v they_o have_v the_o truth_n so_o will_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n your_o friend_n also_o and_o all_o other_o must_v be_v advertise_v that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o damnable_a heretic_n to_o brag_v much_o both_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n &_o of_o the_o doctor_n thereof_o least_o through_o too_o much_o simplicity_n they_o think_v straight_o that_o you_o have_v all_o these_o thing_n on_o your_o side_n because_o you_o have_v they_o so_o much_o and_o so_o often_o in_o your_o mouth_n for_o as_o cyprian_n write_v epist_n ad_fw-la jubaianum_fw-la de_fw-la baptizandis_fw-la haereticis_fw-la the_o novation_n after_o the_o fashion_n of_o ape_n challenge_v unto_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o other_o they_o call_v heretic_n and_o we_o read_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o arius_n macedonius_n and_o donatus_n these_o heretic_n account_v themselves_o the_o only_a christian_n and_o that_o the_o true_a christian_n indeed_o be_v count_v by_o they_o homousian_o macarians_n caesarian_n and_o caecilianist_n so_o do_v tertullian_n the_o prescrip_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la testify_v that_o the_o heretic_n do_v in_o his_o time_n so_o do_v the_o donatist_n say_v august_n contra_n epist_n parm_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o and_o epist_n 161._o and_o he_o write_v contra_n epist_n fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 4._o that_o among_o the_o manichee_n there_o be_v great_a brag_n of_o the_o truth_n bernard_n also_o in_o his_o 66._o sermon_n upon_o the_o canticle_n speak_v against_o certain_a filthy_a heretic_n that_o condemn_a marriage_n and_o superstitious_o abstein_v from_o meat_n yet_o say_v that_o they_o glory_v that_o they_o alone_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n brag_v also_o that_o they_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a &_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o indeed_o we_o find_v nothing_o more_o usual_a with_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n then_o to_o boast_v that_o they_o have_v the_o church_n and_o catholic_a truth_n on_o their_o side_n and_o very_o usual_a we_o find_v it_o also_o with_o they_o to_o stand_v much_o upon_o father_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o themselves_o and_o their_o heresy_n for_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o 1._o action_n that_o eutiches_n brag_v that_o he_o have_v read_v cyprian_a and_o athanasius_n yea_o that_o then_o and_o there_o he_o confident_o say_v for_o his_o defence_n that_o he_o have_v so_o learn_v of_o his_o ancient_a predecessor_n and_o that_o he_o have_v be_v baptize_v in_o that_o faith_n have_v live_v and_o hope_v to_o die_v in_o it_o and_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 4._o action_n of_o the_o same_o council_n that_o carosus_n a_o eutichian_a heretic_n say_v stout_o i_o believe_v thus_o according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o 318._o father_n and_o so_o be_v i_o baptize_v dioscorus_n also_o in_o the_o 1._o act_n of_o that_o council_n cry_v and_o say_v i_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n athanasius_n gregory_n and_o cyrill_n on_o my_o side_n i_o go_v not_o from_o they_o in_o any_o thing_n i_o be_o cast_v out_o with_o the_o father_n i_o defend_v the_o father_n doctrine_n i_o have_v their_o testimony_n even_o set_v down_o in_o their_o book_n for_o i_o and_o as_o we_o read_v in_o august_n contra_fw-la cresconium_fw-la the_o donatist_n 2._o book_n cap._n 23._o and_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n cap._n 17._o he_o cite_v for_o himself_o cyprian_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o maximinus_n the_o heretic_n against_o who_o august_n write_v use_v to_o allege_v for_o his_o defence_n the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n and_o therefore_o augustine_n say_v unto_o he_o neither_o will_v i_o object_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a against_o thou_o neither_o ought_v thou_o to_o object_n that_o of_o ariminum_n against_o i_o 3._o book_n 14._o chap._n what_o a_o vain_a thing_n be_v it_o these_o thing_n consider_v for_o you_o and_o your_o fellow_n then_o to_o carry_v away_o the_o simple_a under_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o catholic_a truth_n catholic_a church_n
catholic_a faith_n catholic_a bishop_n succeed_v one_o another_o when_o as_o indeed_o and_o truth_n it_o be_v as_o impossible_a for_o you_o to_o prove_v that_o you_o have_v any_o just_a right_n to_o any_o of_o these_o as_o it_o be_v for_o those_o heretic_n but_o howsoever_o you_o make_v some_o believe_v you_o have_v all_o these_o yet_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o with_o saint_n august_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la against_o the_o epistle_n of_o petilian_n chap._n 10._o that_o even_o catholic_a bishop_n be_v not_o to_o be_v consent_v unto_o if_o that_o any_o where_o they_o be_v deceive_v in_o think_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o and_o when_o otherwise_o you_o have_v run_v yourselves_o out_o of_o breath_n in_o conclusion_n will_v you_o will_v you_o by_o these_o canonical_a scripture_n must_v it_o be_v determine_v whither_o you_o have_v any_o right_n to_o any_o of_o these_o or_o no._n for_o if_o you_o appeal_v from_o they_o as_o indeed_o you_o do_v to_o the_o church_n and_o father_n they_o will_v send_v you_o back_o again_o for_o the_o trial_n whither_o that_o which_o they_o speak_v be_v true_a or_o no_o only_o to_o the_o scripture_n as_o it_o may_v appear_v unto_o you_o not_o only_o by_o this_o one_o place_n which_o i_o have_v cite_v out_o of_o augustine_n already_o but_o also_o by_o a_o number_n such_o like_a place_n both_o to_o be_v find_v in_o he_o else_o where_o and_o also_o in_o other_o for_o you_o may_v read_v in_o the_o first_o book_n and_o seven_o chapter_n of_o theodoret_n that_o when_o constantine_n see_v great_a controversy_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o perceave_v that_o every_o several_a company_n brag_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o so_o also_o of_o the_o church_n and_o father_n to_o be_v on_o their_o side_n to_o end_v all_o those_o controversy_n he_o say_v exit_fw-la divinitus_fw-la inspiratis_fw-la oraculis_fw-la quaeramus_fw-la solutionem_fw-la eorum_fw-la quae_fw-la proponuntur_fw-la that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o oracle_n that_o be_v come_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n thereby_o mean_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n let_v we_o seek_v the_o determination_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v propound_v and_o so_o they_o do_v and_o as_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n be_v of_o this_o mind_n so_o it_o appear_v that_o athanasius_n be_v of_o the_o same_o for_o to_o serap_v he_o say_v solum_fw-la exsacris_fw-la literis_fw-la condiscas_fw-la meaning_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n sufficiunt_fw-la enim_fw-la documenta_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o illis_fw-la reperias_fw-la thou_o may_v learn_v it_o only_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o document_n or_o lesson_n which_o thou_o may_v find_v in_o they_o be_v sufficient_a and_o origen_n upon_o the_o 16._o to_o the_o roman_n in_o his_o ten_o book_n agree_v herein_o with_o these_o say_v that_o only_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o difference_n of_o truth_n from_o error_n in_o the_o examination_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v discern_v and_o yet_o more_o plain_o the_o same_o origen_n in_o his_o first_o homily_n upon_o jeremie_n write_v of_o necessity_n we_o must_v call_v for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o our_o sense_n and_o declaration_n without_o they_o as_o witness_n have_v no_o credit_n well_o therefore_o say_v augustine_n de_fw-fr naturâ_fw-la &_o gratiâ_fw-la cap._n 61._o only_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v i_o owe_v my_o consent_n without_o refusal_n and_o therefore_o francke_o he_o tell_v hierome_n in_o his_o nineteenth_o epistle_n that_o he_o have_v learned_a to_o yield_v that_o honour_n only_o to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o think_v that_o the_o author_n thereof_o therein_o never_o err_v where_o he_o plain_o show_v we_o by_o his_o example_n how_o we_o shall_v read_v his_o writing_n or_o the_o writing_n of_o any_o other_o father_n namely_o believe_v that_o which_o they_o write_v no_o further_o than_o we_o see_v it_o by_o scripture_n confirm_v or_o by_o probable_a argument_n not_o dissent_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o like_a he_o teach_v yet_o more_o plain_o in_o his_o 111._o &_o 112._o epistle_n to_o fortunatus_n and_o paulinus_n &_o in_o the_o proem_n of_o the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n wherefore_o with_o the_o same_o augustine_n i_o confident_o say_v and_o write_v whither_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o church_n or_o of_o any_o thing_n that_o appertain_v to_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n i_o will_v not_o say_v we_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o he_o that_o say_v though_o we_o but_o as_o he_o add_v though_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v any_o thing_n beside_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v mark_v he_o say_v not_o contrary_a but_o beside_o in_o the_o legal_a and_o evangelicall_a scripture_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o petilian_n cap._n 6._o yea_o your_o own_o vincentius_n in_o the_o very_a place_n quote_v by_o you_o deny_v not_o but_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o themselves_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a for_o all_o thing_n yea_o and_o more_o than_o sufficient_a whereupon_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o vincentius_n by_o the_o rule_n line_n and_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o there_o he_o speak_v of_o understand_v only_o such_o a_o sense_n or_o line_n as_o agree_v best_a with_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o the_o right_a rule_n of_o the_o interpret_n of_o they_o whereof_o more_o afterward_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n howsoever_o vincentius_n his_o meaning_n be_v augustine_n a_o ancient_a father_n &_o more_o famous_a somewhat_o then_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o always_o in_o interpret_n of_o the_o scripture_n man_n must_v have_v a_o eye_n unto_o and_o be_v rule_v by_o say_v that_o it_o be_v even_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v in_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n de_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la christia_n lib_n 3._o cap._n 2._o &_o the_o trini_z lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o &_o 4._o yea_o in_o the_o same_o augustine_n the_o doct_n christ_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 6._o &_o distrinc_fw-la 37._o c._n relatum_fw-la we_o may_v read_v note_v out_o of_o clement_n that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o receive_v any_o fence_n for_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v so_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o therefore_o all_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n new_a or_o ancient_a deliver_v by_o the_o father_n in_o former_a time_n or_o receive_v of_o their_o child_n of_o this_o late_a age_n must_v and_o aught_o according_a to_o this_o rule_n and_o line_n be_v judge_v catholic_a or_o not_o the_o four_o chapter_n 1._o cant._n 1._o whose_o discourse_n do_v make_v i_o remember_v the_o complaint_n that_o the_o soul_n do_v make_v unto_o her_o spouse_n jesus_n christ_n be_v both_o represent_v by_o solomon_n and_o his_o legitimate_a spouse_n i_o pray_v thou_o say_v she_o o_o my_o dear_a friend_n tell_v i_o in_o what_o place_n thou_o do_v lie_v and_o rest_n at_o no●●_n day_n for_o i_o will_v be_v very_o glad_a and_o desirous_a to_o follow_v the_o flock_n of_o thy_o fellow_n the_o which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o if_o she_o mean_v thus_o i_o see_v many_o shepherd_n in_o these_o mountain_n which_o have_v great_a abundance_n of_o sheep_n i_o see_v those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o see_v donatist_n i_o see_v novatians_n or_o to_o speak_v of_o our_o time_n i_o see_v one_o flock_n follow_v luther_n another_o follow_n sort_n follow_n the_o caluenist_n zwinglians_n and_o sacramentary_n be_v common_o among_o you_o take_v for_o one_o yet_o here_o that_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n may_v seem_v the_o great_a you_o reckon_v they_o up_o as_o three_o distinct_a sort_n zuinglius_fw-la another_o follow_v caluin_n another_o the_o anabaptist_n another_o the_o sacramentary_n &_o so_o forth_o diverse_a other_o of_o who_o when_o i_o demand_v particular_o who_o be_v this_o flock_n they_o do_v all_o answer_v i_o it_o be_v of_o christ_n &_o every_o 〈◊〉_d say_v this_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n every_o one_o do_v say_v that_o he_o be_v his_o fellow_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o touch_v the_o guide_n of_o his_o flock_n now_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o they_o do_v all_o teach_v the_o truth_n consider_v how_o they_o vary_v among_o themselves_o therefore_o i_o do_v desire_n thou_o to_o tell_v i_o where_o thou_o do_v rest_v thyself_o at_o noon_n day_n that_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v teach_v i_o which_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n which_o do_v celebrate_v the_o true_a mystery_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v the_o place_n where_o thou_o be_v nail_v at_o noon_n day_n be_v nail_v both_o hand_n and_o foot_n hear_v now_o the_o answer_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o thou_o do_v not_o know_v the_o place_n
oft_o in_o this_o your_o book_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o side_n continual_o bear_v the_o simple_a reader_n and_o unlearned_a christian_a in_o hand_n that_o before_o luther_n there_o be_v none_o of_o our_o religion_n that_o have_v so_o condemn_v your_o church_n and_o religion_n as_o we_o do_v i_o will_v vouchsafe_v for_o the_o better_a enable_v of_o every_o one_o that_o shall_v read_v this_o my_o answer_n to_o see_v your_o vanity_n and_o impiety_n though_o this_o which_o i_o have_v note_v already_o be_v sufficient_a to_o lay_v open_a your_o folly_n to_o proceed_v yet_o somewhat_o further_o in_o this_o matter_n wherefore_o to_o go_v on_o in_o the_o course_n of_o time_n though_o your_o popish_a church_n have_v be_v in_o her_o ruff_n and_o at_o the_o high_o that_o ever_o she_o be_v this_o latter_a 400_o year_n yet_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o even_o in_o this_o time_n from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o that_o in_o sundry_a place_n that_o have_v join_v with_o we_o against_o you_o &_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o newness_n or_o strangeness_n in_o our_o religion_n a_o do_v do_n as_o you_o will_v make_v the_o ignorant_a believe_v for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o 9_o in_o the_o year_n 1230_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o other_o eastern_a church_n do_v quite_o forsake_v communion_n with_o you_o who_o ever_o since_o join_v with_o we_o in_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n against_o you_o as_o namely_o in_o withstand_v the_o supremacy_n of_o your_o romish_a bishop_n as_o appear_v not_o only_o by_o one_o epistle_n that_o germanus_n petriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v unto_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o year_n 1237_o but_o also_o by_o a_o large_a book_n write_v about_o the_o year_n 1384_o by_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n wherein_o he_o do_v not_o only_o confute_v his_o supremacy_n even_o as_o we_o do_v but_o also_o he_o enueigh_v against_o all_o those_o that_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o popish_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o ancient_a record_n in_o the_o church_n of_o herford_n wherein_o 29_o of_o the_o article_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v set_v down_o they_o join_v not_o only_o with_o we_o in_o this_o point_n in_o separate_a themselves_o from_o the_o romish_a church_n &_o in_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n which_o be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n but_o also_o in_o deny_v purgatory_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o hold_v it_o lawful_a for_o their_o minister_n to_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o matrimony_n in_o not_o use_v any_o private_a mass_n in_o not_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o any_o that_o receive_v in_o not_o minister_a the_o communion_n in_o private_a house_n in_o not_o use_v extreme_a unction_n and_o in_o sundry_a other_o point_n and_o by_o diverse_a epistle_n write_v from_o thence_o of_o late_a extant_a in_o print_n both_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a to_o chitreus_n and_o other_o german_n it_o evident_o appear_v that_o they_o join_v with_o we_o against_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o many_o other_o great_a and_o weighty_a point_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o that_o great_a hope_n there_o be_v that_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v bring_v to_o join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o rest_n beside_o these_o eastern_a church_n even_o here_o in_o these_o western_a part_n evident_a it_o be_v that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o great_a learned_a and_o famous_a person_n with_o innumerable_a follower_n at_o all_o time_n from_o age_n to_o age_n in_o these_o latter_a 400_o year_n when_o the_o tyranny_n of_o your_o pope_n to_z repress_v they_o have_v be_v the_o great_a and_o strong_a that_o ever_o it_o be_v which_o yet_o have_v open_o with_o we_o stand_v forth_o against_o they_o and_o their_o religion_n for_o frederick_n the_o second_o as_o diverse_a other_o emperor_n have_v be_v before_o he_o as_o namely_o constantine_n the_o 5._o leo_n his_o son_n and_o constantine_n the_o 6_o in_o the_o east_n and_o henry_n the_o 4_o and_o 5_o in_o the_o west_n be_v a_o notable_a antagonist_n of_o the_o 3_o pope_n in_o his_o time_n contend_v against_o they_o to_o maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o christian_a prince_n against_o their_o usurp_a supremacy_n over_o they_o about_o the_o year_n 1260_o as_o notorious_o the_o chronicle_n of_o those_o time_n write_v by_o your_o own_o man_n platina_n sabelicus_n and_o other_o declare_v and_o 20_o year_n before_o that_o krantzius_n testify_v in_o his_o history_n that_o there_o be_v many_o that_o preach_v open_o in_o suevia_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n his_o clergy_n symoniake_v and_o general_o they_o all_o seducer_n of_o the_o people_n ten_o year_n after_o that_o flourish_v arnoldus_fw-la de_n nouâ_fw-la villâ_fw-la a_o spaniard_n who_o teach_v that_o satan_n have_v they_o seduce_v the_o world_n that_o the_o faith_n they_o teach_v be_v but_o such_o as_o devil_n have_v mean_v belike_o a_o bare_a historical_a faith_n that_o the_o pope_n lead_v man_n to_o hell_n that_o he_o and_o his_o clergy_n do_v falsify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n that_o mass_n be_v naught_o &_o not_o to_o be_v say_v for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o your_o popish_a church_n condemn_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n much_o what_o about_o the_o same_o time_n be_v gulielmus_fw-la de_n sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la a_o master_n and_o chief_a ruler_n then_o in_o paris_n who_o go_v as_o far_o as_o arnoldus_fw-la apply_v the_o same_o scripture_n which_o concern_v antichrist_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n and_o therefore_o he_o also_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n and_o his_o book_n burn_v by_o your_o popish_a rout_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1260_o laurentius_n anglicus_n a_o master_n of_o paris_n also_o take_v this_o william_n part_n against_o the_o pope_n &_o write_v a_o book_n in_o his_o defence_n in_o the_o year_n 1290_o petrus_n johamnes_n a_o minorite_n direct_o preach_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o rome_n great_a babylon_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v burn_v after_o he_o be_v dead_a 30_o year_n and_o more_o before_o this_o robert_z grosthead_n a_o famous_a learned_a man_n and_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n for_o he_o die_v in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o fifty_o three_o be_v a_o great_a withstander_n of_o the_o pope_n tyranny_n and_o three_o day_n before_o his_o death_n have_v conference_n with_o his_o clergy_n he_o labour_v to_o make_v they_o see_v by_o sundry_a demonstration_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o his_o do_n antichristian_a king_n philip_n of_o france_n about_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o be_v a_o great_a withstander_n of_o the_o supremacy_n which_o now_o the_o pope_n challenge_v and_o a_o resister_n in_o his_o dominion_n of_o sundry_a of_o his_o enormity_n and_o william_n nagareta_n and_o the_o prelate_n of_o france_n then_o join_v with_o their_o king_n against_o the_o pope_n grosthead_n this_o king_n philip_n and_o his_o clergy_n as_o afterward_o king_n edward_n the_o 3._o king_n of_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1346_o despise_v the_o pope_n curse_n &_o appeal_v from_o he_o to_o god_n there_o be_v in_o a_o ancient_a chronicle_n of_o s._n albon_n a_o notable_a epistle_n of_o one_o cassiodorus_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n wherein_o be_v lay_v forth_o a_o number_n of_o lamentable_a abuse_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o twenty_o eight_o in_o the_o extravagant_n we_o read_v that_o marsillus_n patavinus_n johannes_n de_fw-fr ganduno_n michael_n chesenas_n petrus_n de_fw-fr carborea_n and_o johannes_n de_fw-fr poliaco_n all_o great_a learned_a man_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o preach_v against_o his_o supremacy_n and_o other_o error_n of_o that_o church_n of_o he_o about_o the_o year_n 1326._o there_o be_v they_o also_o many_o learned_a man_n more_o that_o dispute_v &_o write_v against_o his_o supremacy_n &_o which_o take_v part_n with_o ludovicke_a the_o emperor_n against_o he_o as_o william_n occam_n luitpoldus_n andreas_n landanensis_fw-la vlricus_fw-la hangenor_n the_o emperor_n treasurer_n and_o other_o dante_n be_v live_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o write_v against_o the_o pope_n the_o order_n of_o religious_a man_n and_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o decree_n say_v that_o these_o be_v three_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n he_o flat_o have_v leave_v in_o write_v in_o his_o canticle_n of_o purgatory_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o a_o pastor_n be_v become_v a_o wolf_n &_o that_o he_o be_v the_o whoar_n of_o babylon_n in_o the_o year_n 1350._o gregory_n ariminensis_n andreas_n de_fw-fr castro_n and_o burdianus_n teach_v as_o we_o do_v against_o your_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n and_o merit_n taulerus_n then_o a_o preacher_n in_o argentine_n preach_v open_o against_o your_o doctrine_n
of_o man_n merit_n and_o pray_v to_o saint_n etc._n etc._n and_o franciscus_n petrarcha_n flourish_v about_o that_o time_n in_o his_o ninteenth_n &_o twenty_o epistle_n call_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o papacy_n the_o whoar_n of_o babylon_n the_o temple_n of_o heresy_n and_o treachery_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n describe_v it_o both_o at_o rome_n and_o at_o avinion_n where_o then_o the_o pope_n sit_v that_o he_o as_o it_o there_o seem_v count_v it_o the_o great_a evil_a that_o can_v befall_v a_o man_n to_o be_v make_v pope_n johannes_n de_fw-fr rupe_n scissâ_fw-la about_o 10._o year_n after_o in_o the_o year_n 1340_o be_v so_o sore_a a_o rebuker_n of_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o clergy_n that_o he_o be_v therefore_o imprison_v he_o also_o compare_v the_o pope_n to_o a_o bird_n rich_o clad_v with_o other_o bird_n feather_n &_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o for_o the_o pride_n of_o that_o bird_n he_o prophesi_v that_o the_o time_n will_v come_v when_o the_o other_o bird_n will_v call_v for_o their_o feather_n again_o and_o so_o make_v he_o know_v himself_o conradus_n hagar_n one_o of_o the_o city_n herbipolis_n about_o this_o time_n preach_v 24_o year_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o record_n of_o otho_n bishop_n of_o that_o city_n that_o the_o mass_n be_v no_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n either_o for_o the_o quick_a or_o the_o dead_a and_o within_o three_o year_n after_o the_o book_n call_v paenitentiarius_n asini_fw-la be_v write_v wherein_o the_o pope_n be_v resemble_v to_o the_o wolf_n the_o clergy_n to_o the_o fox_n and_o the_o laity_n to_o the_o poor_a ass_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o gerrhardus_fw-la ridder_n write_v a_o book_n call_v lachrima_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la wherein_o he_o vehement_o inveigh_v against_o beg_a friar_n michael_n chesenas_n before_o mention_v among_o other_o thing_n preach_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o rome_n babylon_n he_o have_v many_o follower_n whereof_o i_o read_v some_o be_v burn_v as_o johannes_n de_fw-fr castilone_n &_o franciscus_n de_fw-fr arcatarâ_fw-la and_o he_o himself_o be_v provincial_a of_o the_o grey_a friar_n be_v deprive_v and_o condemn_v in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o twenty_o two_o or_o there_o about_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o innocent_a the_o 6._o 1353_o i_o read_v that_o two_o franciscane_a friar_n be_v burn_v at_o auinion_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v one_o john_n de_fw-fr rochetalayda_n otherwise_o call_v hayabolus_n witness_n premonstrat_n and_o henry_n herford_n who_o as_o henry_n of_o herford_n write_v preach_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n clement_n the_o 6_o in_o the_o year_n 1345_o that_o he_o be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o preach_v that_o rome_n be_v babylon_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n be_v very_a antichrist_n and_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o pope_n for_o it_o to_o his_o face_n he_o bold_o do_v advouch_v the_o same_o brigit_fw-la who_o you_o yourselves_o have_v make_v a_o saint_n about_o the_o year_n 1370_o in_o her_o book_n of_o revelation_n be_v a_o most_o bitter_a rebuker_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n and_o so_o likewise_o be_v katherine_n senensis_n 2_o year_n after_o as_o antonine_n write_v in_o his_o 3_o part_n of_o his_o story_n term_v the_o pope_n a_o murderer_n of_o soul_n a_o spiller_n &_o pillar_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n say_v that_o they_o be_v more_o abominable_a they_o jew_n more_o cruel_a they_o judas_n more_o unjust_a they_o pilate_n &_o worse_o than_o lucifer_n himself_o and_o the_o former_a of_o they_o plain_o prophesy_v that_o their_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v throw_v down_o as_o a_o millstone_n into_o the_o deep_a &_o that_o the_o clergy_n have_v turn_v all_o god_n commandment_n into_o these_o two_o word_n dam_fw-la pecuniam_fw-la give_v money_n mathias_n parisiensis_fw-la a_o bohemian_a about_o the_o year_n 1370_o write_v a_o large_a book_n of_o antichrist_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v come_v &_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v he_o &_o the_o locust_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n he_o say_v be_v his_o hypocritical_a clergy_n about_o this_o very_a time_n greg._n the_o 11_o send_v a_o bull_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o prage_n stir_v he_o up_o thereby_o to_o persecute_v one_o melitzius_n and_o his_o follower_n who_o be_v charge_v in_o that_o bull_n to_o have_v preach_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o to_o have_v have_v congregation_n follow_v he_o as_o brushius_fw-la write_v in_o the_o year_n 1390._o there_o be_v burn_v at_o bringa_n 36._o citizen_n of_o moguntia_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o waldense_n hold_v also_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o massens_n record_v that_o there_o be_v burn_v about_o the_o same_o time_n 140._o for_o the_o same_o cause_n in_o the_o province_n of_o narbon_n and_o the_o same_o author_n testify_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1210._o 24_o suffer_v at_o paris_n and_o that_o the_o next_o year_n there_o be_v 400._o burn_v for_o the_o like_a cause_n 80._o behead_v prince_n armericus_n hang_v and_o the_o lady_n of_o the_o castle_n stone_v to_o death_n hoveden_n also_o note_v that_o about_o these_o time_n there_o be_v great_a number_n put_v to_o death_n in_o france_n for_o this_o cause_n of_o religion_n trithemius_n write_v that_o ecchardus_fw-la a_o dominic_n friar_n be_v put_v to_o death_n at_o hiddelberge_n in_o the_o year_n 1330_o for_o withstand_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n there_o be_v a_o old_a monument_n of_o process_n against_o 44●_n person_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n in_o pomerania_n marchia_n and_o place_n there_o about_o in_o the_o year_n 1391._o and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o if_o the_o record_n and_o statute_n of_o all_o country_n in_o these_o western_a part_n shall_v be_v search_v even_o thereby_o will_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v gainesay_v the_o pope_n &_o his_o proceed_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o great_a flourish_n and_o cruelty_n '_o have_n be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n infinite_a how_o much_o great_a then_o be_v it_o likely_a be_v the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o informer_n time_n when_o he_o be_v not_o grow_v to_o that_o power_n to_o vex_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n as_o he_o have_v be_v for_o these_o last_o 300._o or_o 400._o year_n have_v profess_v the_o truth_n bold_o against_o he_o thus_o be_v we_o come_v to_o john_n wicklifes_n time_n who_o flourish_v here_o in_o england_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 1372_o and_o yet_o i_o have_v for_o the_o avoid_v of_o too_o too_o much_o tediousness_n omit_v the_o name_n of_o a_o number_n of_o famous_a man_n that_o have_v also_o withstand_v popery_n and_o join_v with_o we_o in_o sundrypointe_v against_o they_o in_o those_o time_n that_o i_o have_v run_v through_o as_o namely_o alcuinus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n direct_o with_o we_o against_o they_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o real_a presence_n aelfricus_fw-la joachim_n abbot_n of_o calabria_n arnoldus_fw-la brixianus_fw-la almericus_n a_o learned_a bishop_n in_o innocent_n time_n the_o three_o judge_v a●_n heretic_n for_o teach_v as_o we_o do_v against_o image_n beringaiius_n reymundus_n earl_n of_o tolossa_n lord_n peter_n de_fw-fr cogneriis_fw-la eudo_fw-la duke_n of_o burgandie_n the_o archbishop_n of_o armah_n and_o infinite_a other_o i_o may_v also_o here_o again_o have_v remember_v that_o with_o h._n mutius_n write_v of_o a_o 100_o burn_v in_o one_o day_n in_o alsatia_n under_o innocent_a the_o 3_o in_o the_o year_n 1215_o when_o antichrist_n in_o the_o lateran_n council_n bring_v in_o the_o new_a and_o monstrous_a article_n of_o transubstantiation_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v even_o grow_v to_o his_o high_a degree_n of_o iniquity_n but_o to_o let_v these_o pass_v and_o to_o proceed_v john_n wicklife_o as_o it_o be_v famous_o know_v be_v with_o we_o against_o you_o in_o the_o most_o and_o weighty_a thing_n betwixt_o you_o and_o we_o in_o controversy_n and_o therefore_o in_o your_o council_n of_o constance_n you_o condemn_v he_o and_o cause_v his_o dry_a and_o rot_a bone_n to_o be_v take_v up_o again_o and_o burn_v while_o he_o live_v he_o have_v many_o great_a learned_a man_n here_o in_o england_n that_o join_v with_o he_o as_o namely_o nicholas_n herford_n philip_n repington_n john_n ashton_n and_o laurence_n redeman_n and_o so_o many_o follower_n have_v he_o and_o they_o and_o he_o have_v such_o favour_n and_o protection_n especial_o of_o the_o duke_n of_o lancaster_n that_o then_o be_v that_o though_o your_o prelate_n here_o in_o england_n vex_v and_o molest_v they_o what_o they_o can_v yet_o they_o and_o their_o favourer_n in_o short_a time_n grow_v to_o that_o strength_n and_o multitude_n that_o by_o the_o year_n 1422_o henry_n chicheley_n then_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n certify_v the_o pope_n that_o they_o all_o can_v not_o be_v suppress_v they_o be_v so_o many_o but_o by_o force_n of_o war_n
hundred_o year_n have_v be_v at_o contention_n &_o yet_o doubtless_o be_v not_o agree_v about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n whither_o it_o be_v in_o sin_n or_o no_o &_o about_o diverse_a &_o sundry_a other_o great_a mystery_n of_o their_o religion_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherein_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v at_o great_a unity_n yet_o if_o a_o man_n be_v dispose_v to_o note_v the_o diverse_a opinion_n therein_o among_o themselves_o he_o shall_v scarce_o ever_o know_v when_o to_o make_v a_o end_n for_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o that_o hold_v that_o there_o christ_n body_n be_v tear_v and_o chew_v with_o the_o tooth_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o recantation_n that_o they_o prescribe_v to_o beringarius_n other_o as_o guymund_n de_fw-fr consecra_fw-la dist_n 2._o think_v that_o too_o gross_a some_o as_o gardener_n will_v have_v hoc_fw-la to_o signify_v individuum_fw-la vagum_fw-la a_o certain_a thing_n that_o be_v but_o they_o can_v tell_v what_o other_o now_o will_v have_v it_o to_o note_v that_o which_o be_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n scotus_n and_o innocentius_n the_o four_o hold_v consecration_n to_o be_v not_o by_o the_o five_o word_n but_o by_o christ_n blessing_n other_o hold_v now_o that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o five_o word_n when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o eat_n some_o hold_n that_o it_o enter_v the_o mouth_n but_o no_o further_o other_o will_n have_v it_o to_o pass_v into_o the_o stomach_n but_o not_o into_o the_o gut_n other_o will_v have_v it_o to_o go_v thither_o also_o infinite_a be_v the_o question_n that_o they_o be_v fall_v into_o about_o this_o matter_n and_o in_o their_o last_o conventicle_n at_o trident_n where_o they_o have_v hope_v to_o have_v heal_v all_o these_o sore_n yet_o even_o then_o there_o grow_v a_o great_a contention_n betwixt_o two_o great_a captain_n of_o they_o archbishop_n catharinus_n and_o friar_n soto_n and_o that_o about_o no_o small_a matter_n namely_o about_o assure_a confidence_n of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n predestination_n original_a sin_n freewill_n and_o such_o like_a matter_n insomuch_o that_o for_o all_o the_o council_n can_v do_v for_o six_o year_n together_o they_o continual_o go_v on_o in_o write_v book_n bitter_o one_o against_o another_o the_o same_o catharin_n also_o write_v a_o book_n against_o caietan_n a_o cardinal_n lay_v therein_o to_o his_o charge_n 200._o error_n contention_n also_o the_o same_o catharin_n have_v with_o franciscus_n torrensis_n a_o man_n otherwise_o of_o his_o own_o faction_n about_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n &_o residence_n of_o bishop_n both_o which_o the_o one_o hold_v be_v as_o he_o teach_v therein_o warrant_v by_o god_n word_n the_o other_o stout_o hold_v the_o contrary_a in_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n free_a grace_n and_o original_a sin_n ruard_v tapper_n a_o great_a papist_n and_o deane_n of_o colen_n in_o his_o second_o tome_n write_v against_o piggius_n a_o archpiller_n of_o that_o synagogue_n contend_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v deceive_v and_o err_v in_o those_o point_n but_o what_o shall_v i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o reckon_v up_o the_o contention_n and_o controversy_n that_o be_v among_o they_o for_o certain_a it_o be_v they_o be_v so_o many_o and_o infinite_a that_o a_o man_n if_o he_o be_v dispose_v may_v write_v a_o book_n of_o a_o whole_a choir_n of_o paper_n consist_v only_o of_o a_o bare_a recital_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n that_o their_o writer_n have_v set_v down_o in_o their_o own_o book_n about_o point_n and_o question_n of_o religion_n and_o yet_o see_v as_o though_o there_o never_o have_v be_v jar_n among_o they_o they_o brag_v of_o unity_n among_o the_o simple_a and_o labour_v our_o disgrace_n with_o the_o objection_n of_o variety_n of_o opinion_n among_o we_o especial_o about_o this_o one_o point_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o see_v now_o hereby_o in_o part_n you_o see_v at_o what_o agreement_n they_o be_v i_o hope_v you_o think_v it_o reason_n that_o they_o shall_v agree_v better_o amongst_o themselves_o before_o they_o insult_v any_o more_o against_o we_o for_o our_o disagreement_n last_o they_o do_v we_o wrong_n in_o seek_v to_o disgrace_v we_o and_o our_o religion_n in_o that_o since_o luther_n begin_v to_o preach_v there_o have_v rise_v up_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a fond_a and_o foolish_a heretic_n for_o we_o read_v that_o immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n even_o within_o few_o year_n epiphanius_n by_o his_o time_n can_v reckon_v up_o eighty_o and_o augustine_n more_o several_a error_n and_o heresy_n which_o in_o effect_n do_v grow_v together_o with_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o the_o gospel_n not_o to_o be_v blame_v therefore_o but_o satan_n who_o where_o the_o good_a seedsman_n sow_v good_a seed_n use_v to_o sow_v also_o his_o tare_n matthew_n the_o thirteen_o and_o yet_o it_o seem_v by_o saint_n johns_n prevention_n of_o this_o objection_n that_o some_o aswell_o affect_v to_o the_o gospel_n then_o belike_o as_o you_o be_v now_o be_v ready_a hereby_o to_o discredit_v both_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o doctrine_n but_o johns_n answer_n be_v they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v continue_v with_o us._n but_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o we_o 1._o john_n 3._o even_o so_o we_o answer_v you_o concern_v those_o that_o you_o say_v have_v any_o where_n since_o luther_n rise_v among_o we_o and_o fall_v into_o heresy_n yet_o further_o so_o much_o the_o more_o apparent_a be_v the_o wrong_n that_o you_o offer_v we_o in_o this_o behalf_n in_o that_o not_o only_o you_o know_v we_o shun_v communion_n with_o they_o as_o well_o as_o you_o but_o that_o also_o it_o evident_o have_v appear_v to_o the_o world_n that_o we_o have_v be_v both_o the_o first_o and_o the_o forward_a in_o detect_v of_o they_o and_o in_o confute_v of_o they_o from_o time_n to_o time_n wherefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o hitherto_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o of_o any_o force_n for_o the_o justification_n either_o of_o your_o vocation_n church_n or_o religion_n the_o v._o chapter_n the_o like_a unto_o this_o be_v confirm_v by_o vincensius_fw-la lyrinensis_n of_o who_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o book_n above_o name_v that_o that_o person_n ought_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o true_a catholic_a antiquity_n catholic_a this_o rule_n be_v sound_a and_o good_a but_o it_o quite_o overthrow_v popery_n because_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v this_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n for_o ●he_v contrary_a be_v certain_a both_o by_o scripture_n and_o all_o sound_a antiquity_n that_o have_v nothing_o in_o great_a commendation_n than_o the_o true_a religion_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n yea_o although_o it_o be_v the_o wise_a man_n in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o great_a philosopher_n and_o the_o fair_a speaker_n that_o ever_o be_v if_o he_o come_v to_o speak_v against_o the_o old_a doctrine_n that_o have_v be_v teach_v we_o of_o our_o forefather_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n we_o ought_v say_v he_o to_o disdain_v that_o learned_a clerk_n with_o all_o his_o philosophy_n &_o cunning_a &_o to_o hold_v ourselves_o to_o the_o ancient_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o have_v continue_v until_o this_o present_a day_n religion_n day_n but_o such_o as_o all_o popery_n and_o no_o part_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o if_o that_o now_o one_o shall_v bring_v a_o new_a doctrine_n that_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o before_o contrary_a unto_o that_o that_o have_v ever_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n say_v that_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o the_o state_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n &_o that_o it_o be_v no_o religion_n but_o a_o temptation_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o will_v be_v save_v we_o ought_v to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o faith_n that_o have_v continue_v by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n even_o from_o christ_n time_n unto_o these_o day_n s._n irenaeus_n a_o very_a famous_a writer_n 65._o lib._n 4._o contr_n haer_fw-mi cap._n 65._o in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o heresy_n the_o 65._o chapter_n who_o be_v within_o a_o few_o year_n of_o the_o apostle_n archbishop_n of_o lion_n write_v the_o very_a like_a impossible_a like_a prove_v your_o religion_n now_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v in_o irenaeus_n time_n and_o then_o you_o say_v something_o &_o his_o testimony_n make_v for_o you_o otherwise_o not_o and_o this_o be_v impossible_a say_v that_o the_o true_a faith_n &_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o ancient_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n
according_a to_o the_o succession_n of_o those_o bishop_n unto_o who_o only_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o custody_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n the_o which_o say_v he_o be_v come_v to_o us._n this_o say_v irenaeus_n do_v write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n do_v withstand_v the_o valentinian_o and_o the_o marcioniste_n which_o be_v great_a heretic_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n apostle_n a_o curse_a gloss_n for_o it_o corrupt_v the_o text_n for_o the_o tradition_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o have_v good_a warrant_n in_o the_o write_v word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n not_o write_v but_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o continue_v till_o their_o time_n he_o say_v likewise_o unto_o the_o tradition_n which_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n we_o do_v persuade_v and_o provoke_v those_o that_o speak_v against_o tradition_n he_o write_v as_o much_o more_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v book_n forasmuch_o say_v he_o as_o it_o be_v to_o tedious_a to_o set_v forth_o in_o one_o book_n the_o successor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o one_o by_o one_o we_o do●●●●●_n throw_v those_o that_o for_o vain_a glory_n do_v seek_v to_o gather_v disciple_n together_o touch_v they_o contrary_a to_o that_o that_o do_v appertain_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o which_o we_o do_v show_v to_o they_o by_o the_o say_v tradition_n and_o by_o the_o faith_n that_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o be_v come_v to_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o great_a and_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o two_o glorious_a martyr_n and_o apostle_n saint_n peter_n &_o saint_n paul_n these_o be_v his_o word_n in_o his_o three_o book_n adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la say_v haereses_fw-la the_o three_o you_o shall_v say_v the_o five_o chapter_n and_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o say_v chapter_n he_o say_v thus_o all_o these_o that_o will_v understand_v the_o truth_n may_v present_o regard_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v manifest_a throughout_o the_o world_n and_o we_o can_v count_v the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n and_o their_o successor_n till_o our_o day_n which_o have_v neither_o know_v nor_o teach_v any_o thing_n like_o unto_o the_o fable_n and_o tale_n that_o these_o do_v preach_v unto_o us._n untrue_o us._n if_o you_o say_v so_o you_o say_v it_o without_o cause_n and_o untrue_o not_o without_o cause_n we_o may_v now_o a_o day_n say_v the_o like_a of_o the_o lutheran_n caluiniste_n &_o other_o sect_n of_o our_o time_n after_o this_o he_o do_v set_v forth_o all_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v rome_n if_o the_o pope_n ever_o since_o have_v be_v like_o these_o you_o and_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v need_v to_o strive_v as_o we_o do_v from_o saint_n peter_n unto_o eleutherius_fw-la which_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o he_o do_v affirm_v that_o that_o number_n do_v suffice_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o marcian_n and_o valentinian_n be_v false_a &_o very_a hurtful_a because_o that_o it_o be_v unknown_a or_o at_o the_o least_o not_o receive_v or_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n be_v under_o the_o governance_n of_o any_o of_o th●se_a pope_n then_o with_o great_a reason_n ought_v prescription_n to_o take_v place_n against_o be_v against_o true_a but_o such_o you_o shall_v never_o prove_v we_o to_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v unknowen_a this_o 1500._o year_n or_o at_o the_o least_o if_o any_o body_n seek_v to_o publish_v it_o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o false_a perditious_a heretic_n the_o v._o chapter_n you_o must_v remember_v that_o vincentius_n live_v 1000_o year_n ago_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n &_o that_o therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o their_o time_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o ancient_a faith_n that_o then_o be_v whereof_o if_o you_o understand_v he_o we_o say_v as_o he_o say_v and_o be_v more_o willing_a to_o join_v and_o hold_v communion_n with_o that_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o than_o you_o but_o then_o his_o say_n make_v direct_o against_o you_o for_o neither_o your_o church_n nor_o faith_n be_v in_o his_o day_n we_o grant_v you_o also_o that_o irenaeus_n do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o heretic_n as_o you_o show_v in_o this_o chapter_n out_o of_o he_o but_o withal_o then_o you_o must_v not_o forget_v that_o he_o live_v not_o long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o as_o yet_o they_o who_o succession_n he_o allege_v continue_v in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n from_o which_o long_o ago_o your_o roman_a church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o have_v fall_v by_o antichristian_a apostasy_n for_o that_o he_o call_v the_o principal_a succession_n and_o those_o bishop_n only_o he_o teach_v be_v to_o be_v obey_v who_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopricke_n have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o truth_n as_o i_o note_v unto_o you_o out_o of_o his_o four_o book_n 43_o chapter_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o first_o chapter_n but_o irenaeus_n no_o where_n prescribe_v that_o his_o example_n of_o urge_v heretic_n to_o see_v their_o folly_n by_o succession_n for_o a_o perpetual_a rule_n to_o follow_v neither_o therein_o do_v he_o prophecy_n that_o for_o 1000_o year_n after_o &_o further_o those_o successive_a line_n of_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o will_v continue_v so_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n as_o that_o safe_o always_o they_o may_v be_v join_v unto_o for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o be_v prophesy_v concern_v the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n 2_o thess_n 2._o and_o revel_v 17._o and_o that_o paul_n tell_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o that_o after_o his_o departure_n there_o will_v arise_v up_o even_o among_o themselves_o grievous_a wolf_n not_o spare_v the_o flock_n which_o must_v needs_o import_v that_o howsoever_o in_o his_o time_n he_o think_v sometime_o of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n that_o yet_o it_o be_v far_o from_o his_o meaning_n to_o prophecy_n that_o so_o it_o will_v be_v always_o you_o reason_v therefore_o in_o this_o point_n as_o one_o that_o to_o prove_v the_o stew_n at_o rome_n now_o to_o be_v pure_a virgin_n shall_v allege_v for_o proof_n thereof_o that_o they_o be_v so_o when_o they_o be_v young_a child_n for_o even_o like_a difference_n and_o odds_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o and_o her_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o that_o that_o be_v in_o the_o day_n &_o time_n that_o you_o and_o the_o author_n that_o you_o allege_v speak_v of_o for_o whereas_o unto_o these_o time_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n stand_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n since_o not_o only_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o who_o you_o hold_v be_v free_a &_o further_a of_o of_o all_o other_o from_o err_v as_o i_o have_v show_v already_o most_o plain_o fall_v into_o heresy_n but_o also_o all_o your_o romish_a doctrine_n which_o we_o now_o count_v &_o call_v papistical_a be_v divise_v &_o find_v out_o since_o those_o time_n and_o be_v also_o not_o only_o beside_o but_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n then_o teach_v &_o receive_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o pastor_n as_o ere_o i_o have_v do_v with_o you_o i_o hope_v at_o least_o in_o great_a part_n sufficient_o to_o prove_v it_o shall_v seem_v therefore_o that_o either_o you_o in_o thus_o reason_v be_v very_o childish_a yourself_o or_o else_o you_o think_v you_o have_v to_o deal_v but_o with_o babe_n and_o fool_n in_o that_o because_o irenaeus_n that_o flourish_v within_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o the_o church_n be_v yet_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o time_n that_o follow_v can_v and_o do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n join_v with_o succession_n of_o truth_n therefore_o you_o may_v that_o live_v 1500._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o more_o you_o must_v first_o prove_v that_o succession_n of_o truth_n be_v unseparable_a from_o personal_a succession_n &_o that_o ever_o since_o and_o now_o also_o the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n who_o personal_a succession_n you_o brag_v of_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o truth_n as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v who_o name_n he_o recite_v whereof_o neither_o shall_v either_o you_o or_o any_o of_o you_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n stand_v fie_o therefore_o for_o shame_n that_o you_o
that_o by_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n he_o understand_v this_o same_o doctrine_n of_o god_n the_o father_n which_o before_o they_o write_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o lively_a voice_n &_o afterward_o as_o it_o appear_v they_o set_v down_o in_o writing_n be_v this_o they_o honest_a deal_n in_o you_o to_o make_v your_o reader_n believe_v that_o he_o mean_v of_o unwriten_a doctrine_n such_o as_o the_o be_v for_o which_o you_o &_o we_o strive_v see_v he_o tell_v you_o himself_o that_o by_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n you_o be_v to_o understand_v this_o doctrine_n of_o god_n the_o father_n most_o plain_o &_o plentiful_o write_v and_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n you_o may_v have_v learn_v of_o s._n paul_n 2._o thes_n 2.15_o that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tradition_n may_v as_o well_o be_v refer_v to_o express_v doctrine_n in_o scripture_n as_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n where_o the_o apostle_n as_o then_o very_a little_a of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v and_o as_o then_o therefore_o the_o whole_a apostolic_a doctrine_n therein_o not_o be_v express_v say_v hold_v fast_o brethren_n the_o document_n deliver_v you_o whither_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n but_o you_o be_v the_o less_o to_o be_v blame_v &_o the_o more_o to_o be_v bear_v withal_o for_o this_o your_o wilful_a thus_o abuse_v your_o reader_n because_o the_o make_n or_o mar_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n stand_v upon_o unwriten_a verity_n or_o rather_o forgery_n which_o you_o call_v the_o apostolic_a or_o the_o holy_a church_n tradition_n for_o there_o be_v few_o or_o none_o of_o those_o point_n of_o religion_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o you_o and_o strive_v with_o you_o about_o but_o your_o own_o great_a champion_n have_v confess_v have_v their_o ground_n from_o hence_o and_o not_o from_o the_o scripture_n as_o any_o man_n that_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v they_o may_v see_v in_o peter_n soto_n against_o brentius_n in_o the_o 5._o cap._n of_o canisius_n catechism_n &_o in_o the_o 5._o book_n &_o 100_o c._n of_o lindans_fw-la panoply_n where_o they_o reckon_v up_o almost_o all_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o &_o we_o in_o religion_n and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v plain_o confess_v the_o ground_n thereof_o to_o be_v but_o tradition_n and_o therefore_o to_o countenance_v this_o only_a bulwark_n of_o your_o church_n &_o religion_n at_o least_o with_o those_o that_o either_o for_o lack_n of_o leisure_n or_o learning_n can_v examine_v your_o quotation_n it_o be_v not_o your_o fault_n here_o alone_o but_o the_o common_a fault_n of_o you_o all_o where_o you_o find_v any_o mention_n in_o father_n of_o tradition_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o evident_a that_o thereby_o they_o mean_v nothing_o beside_o that_o which_o also_o have_v warrant_n from_o the_o word_n write_v to_o allege_v that_o place_n straight_o to_o countenance_v your_o unwriten_a tradition_n to_o prevent_v you_o therefore_o hereafter_o of_o thus_o abuse_v the_o simple_a i_o will_v wish_v they_o &_o all_o other_o to_o mark_v how_o flat_o against_o your_o unwriten_a &_o unwaranted_a tradition_n by_o the_o write_v word_n the_o father_n with_o one_o consent_n have_v write_v for_o the_o absolute_a sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n beside_o that_o which_o you_o herd_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n &_o tertullian_n to_o this_o purpose_n irenaeus_n say_v further_a in_o his_o five_o book_n we_o must_v run_v to_o the_o church_n &_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o her_o boatswain_n &_o nourish_v with_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n and_o tert_n against_o hermog_n write_v let_v hermogenes_n show_v that_o it_o be_v write_v if_o it_o be_v not_o write_v let_v he_o fear_v that_o woe_n that_o be_v threaten_v or_o appoint_v to_o the_o adder_n or_o taker_n away_o as_o for_o origen_n we_o have_v hear_v he_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o our_o sense_n and_o declaration_n without_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v no_o credit_n in_o he_o 1._o hom._n upon_o jerem._n and_o great_a and_o worthy_a athanasius_n say_v the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v the_o truth_n against_o idol_n hilary_n say_v it_o be_v well_o that_o we_o be_v content_a with_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n cyrill_n upon_o john_n in_o his_o 12._o book_n and_o 68_o cap._n grant_v indeed_o that_o all_o thing_n that_o christ_n do_v be_v not_o write_v but_o he_o say_v those_o thing_n be_v write_v which_o the_o writer_n think_v sufficient_a both_o for_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n chrysostome_n write_v upon_o the_o 2._o to_o timothy_n homil._n 9_o say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n needful_a either_o to_o learn_v or_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o we_o shall_v learn_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o commentary_n upon_o matth._n common_o also_o father_v upon_o chrysostome_n we_o read_v these_o golden_a word_n they_o that_o be_v in_o christianity_n let_v they_o flee_v to_o the_o scripture_n because_o they_o can_v have_v no_o other_o proof_n of_o christianity_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n to_o this_o end_n read_v also_o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 2_o to_o the_o thes_n hom._n 3._o basil_n also_o very_o sharp_o write_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o evident_a argument_n of_o infidelity_n and_o a_o most_o certain_a sign_n of_o pride_n if_o any_o man_n either_o do_v reject_v any_o thing_n of_o that_o which_o be_v write_v or_o bring_v any_o thing_n not_o write_v see_v the_o lord_n say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o they_o follow_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o stranger_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o true_a and_o godly_a faith_n where_o also_o he_o note_v that_o paul_n galat._n 3._o by_o a_o example_n take_v from_o man_n most_o vehement_o forbid_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n or_o which_o god_n forbid_v say_v he_o be_v add_v thereunto_o and_o therefore_o he_o in_o moral_a reg._n 26._o say_v further_a whatsoever_o we_o say_v or_o do_v it_o must_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o likewise_o in_o his_o 80_o rule_n he_o gather_v that_o see_v faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n without_o doubt_n whatsoever_o be_v without_o the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v it_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n must_v needs_o be_v sin_n and_o therefore_o he_o add_v in_o that_o rule_n let_v we_o stand_v to_o the_o arbitrament_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o with_o who_o doctrine_n be_v find_v consonant_n thereunto_o let_v the_o sentence_n of_o all_o truth_n be_v adjudge_v of_o their_o side_n hierome_n upon_o agge_n cap._n 1._o say_v those_o thing_n which_o of_o their_o own_o head_n they_o devise_v as_o though_o they_o come_v by_o apostolic_a tradition_n without_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o sword_n of_o god_n strike_v who_o also_o upon_o math._n cap._n 23._o say_v that_o which_o have_v not_o authority_n from_o the_o scripture_n as_o easy_o be_v despise_v as_o approve_v and_o contra_fw-la heluidium_fw-la he_o say_v we_o believe_v it_o because_o we_o read_v it_o and_o we_o believe_v it_o not_o because_o we_o read_v it_o not_o august_n against_o cresconins_n the_o grammarian_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n write_v that_o there_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n ordain_v whereunto_o belong_v the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n by_o which_o book_n we_o judge_v of_o all_o other_o writing_n both_o of_o the_o faithful_a and_o of_o the_o infidel_n out_o of_o who_o already_o we_o have_v hear_v diverse_a plain_a testimony_n to_o this_o purpose_n especial_o that_o against_o petilian_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 6._o cap._n set_v down_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o 3._o chap_n damascen_n be_v as_o plain_a as_o any_o of_o these_o in_o his_o 1_o book_n of_o right_a faith_n cap._n 1._o cuncta_fw-la quae_fw-la tradit_fw-la a_o sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o be_v deliver_v we_o by_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n we_o embrace_v we_o acknowledge_v &_o reverence_v beyond_o those_o seek_v no_o further_o for_o all_o thing_n concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n he_o confess_v be_v plain_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o doct_n christ_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 9_o infinite_a such_o place_n may_v be_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o they_o be_v full_a of_o they_o whereby_o it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o uniform_a and_o general_a judgement_n and_o opinion_n of_o they_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o therefore_o in_o deed_n and_o truth_n you_o make_v any_o reckon_n of_o their_o general_a consent_n as_o often_o time_n you_o will_v
and_o not_o to_o perfect_v it_o be_v to_o leave_v the_o church_n without_o a_o perfect_a touchstone_n to_o try_v all_o doctrine_n by_o and_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v either_o because_o he_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o perfect_v it_o whereof_o the_o one_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o almighty_a power_n and_o infinite_a knowledge_n the_o other_o of_o the_o perfection_n of_o love_n and_o faithfulness_n towards_o the_o churchy_n therefore_o most_o certain_o in_o the_o write_v word_n there_o be_v leave_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a direction_n for_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o those_o unwriten_a tradition_n that_o some_o strive_v for_o be_v superfluous_a thus_o you_o have_v your_o answer_n to_o this_o chapter_n the_o vi_o chapter_n saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o epistle_n all_o epistle_n you_o shall_v say_v 165._o f_o r_o there_n be_v but_o 204._o epistle_n in_o all_o 365._o about_o the_o like_a matter_n do_v set_v forth_o all_o the_o pope_n by_o order_n which_o have_v be_v from_o s._n peter_n time_n until_o anastasius_n which_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o by_o his_o continual_a succession_n he_o do_v prove_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o same_o argument_n we_o disprove_v popery_n because_o none_o of_o they_o that_o he_o reckon_v up_o there_o be_v of_o the_o romish_a religion_n that_o now_o be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v heretical_a because_o that_o none_o of_o those_o pope_n which_o he_o do_v recite_v nor_o no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n do_v receive_v it_o i_o pray_v you_o may_v not_o we_o say_v the_o like_a by_o the_o caluiniste_n the_o no_o not_o by_o they_o true_o who_o you_o call_v caluiniste_n caluinist_n and_o other_o heretic_n the_o say_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o epistle_n that_o these_o that_o it_o seem_v you_o be_v a_o learned_a man_n for_o augustine_n write_v against_o a_o epistle_n so_o call_v he_o call_v not_o his_o so_o the_o epithet_n roman_n you_o add_v &_o the_o word_n all_o and_o continual_a for_o he_o speak_v but_o of_o succession_n to_o his_o time_n and_o yet_o there_o he_o say_v that_o o●●●e_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o these_o he_o do_v call_v epistola_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 4._o do_v write_v the_o reason_n that_o do_v keep_v he_o under_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n and_o among_o other_o he_o do_v allege_v the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o nation_n &_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n one_o bishop_n this_o show_v your_o great_a ignorance_n or_o negligence_n for_o of_o th●●_n argument_n augustine_n write_v two_o book_n and_o in_o every_o book_n many_o chapter_n there_o be_v but_o this_o be_v common_a with_o you_o the_o more_o to_o trouble_v your_o reader_n to_o send_v he_o to_o whole_a book_n and_o beside_o sometime_o to_o set_v down_o your_o quotation_n as_o though_o the_o author_n have_v write_v but_o one_o when_o he_o write_v mo_z of_o that_o argument_n or_o as_o though_o he_o have_v write_v more_o when_o he_o have_v write_v but_o one_o and_o in_o his_o book_n which_o he_o make_v against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n he_o do_v name_n the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o most_o certain_a to_o answer_v to_o that_o that_o we_o say_v before_o of_o s._n 1._o s._n ephes_n 1._o paul_n 4._o paul_n you_o write_v ephes_n 1._o for_o ephes_n 4._o i_o mean_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o be_v waver_v and_o doubtful_a in_o our_o doctrine_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v firm_a and_o stable_a the_o which_o stableness_n be_v obtain_v by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o intelligence_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n not_o bishop_n it_o continue_v so_o to_o augustine_n time_n that_o be_v three_o or_o four_o hundred_o year_n so_o ergo_fw-la so_fw-mi a_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o it_o shall_v so_o continue_v the_o argument_n follow_v not_o the_o church_n say_v s._n augustine_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v continue_v through_o the_o certain_a succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n until_o our_o day_n the_o vi_o chapter_n in_o this_o 6._o chapter_n you_o cite_v three_o place_n though_o some_o of_o they_o wrong_v quote_v out_o of_o augustine_n whereby_o indeed_o it_o appear_v that_o as_o irenaeus_n do_v object_n succession_n even_o so_o do_v he_o to_o confute_v the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n that_o teach_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v unto_o you_o concern_v irenaeus_n so_o do_v i_o concern_v he_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o augustine_n live_v &_o write_v within_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n unto_o who_o time_n the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n who_o succession_n he_o produce_v have_v continue_v at_o least_o sound_v in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n from_o which_o you_o &_o your_o predecessor_n fall_v away_o long_o ago_o &_o therefore_o that_o which_o he_o may_v herein_o safe_o and_o to_o good_a purpose_n do_v you_o can_v do_v without_o peril_n &_o to_o a_o ill_a end_n again_o you_o must_v be_v tell_v that_o as_o irenaeus_n be_v not_o so_o neither_o be_v he_o in_o thus_o do_v a_o prophet_n to_o show_v that_o to_o the_o world_n end_n it_o will_v be_v safe_a thus_o to_o do_v and_o last_o i_o will_v have_v both_o you_o and_o your_o reader_n to_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o bare_a personal_a succession_n that_o augustine_n here_o make_v such_o reckon_n of_o but_o that_o when_o it_o be_v join_v also_o with_o succession_n of_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o time_n with_o they_o of_o who_o succession_n he_o speak_v and_o be_v not_o now_o with_o you_o and_o they_o of_o who_o succession_n you_o brag_v so_o much_o which_o three_o thing_n consider_v whatsoever_o thing_n further_a by_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o fellow_n be_v allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n out_o of_o tertullian_n cyprian_n or_o epiphanius_n which_o you_o may_v have_v as_o well_o allege_v as_o irenaeus_n or_o augustine_n be_v answer_v for_o they_o all_o of_o they_o live_v within_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o as_o yet_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n stand_v in_o good_a term_n in_o comparison_n that_o you_o do_v and_o they_o all_o speak_v of_o succession_n of_o person_n succeed_v also_o one_o another_o in_o the_o apostolic_a truth_n and_o they_o speak_v but_o for_o their_o own_o time_n they_o prophesy_v not_o that_o so_o it_o will_v be_v always_o and_o yet_o thus_o it_o be_v your_o fashion_n to_o beguile_v the_o simple_a that_o whatsoever_o you_o read_v 1000_o year_n ago_o speak_v in_o commendation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o then_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n or_o catholic_a faith_n that_o you_o will_v bear_v they_o in_o hand_n be_v speak_v of_o your_o romish_a church_n and_o religion_n now_o when_o as_o you_o compare_v with_o those_o time_n have_v no_o similitude_n with_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n then_o in_o a_o great_a number_n of_o weighty_a point_n but_o for_o the_o better_a satisfy_n of_o the_o reader_n indeed_o s._n august_n what_o account_n soever_o either_o in_o these_o place_n here_o recite_v by_o you_o or_o else_o where_o he_o seem_v to_o make_v of_o personal_a succession_n or_o of_o any_o such_o outward_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n make_v more_o account_n of_o sole_a truth_n teach_v only_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n then_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n beside_o for_o even_o in_o in_o his_o 165._o epistle_n which_o be_v the_o epistle_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v which_o you_o mean_v though_o you_o quote_v the_o 365._o which_o be_v more_o by_o a_o hundred_o &_o one_o then_o there_o be_v in_o all_o after_o he_o say_v we_o presume_v not_o so_o much_o of_o these_o as_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o second_o place_n by_o you_o here_o cite_v out_o of_o he_o which_o ignorant_o you_o say_v he_o call_v epistola_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la whereas_o he_o call_v none_o of_o his_o epistle_n so_o but_o write_v against_o a_o epistle_n of_o the_o manichee_n which_o they_o so_o call_v one_o book_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n whereof_o after_o he_o have_v reckon_v up_o the_o thing_n which_o do_v hold_v he_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o may_v likewise_o hold_v any_o believer_n therein_o though_o truth_n as_o yet_o do_v not_o most_o manifest_o show_v herself_o he_o add_v by_o &_o by_o but_z with_o you_o speak_v to_o the_o manichee_n sola_fw-la personat_fw-la veritatis_fw-la pollicitatio_fw-la etc._n etc._n only_a promise_n of_o truth_n ring_v which_o true_o if_o it_o be_v show_v to_o be_v on_o your_o side_n so_o manifest_a that_o it_o can_v be_v call_v into_o doubt_n praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la illis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o
catholicâ_fw-la teneor_fw-la that_o be_v be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o those_o thing_n whereby_o otherwise_o i_o be_o hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o three_o place_n likewise_o which_o you_o allege_v here_o out_o of_o augustine_n as_o you_o have_v quote_v it_o serve_v only_o to_o bewray_v either_o your_o gross_a ignorance_n or_o negligence_n for_o i_o find_v he_o write_v 2._o book_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n but_o none_o in_o all_o his_o tome_n can_v i_o find_v father_v upon_o he_o write_v as_o you_o say_v against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n and_o if_o you_o mean_v the_o former_a there_o be_v two_o book_n of_o that_o title_n and_o every_o one_o consist_v of_o many_o chapter_n why_o speak_v you_o thereof_o as_o though_o he_o have_v write_v but_o one_o and_o name_v not_o the_o chapter_n when_o you_o tell_v we_o where_o to_o find_v the_o place_n you_o shall_v be_v more_o particular_o answer_v thereunto_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o see_v in_o augustine_n judgement_n in_o the_o two_o other_o place_n that_o the_o truth_n teach_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o motive_n to_o keep_v a_o man_n in_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n contrary_n whereunto_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o neither_o teach_v where_o you_o mean_v nor_o any_o where_o else_o you_o shall_v therefore_o in_o his_o opinion_n far_o better_o bestow_v your_o time_n than_o you_o do_v if_o you_o will_v bestow_v it_o in_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o you_o &_o your_o church_n be_v stable_n in_o this_o truth_n especial_o see_v truth_n itself_o even_o here_o have_v enforce_v you_o to_o confess_v that_o that_o stableness_n be_v attein_v unto_o by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o intelligence_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o you_o add_v that_o these_o scripture_n they_o must_v be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n if_o by_o the_o church_n you_o do_v understande_v as_o you_o shall_v the_o true_a and_o pure_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o her_o tradition_n and_o bishop_n such_o as_o be_v sound_a that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v true_o justifiable_a by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o the_o ancient_a father_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n &_o augustine_n with_o other_o of_o those_o and_o former_a time_n be_v wont_v to_o understand_v they_o as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o when_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o heretic_n they_o do_v appeal_v to_o they_o then_o we_o will_v most_o willing_o join_v with_o you_o that_o issue_n by_o the_o scripture_n so_o understand_v to_o try_v whether_o you_o or_o we_o have_v attain_v to_o the_o stableness_n of_o truth_n but_o understand_v thereby_o as_o you_o do_v your_o romish_a church_n for_o these_o last_o 500_o or_o 600._o year_n &_o her_o tradition_n &_o bishop_n we_o say_v and_o sure_a we_o be_v we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v it_o that_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o they_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ready_a way_n to_o misunderstand_v they_o and_o to_o make_v they_o to_o have_v a_o mutable_a and_o flexible_a sense_n now_o one_o way_n now_o another_o then_o to_o make_v they_o they_o be_v so_o contrary_a as_o they_o be_v to_o the_o ancient_a &_o sound_a tradition_n of_o christ_n church_n which_o always_o be_v consonant_a if_o not_o the_o very_a same_o to_z that_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o word_n write_v &_o the_o bishop_n you_o mean_v be_v likewise_o so_o different_a from_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n and_o often_o also_o so_o vary_v among_o themselves_o as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o interpret_n of_o they_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o right_a understanding_n of_o they_o final_o if_o you_o have_v any_o forehead_n or_o conscience_n you_o will_v be_v ashamed_a so_o to_o abuse_v your_o poor_a simple_a reader_n as_o you_o do_v in_o go_v about_o to_o make_v he_o believe_v that_o because_o augustine_n can_v or_o do_v say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v continue_v in_o it_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n through_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n to_z his_o that_o therefore_o he_o say_v it_o have_v so_o to_o we_o there_o be_v above_o 1000_o year_n difference_n the_o vii_o chapter_n you_o do_v study_v as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v to_o reject_v our_o succession_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n esteem_v cause_n succession_n of_o person_n without_o succession_n also_o in_o truth_n never_o be_v esteem_v know_v that_o this_o only_a do_v suffice_v to_o overthrow_v all_o the_o heresy_n of_o those_o new_a reform_a gospeler_n caluin_n as_o the_o most_o apparent_a do_v seek_v to_o prove_v that_o our_o reason_n be_v of_o no_o force_n because_o that_o the_o greek_n have_v have_v ever_o succession_n of_o pastor_n and_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o hold_v they_o as_o catholic_n but_o if_o the_o reader_n do_v well_o note_v that_o that_o we_o have_v already_o say_v he_o shall_v find_v the_o answer_n unto_o this_o objection_n i_o mean_v because_o that_o the_o greek_n have_v not_o have_v succession_n shame_n succession_n hold_v you_o to_o this_o &_o you_o may_v give_v over_o your_o brag_n of_o succession_n for_o shame_n and_o continuance_n of_o doctrine_n call_v unity_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o apostle_n the_o which_o ought_v ever_o to_o be_v join_v to_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o pastor_n to_o show_v the_o true_a recognisaunce_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v study_n and_o read_v of_o those_o matter_n but_o that_o do_v know_v the_o unconstant_a faith_n of_o the_o greek_n as_o touch_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o which_o error_n they_o have_v abjure_v at_o the_o last_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v turn_v to_o it_o again_o beside_o diverse_a other_o light_a thing_n to_o speak_v moderate_o forefather_n moderate_o you_o have_v as_o many_o thing_n of_o importance_n and_o more_o too_o gainesai●d_v by_o your_o forefather_n which_o be_v not_o approve_v by_o their_o ancient_a father_n s._n john_n chrysostome_n s._n ciril_n s_o basil_n &_o athanatius_n nor_o yet_o by_o our_o adversary_n at_o this_o present_a time_n the_o which_o error_n i_o have_v no_o need_n to_o set_v forth_o in_o this_o book_n for_o my_o intent_n be_v but_o to_o speak_v of_o that_o that_o prick_v we_o at_o hand_n because_o of_o ill_a neighbourhood_n some_o do_v allege_v unto_o we_o the_o pastor_n the_o we_o never_o allege_v this_o alone_a but_o together_o with_o the_o false_a doctrine_n and_o unlawful_a vocation_n of_o your_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n negligence_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o their_o ill_a life_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n they_o say_v that_o the_o mention_a succession_n can_v take_v place_n but_o this_o argument_n be_v of_o no_o force_n for_o although_o that_o the_o careless_a life_n of_o some_o bishop_n and_o ecclesiastical_a person_n have_v be_v so_o great_a &_o so_o hurtful_a unto_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n i_o mean_v to_o the_o soul_n buy_v with_o it_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o priest_n that_o yet_o thus_o for_o the_o principal_a point_n you_o be_v glad_a to_o fly_v from_o your_o great_a prelate_n to_o your_o poor_a priest_n the_o church_n have_v not_o lose_v the_o succession_n &_o continuance_n of_o one_o doctrine_n as_o touch_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o those_o that_o be_v depute_v by_o the_o bishop_n prelate_n bishop_n indeed_o this_o kind_n of_o division_n be_v altogether_o practise_v in_o your_o romish_a church_n by_o your_o cardinal_n and_o great_a prelate_n if_o one_o shall_v see_v a_o prelate_n do_v nothing_o and_o his_o lieutenant_n do_v all_o which_o of_o those_o two_o will_v you_o take_v to_o be_v bishop_n they_o have_v both_o divide_v their_o charge_n the_o one_o receive_v the_o profit_n the_o other_o take_v all_o the_o pain_n if_o they_o be_v both_o content_n what_o loss_n do_v you_o feel_v he_o that_o have_v any_o interest_n let_v he_o value_v the_o damage_n and_o although_o that_o the_o negligence_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o excusable_a sin_n excusable_a and_o yet_o nothing_o more_o common_a will_z h_o you_o then_o wilful_a continuance_n yea_o by_o your_o pope_n good_a leave_n in_o this_o sin_n before_o god_n with_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o deputy_n nor_o his_o conscience_n clear_a yet_o this_o aught_o to_o suffice_v that_o though_o his_o fault_n be_v through_o negligence_n or_o through_o evil_a live_n you_o live_n true_a but_o such_o doctrine_n you_o shall_v never_o prove_v you_o yet_o that_o ought_v not_o to_o perturb_v the_o assurance_n of_o our_o doctrine_n the_o which_o we_o have_v teach_v we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n interpret_v by_o the_o true_a doctor_n that_o have_v be_v
thing_n that_o we_o hold_v teach_v and_o preach_v as_o much_o as_o you_o you_o do_v therefore_o but_o abuse_v your_o reader_n in_o go_v about_o to_o make_v he_o believe_v that_o we_o reject_v your_o bishop_n only_o for_o their_o lewd_a life_n whereas_o the_o thing_n especial_o that_o we_o condemn_v both_o you_o and_o they_o for_o be_v your_o antichristian_a doctrine_n it_o be_v well_o that_o when_o you_o have_v say_v what_o you_o can_v for_o your_o line_n of_o pope_n yet_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o oft_o interruption_n of_o their_o succession_n by_o schism_n and_o otherwise_o you_o be_v glad_a in_o the_o end_n to_o give_v we_o this_o note_n that_o when_o you_o talk_v of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n you_o mean_v not_o only_o they_o but_o all_o other_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o your_o church_n in_o who_o the_o succession_n have_v be_v continue_v whensoever_o it_o be_v interrupt_v in_o the_o other_o for_o hereby_o in_o effect_n you_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o you_o mean_v not_o nor_o think_v it_o wisdom_n to_o lean_v too_o much_o to_o the_o succession_n of_o they_o lest_o they_o let_v your_o building_n fall_v wherein_o i_o prefer_v you_o yet_o before_o stapleton_n in_o that_o herein_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o manifold_a interruption_n of_o their_o succession_n seem_v to_o have_v prevail_v more_o with_o you_o then_o with_o he_o for_o he_o write_v against_o doctor_n fulke_n of_o this_o matter_n of_o succession_n though_o he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o hold_v succession_n in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o see_v to_o have_v continue_v general_o yet_o in_o this_o particular_a line_n of_o pope_n only_a he_o think_v that_o safe_o he_o may_v you_o be_v also_o to_o be_v commend_v for_o acknowledge_v dissension_n to_o have_v be_v betwixt_o your_o pope_n and_o antipope_n themselves_o and_o in_o leave_v they_o without_o defence_n for_o their_o lewd_a life_n ambition_n and_o negligence_n even_o to_o answer_v for_o themselves_o for_o indeed_o as_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o these_o thing_n most_o monstrous_o have_v be_v find_v in_o very_a many_o of_o they_o so_o you_o can_v not_o have_v have_v any_o honesty_n in_o smthe_v of_o their_o fault_n yet_o you_o go_v some_o thing_n to_o far_o in_o say_v that_o their_o dissension_n be_v not_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n hold_v before_o for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o one_o part_n of_o the_o world_n join_v with_o the_o pope_n the_o rest_n with_o his_o antipope_n or_o antipope_n it_o be_v a_o article_n now_o of_o your_o catholic_a faith_n boniface_n 8._o de_fw-fr maioritate_fw-la &_o obed_a cap._n 1._o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o be_v believe_v that_o all_o soul_n must_v submit_v themselves_o to_o your_o pope_n as_o to_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o these_o for_o many_o year_n together_o ban_v &_o curse_v each_o other_o faction_n thereby_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o only_o trouble_v but_o marvellous_o break_v the_o ix_o chapter_n now_o see_v that_o we_o have_v yield_v you_o a_o full_a account_n of_o our_o vocation_n to_o the_o ministry_n if_o we_o may_v be_v so_o bold_a i_o think_v it_o be_v no_o great_a presumption_n to_o demand_n the_o like_a of_o you_o he_o you_o caluin_n never_o thus_o reason_v &_o therefore_o you_o play_v the_o papist_n with_o he_o that_o be_v you_o bely_v he_o for_o even_o as_o caluin_n have_v heretofore_o call_v upon_o we_o to_o have_v we_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n or_o otherwise_o he_o will_v absolute_o affirm_v that_o god_n can_v be_v call_v the_o author_n of_o our_o vocation_n to_o the_o ministry_n we_o say_v likewise_o that_o if_o you_o do_v not_o show_v the_o like_a of_o you_o you_o shall_v give_v we_o leave_v although_o it_o be_v against_o your_o will_n to_o say_v that_o you_o come_v not_o from_o god_n but_o from_o the_o procurement_n of_o his_o adversary_n tertullian_n be_v tertullian_n we_o know_v he_o speak_v against_o such_o heretic_n as_o you_o papist_n be_v who_o as_o you_o know_v above_o 1200_o year_n ago_o speak_v against_o such_o as_o you_o be_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr praescrip_n haeret_fw-la do_v write_v these_o word_n edant_fw-la origines_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la evoluent_a ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la suorum_fw-la per_fw-la successiones_fw-la abinitio_fw-la decurrentem_fw-la hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la modo_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la cursus_fw-la suos_fw-la deferunt_fw-la sicut_fw-la romanorum_fw-la clementem_fw-la episcopum_fw-la à_fw-la petro_n ordinatum_fw-la id_fw-la proinde_fw-la utique_fw-la &_o coeteri_fw-la exhibeant_fw-la quos_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n in_fw-la episcopalibus_fw-la constitutos_fw-la apostolico_fw-la semine_fw-la radices_fw-la habeant_fw-la drish_n habeant_fw-la here_o either_o be_v ignorance_n or_o wilful_a corruption_n of_o this_o author_n meaning_n &_o drish_n you_o see_v well_o by_o these_o word_n how_o that_o tertullian_n do_v continue_v with_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o pastor_n the_o which_o he_o do_v affirm_v to_o be_v necessary_a say_v that_o you_o and_o such_o as_o you_o be_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o to_o teach_v the_o people_n contrary_a to_o the_o ecclesiatical_a order_n except_o that_o you_o show_v the_o antiquity_n of_o your_o table_n and_o it_o be_v necessary_a say_v he_o that_o you_o reckon_v your_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n by_o order_n &_o how_o they_o have_v succeed_v one_o after_o another_o for_o this_o be_v the_o way_n that_o the_o church_n do_v maintain_v their_o right_n the_o say_v tertullian_n do_v grind_v his_o similitude_n upon_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o civil_a governance_n for_o when_o that_o these_o that_o be_v prince_n or_o lord_n do_v survey_v their_o land_n the_o subject_n be_v bind_v to_o show_v what_o land_n they_o hold_v of_o they_o set_v it_o all_o forth_o by_o account_n show_v by_o what_o tenure_n they_o hold_v their_o copy_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v demean_n or_o free_a hold_n come_v by_o inheritance_n or_o buy_v they_o ought_v likewise_o to_o name_v he_o that_o have_v it_o before_o and_o by_o their_o own_o title_n to_o overthrow_v all_o other_o person_n that_o may_v make_v claim_n unto_o it_o able_a it_o not_o yet_o nor_o ever_o will_v you_o be_v able_a according_a to_o this_o pattern_n and_o order_n we_o have_v give_v you_o account_n of_o our_o inheritance_n although_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o it_o set_v before_o your_o eye_n the_o similitude_n of_o solomon_n by_o who_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v represent_v that_o same_o solomon_n do_v give_v the_o sheep_n that_o run_v astray_o counsel_n to_o set_v his_o tabernacle_n by_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o shepherd_n &_o to_o follow_v their_o flock_n until_o he_o come_v to_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n be_v nail_v on_o the_o cross_n at_o noon_n day_n the_o which_o counsel_n as_o the_o most_o certain_a according_a to_o tertullian_n his_o opinion_n we_o do_v follow_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o keep_v we_o firm_o in_o the_o right_n and_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n for_o we_o that_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n do_v follow_v as_o touch_v our_o religion_n the_o step_n that_o our_o father_n lead_v before_o we_o and_o as_o it_o be_v go_v up_o upon_o the_o ladder_n of_o jacob_n gen._n 28._o day_n 28._o whatsoever_o you_o mean_v you_o can_v never_o deduce_v your_o religion_n so_o high_a for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o patch_v together_o long_o even_o till_o of_o very_a late_a day_n we_o mount_v by_o degree_n and_o degree_n i_o mean_v from_o year_n to_o year_n &_o from_o age_n to_o age_n until_o that_o we_o come_v to_o s._n saturim_n s._n denice_n s._n marcial_n &_o s_n gratian_n which_o be_v those_o that_o do_v first_o teach_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o tholose_a in_o paris_n and_o to_o those_o of_o guyenna_n and_o lorraine_n and_o so_o consequent_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o first_o do_v teach_v the_o catholic_a faith_n through_o all_o christendom_n who_o we_o do_v call_v in_o judgement_n before_o god_n to_o defend_v that_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v give_v we_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n they_o may_v call_v upon_o the_o apostle_n which_o send_v they_o &_o the_o apostle_n may_v direct_v themselves_o to_o christ_n who_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o most_o love_a apostle_n do_v command_v we_o to_o continue_v in_o that_o that_o be_v teach_v we_o at_o the_o beginning_n 1._o john_n 2._o and_o so_o we_o shall_v continue_v and_o rest_v with_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o if_o any_o body_n do_v come_v to_o teach_v we_o any_o other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o have_v be_v teach_v we_o at_o the_o beginning_n i_o do_v not_o say_v bane_n say_v no_o take_v heed_n of_o that_o for_o the_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v your_o bane_n write_v in_o book_n but_o
show_v by_o all_o lineal_a succession_n how_o you_o come_v to_o it_o from_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n but_o thereby_o also_o you_o have_v quite_o overthrow_v our_o claim_n this_o be_v easy_o say_v &_o well_o brag_v of_o you_o but_o it_o be_v more_o then_o either_o you_o can_v or_o mean_v to_o prove_v o_o yes_o say_v you_o we_o can_v as_o it_o be_v go_v up_o upon_o the_o ladder_n of_o jacob_n mount_v from_o step_n to_o step_v until_o in_o the_o top_n we_o come_v to_o those_o that_o first_o teach_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o tholossa_n paris_n and_o guienna_n as_o to_o s._n saturim_n denice_n marshal_n and_o gratian_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o saint_n it_o may_v be_v these_o be_v saint_n you_o speak_v of_o and_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o show_v we_o that_o yea_o it_o may_v be_v also_o you_o can_v from_o age_n to_o age_n even_o from_o that_o time_n to_o we_o now_o name_v we_o the_o person_n that_o have_v succeed_v one_o another_o from_o those_o man_n you_o speak_v of_o but_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o all_o these_o person_n which_o have_v succeed_v have_v continue_v in_o the_o sound_a apostolic_a faith_n and_o so_o have_v derive_v it_o down_o from_o the_o first_o to_o you_o that_o be_v the_o last_o which_o unless_o you_o prove_v this_o climb_v upon_o this_o ladder_n you_o talk_v of_o will_v do_v you_o small_a pleasure_n but_o you_o be_v so_o confident_o persuade_v that_o the_o religion_n that_o you_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o now_o be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o be_v teach_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o beginning_n that_o you_o denounce_v he_o anathema_n be_v he_o man_n or_o angel_n that_o preach_v against_o it_o yet_o this_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o for_o you_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o if_o god_n will_v give_v you_o grace_n to_o read_v and_o right_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n sure_o i_o be_o that_o even_o in_o thus_o say_v you_o will_v find_v that_o you_o have_v as_o far_o as_o your_o authority_n reach_v curse_a and_o excommunicate_v your_o own_o self_n &_o your_o whole_a church_n so_o far_o of_o be_v we_o though_o it_o please_v you_o still_o to_o call_v our_o religion_n a_o new_a gospel_n from_o be_v afraid_a to_o join_v with_o you_o in_o anathematise_v they_o that_o preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n preach_v at_o the_o first_o that_o withal_o our_o heart_n we_o say_v amen_o thereunto_o and_o therefore_o for_o all_o your_o suppose_a newness_n of_o our_o religion_n we_o wish_v with_o all_o our_o heart_n according_a to_o johns_n counsel_n 1._o epist_n 2._o that_o that_o may_v abide_v which_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n we_o think_v tertullian_n say_v most_o true_o that_o come_v from_o the_o lord_n &_o be_v true_a that_o be_v first_o deliver_v &_o that_o be_v strange_a and_o false_a which_o be_v bring_v in_o after_o de_fw-fr praescrip_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la wherefore_o we_o say_v also_o most_o willing_o with_o he_o in_o a_o other_o place_n in_o his_o 4_o book_n against_o martion_n id_fw-la est_fw-la verius_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la prius_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v true_a that_o be_v former_a that_o be_v former_a that_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n but_o then_o we_o conclude_v with_o he_o de_fw-fr praescriptione_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la vndè_fw-la autem_fw-la extranei_fw-la &_o inimici_fw-la apostolis_n haeretici_fw-la nisi_fw-la ex_fw-la diversitate_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la etc._n etc._n how_o be_v stranger_n and_o enemy_n to_o the_o apostle_n know_v but_o by_o the_o diversity_n of_o doctrine_n which_o every_o one_o of_o his_o own_o mind_n have_v borough_n forth_o and_o receive_v against_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o let_v depravation_n of_o scripture_n and_o their_o exposition_n be_v account_v to_o be_v where_o the_o diversity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v find_v hitherto_o tertullian_n and_o we_o with_o he_o and_o therefore_o do_v not_o charge_v we_o any_o more_o with_o newness_n nor_o make_v your_o brag_n any_o more_o to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a of_o antiquity_n unless_o by_o the_o scripture_n wherein_o the_o simply_a know_v the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n be_v contain_v indeed_o you_o can_v prove_v your_o doctrine_n to_o agree_v with_o they_o and_o we_o to_o disagree_v for_o you_o may_v not_o think_v that_o you_o can_v cause_v they_o that_o have_v any_o wit_n or_o discretion_n at_o all_o leave_v they_o to_o believe_v that_o your_o doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v teach_v at_o the_o first_o by_o the_o apostle_n because_o you_o can_v say_v so_o or_o because_o you_o can_v tell_v they_o their_o father_n grandfather_n and_o great_a grandfather_n take_v it_o so_o as_o long_o as_o they_o see_v you_o be_v loath_a to_o come_v to_o the_o trial_n with_o the_o learned_a whither_o it_o be_v so_o or_o no_o by_o god_n write_v word_n even_o herein_o thunder_v out_o your_o anathema_n though_o you_o will_v seem_v therein_o stout_a and_o resolute_a in_o your_o religion_n yet_o if_o your_o word_n be_v well_o mark_v it_o may_v evident_o be_v perceive_v that_o like_o a_o dastard_n you_o shun_v the_o trial_n of_o your_o doctrine_n by_o the_o write_v word_n for_o you_o say_v if_o any_o body_n come_v to_o teach_v we_o any_o other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o have_v be_v teach_v we_o at_o the_o beginning_n i_o do_v not_o say_v write_v in_o book_n no_o take_v heed_n o●_n that_o but_o print_v in_o our_o heart_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o you_o bewray_v your_o mind_n namely_o to_o be_v this_o that_o when_o it_o shall_v come_v in_o trial_n what_o that_o religion_n be_v that_o be_v preach_v at_o the_o beginning_n you_o will_v not_o have_v the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n to_o determine_v the_o matter_n but_o that_o which_o be_v then_o write_v in_o man_n heart_n whereby_o you_o mean_v your_o unwriten_a tradition_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v what_o be_v write_v in_o man_n heart_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n better_o or_o more_o safe_o then_o by_o that_o which_o they_o write_v especial_o see_v as_o irenaeus_n have_v tell_v we_o that_o which_o they_o preach_v at_o the_o first_o after_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o commit_v unto_o writing_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n &_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o his_o 3_o book_n chap._n 1._o as_o for_o your_o unwriten_a word_n to_o speak_v most_o moderate_o you_o know_v the_o credit_n thereof_o be_v suspect_v and_o certain_a it_o be_v it_o must_v agree_v with_o the_o word_n write_v for_o god_n be_v one_o and_o selfsame_o both_o in_o writing_n and_o speak_v or_o else_o worthy_o may_v it_o not_o be_v suspect_v only_o but_o flat_o also_o reject_v as_o a_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a word_n which_o but_o that_o you_o know_v it_o do_v not_o you_o will_v without_o any_o such_o correction_n or_o explanation_n of_o your_o meaning_n have_v say_v simple_o that_o you_o will_v have_v he_o hold_v anathema_n that_o preach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n they_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o your_o own_o conscience_n tell_v you_o that_o you_o be_v another_o doctrine_n than_o have_v warrant_v fro_o thence_o before_o the_o curse_n shall_v drop_v out_o of_o your_o pen_n you_o think_v it_o wisdom_n lest_o in_o your_o own_o knowledge_n you_o shall_v have_v curse_v you_o self_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o direct_v your_o sentence_n not_o against_o those_o that_o teach_v another_o doctrine_n than_o those_o book_n will_v warrant_v for_o of_o such_o you_o allow_v well_o enough_o or_o else_o you_o shall_v disallow_v yourselves_o but_o against_o those_o that_o teach_v another_o doctrine_n from_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o our_o heart_n so_o leave_v to_o yourselves_o liberty_n to_o make_v the_o poor_a people_n believe_v that_o that_o be_v whatsoever_o you_o will_v devise_v o_o this_o be_v too_o too_o gross_a &_o paltry_a deal_n in_o matter_n that_o so_o much_o concern_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n as_o this_o do_v especial_o in_o this_o so_o great_a light_n that_o shine_v now_o every_o where_n among_o us._n as_o for_o your_o life_n &_o the_o life_n of_o your_o pastor_n and_o great_a bishop_n though_o they_o be_v such_o as_o worthy_o you_o may_v be_v ashamed_a of_o yet_o if_o they_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n therein_o we_o will_v have_v hold_v for_o all_o the_o other_o communion_n with_o they_o but_o see_v their_o life_n have_v be_v such_o a_o long_a time_n as_o there_o be_v never_o worse_a in_o sodom_n nor_o any_o where_o else_o witness_n your_o own_o story_n benno_n cardin_n platina_n sabellicus_n abbas_n vsperg_n and_o other_o
by_o bertran_n and_o other_o before_o name_v and_o their_o follower_n as_o we_o have_v make_v it_o most_o evident_a in_o many_o book_n write_v to_o that_o purpose_n &_o namely_o of_o late_a in_o a_o great_a book_n call_v orthodoxus_n consensus_fw-la the_o true_a catholic_a consent_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o of_o all_o the_o controversy_n thereabouts_o print_v at_o tygure_n 1578_o which_o book_n all_o the_o swarm_v of_o you_o will_v never_o be_v sound_o able_a to_o answer_v &_o confute_v as_o long_o as_o you_o live_v and_o therefore_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v needle_n wherein_o you_o suppose_v that_o betwixt_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o we_o there_o be_v none_o that_o we_o can_v produce_v of_o our_o judgement_n or_o otherwise_o against_o you_o but_o you_o take_v upon_o you_o to_o prove_v that_o we_o cut_v of_o they_o all_o that_o have_v be_v between_o they_o &_o we_o because_o caluin_n have_v write_v handle_v this_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o he_o do_v find_v that_o they_o of_o old_a time_n have_v change_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o administration_n thereof_o otherwise_o they_o christ_n institution_n will_v bear_v etc._n etc._n whereupon_o your_o conclusion_n follow_v not_o for_o diverse_a cause_n for_o a_o argument_n from_o one_o to_o all_o hold_v not_o as_o caluin_n have_v do_v so_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v all_o out_o opinion_n &_o we_o all_o do_v so_o for_o though_o we_o account_v of_o he_o as_o of_o a_o rare_a &_o singular_a minister_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o bind_v ourselves_o to_o do_v and_o say_v whatsoever_o he_o do_v and_o say_v for_o we_o know_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o man_n subject_n to_o error_n and_o infirmity_n for_o all_o his_o gift_n neither_o will_v you_o be_v content_v that_o such_o a_o argument_n shall_v hold_v always_o draw_v from_o any_o one_o of_o your_o great_a &_o most_o famous_a learned_a writer_n to_o press_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o a_o second_o reason_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o your_o argument_n be_v that_o there_o be_v more_o in_o your_o conclusion_n then_o be_v in_o the_o antecedent_n give_v you_o by_o he_o for_o you_o will_v conclude_v for_o those_o be_v your_o word_n to_o the_o proof_n whereof_o you_o cite_v caluin_n that_o we_o condenne_n &_o cut_v of_o all_o the_o christian_n that_o have_v be_v &_o be_v betwixt_o christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o we_o whereas_o caluin_n speak_v not_o of_o all_o but_o of_o some_o of_o old_a time_n the_o 3_o reason_n caluin_n himself_o give_v you_o in_o the_o even_o in_o the_o word_n set_v down_o by_o you_o he_o show_v plain_o that_o though_o in_o they_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o note_v some_o aberration_n from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o christ_n institution_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o therefore_o cut_v they_o of_o from_o the_o church_n nor_o condenne_v they_o what_o be_v you_o such_o a_o cutter_n that_o you_o straight_o cut_v of_o all_o those_o from_o communion_n with_o you_o in_o who_o you_o can_v just_o find_v any_o fault_n or_o error_n in_o opinion_n or_o practice_v of_o life_n sure_o then_o you_o must_v cut_v of_o most_o of_o your_o best_a friend_n that_o which_o we_o can_v fond_o prove_v to_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o brethren_n either_o ancient_a or_o of_o late_a time_n we_o may_v safe_o note_v tell_v they_o of_o and_o labour_n to_o reform_v &_o yet_o as_o long_o as_o they_o join_v together_o with_o we_o in_o one_o god_n faith_n and_o baptism_n otherwise_o we_o can_v and_o aught_o to_o hold_v peace_n &_o christian_a communion_n with_o they_o or_o else_o where_o can_v there_o at_o any_o time_n be_v any_o true_a concord_n or_o peace_n keep_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o difference_n of_o opinion_n &_o usage_n there_o have_v always_o yet_o be_v and_o will_v be_v betwixt_o one_o particular_a church_n and_o another_o and_o betwixt_o some_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o other_o you_o need_v not_o therefore_o i_o warrant_v you_o one_o whit_n have_v be_v afraid_a that_o caluin_n &_o his_o fellow_n be_v so_o scrupulous_a that_o they_o will_v not_o join_v in_o fellow_n ship_n with_o some_o such_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o there_o and_o yet_o the_o let_v not_o but_z that_o he_o shall_v counsel_v his_o reader_n to_o prefer_v christ_n own_o simple_a institution_n before_o the_o usage_n of_o they_o or_o any_o other_o differ_v from_o it_o the_o xi_o chapter_n you_o do●_n very_o well_o that_o s._n paul_n do_v compare_v many_o time_n the_o mystical_a body_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o a_o natural_a body_n see_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n unto_o who_o the_o body_n be_v join_v by_o joint_n bone_n &_o sinew_n if_o one_o shall_v then_o demand_n of_o you_o how_o the_o foot_n be_v join_v to_o the_o head_n you_o will_v answer_v i_o by_o the_o leg_n which_o be_v next_o unto_o the_o foot_n and_o if_o i_o ask_v you_o how_o the_o leg_n be_v join_v to_o the_o head_n you_o will_v answer_v by_o the_o joint_n and_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o back_n and_o so_o consequent_o from_o member_n to_o member_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o we_o be_v all_o of_o one_o accord_n 10._o accord_n 1_o cor._n 10._o that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o we_o be_v the_o low_a most_o part_n of_o the_o body_n so_o that_o 〈◊〉_d the_o foot_n or_o the_o leg_n then_o my_o master_n you_o that_o have_v make_v so_o f●ne_a a●_n anatomy_n of_o the_o mass_n at_o my_o request_n make_v another_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o your_o congregation_n laughter_n congregation_n you_o be_v a_o very_a pleasant_a man_n be_v like_o that_o can_v thus_o play_v yourself_o a_o fit_a of_o mirth_n and_o when_o you_o have_v do_v dance_n after_o your_o own_o pipe_n &_o it_o seem_v you_o think_v that_o the_o sport_n than_o will_v be_v so_o pleasant_a that_o no_o beholder_n can_v forbear_v laughter_n if_o you_o shall_v see_v such_o another_o as_o apelles_n that_o will_v paint_v a_o man_n and_o that_o he_o have_v draw_v his_o head_n and_o without_o paint_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o body_n he_o have_v set_v his_o foot_n under_o his_o ear_n what_o will_v you_o sa●●_n to_o such_o a_o table_n spectatum_fw-la admissi_fw-la risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la amici_fw-la will_v you_o not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v a_o simple_a painter_n or_o else_o a_o great_a jester_n even_o so_o do_v you_o deserve_v that_o one_o shall_v laugh_v at_o your_o ministry_n fancy_n ministry_n this_o be_v untrue_a and_o a_o gross_a slander_n for_o we_o hold_v and_o teach_v that_o ever_o since_o christ_n to_o our_o day_n there_o have_v be_v both_o shepherd_n and_o sheep_n join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n &_o therefore_o you_o laugh_v at_o your_o own_o shadow_n and_o vain_a fancy_n for_o you_o will_v join_v your_o church_n if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o call_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n without_o set_v forth_o any_o member_n between_o they_o you_o take_v but_o scant_a measure_n when_o you_o will_v cut_v of_o all_o the_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n that_o have_v be_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o our_o day_n they_o be_v the_o member_n that_o follow_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n this_o may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o new_a religion_n or_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a presumption_n to_o fly_v without_o wing_n or_o to_o climb_v without_o a_o ladder_n and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o again_o that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o great_a shepherd_n that_o i_o mention_v before_o who_o do_v say_v unto_o we_o that_o if_o we_o will_v not_o miss_v the_o way_n of_o the_o catholic_n we_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o flock_n of_o those_o sheep_n that_o have_v go_v before_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v reckon_v reason_n reckon_v but_o th●s_n in_o truth_n you_o can_v do_v therefore_o you_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o your_o own_o reason_n by_o succession_n the_o pastor_n that_o have_v succeed_v in_o continuance_n of_o one_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o which_o as_o we_o have_v show_v the_o catholic_a church_n do_v and_o have_v ever_o do_v the_o xi_o chapter_n as_o though_o you_o have_v most_o substantial_o prove_v by_o caluins_n word_n that_o we_o cut_v of_o all_o christian_n betwixt_o the_o apostle_n and_o we_o in_o this_o chapter_n you_o urge_v the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o body_n whereunto_o usual_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v compare_v whereupon_o you_o gather_v that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o orderly_a connexion_n and_o situation_n of_o member_n in_o a_o body_n so_o there_o must_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o therefore_o our_o church_n must_v
of_o those_o word_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n kill_v &_o therefore_o he_o teach_v we_o there_o spiritual_o to_o understand_v they_o who_o upon_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n gather_v that_o no_o wicked_a man_n can_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n upon_o mat._n c._n 15._o as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n he_o grant_v the_o wicked_a may_v eat_v &_o that_o when_o it_o have_v be_v eat_v in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v avoid_v into_o the_o place_n of_o easement_n hom_o 15._o upon_o mat._n athanasius_n note_v the_o christ_n make_v mention_v of_o his_o ascension_n john_n 6._o to_o wtdraw_v they_o from_o corporal_a &_o fleshly_a understanding_n of_o his_o word_n upon_o these_o word_n whosoever_o speak_v a_o word_n against_o the_o son_n etc._n etc._n but_o chrys_n go_v plain_o to_o work_v &_o say_v in_o his_o 11._o hom_o upon_o mat._n that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o in_o the_o holy_a vessel_n but_o the_o mystery_n &_o sacrament_n thereof_o be_v therein_o contain_v and_o therefore_o in_o his_o 46._o hom._n upon_o john_n show_v we_o the_o christ_n say_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o john_n 6._o thereby_o warn_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o carnal_a and_o fleshly_a understanding_n of_o his_o word_n which_o be_v to_o understand_v they_o say_v he_o simple_o and_o in_o his_o 4._o homil_n upon_o the_o 4._o to_o the_o corinth_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o carrion_n where_o the_o eagle_n will_v be_v he_o name_v eagle_n say_v he_o to_o show_v that_o who_o so_o will_v approach_v to_o his_o body_n must_v mount_v aloft_o &_o have_v no_o deal_n with_o the_o earth_n nor_o be_v draw_v downward_o but_o must_v evermore_o fly_v up_o etc._n etc._n for_o this_o be_v a_o table_n of_o eagle_n say_v he_o that_o fly_v on_o high_a &_o not_o of_o jay_n that_o creep_v beneath_o christ_n take_v bread_n which_o comfort_v man_n hart_n that_o he_o may_v represent_v thereby_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n say_v hier._n upon_o the_o 26._o of_o mat._n as_o thou_o have_v in_o baptism_n receve_v the_o similitude_n of_o death_n so_o likewise_o do_v thou_o in_o this_o sacrament_n drink_v the_o similitude_n of_o christ_n blood_n say_v ambrose_n in_o his_o 4_o book_n &_o 4_o c._n of_o the_o sacrament_n cyprian_n de_fw-fr unctione_n chrismatis_fw-la write_v thus_o christ_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n bread_n &_o wine_n which_o he_o call_v his_o body_n &_o blood_n but_o on_o the_o cross_n he_o give_v his_o very_a body_n to_o be_v wound_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o soldier_n that_o the_o apostle_n may_v declare_v unto_o the_o world_n how_o &_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o bread_n may_v be_v the_o flesh_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o manner_n straight_o way_n he_o declare_v thus_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o do_v signify_v &_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o may_v be_v both_o call_v by_o one_o name_n fulgentius_n in_o his_o book_n to_o king_n thrasimund_n have_v these_o word_n this_o cup_n or_o chalice_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v do_v signify_v the_o new_a testament_n theodoret_n in_o his_o first_o dialogue_n most_o plain_o write_v that_o christ_n honour_v the_o sign_n and_o representation_n which_o be_v see_v with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o change_v their_o nature_n but_o add_v grace_n to_o nature_n and_o yet_o more_o plain_o in_o the_o 2._o dialogue_n he_o write_v thus_o the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o sanctification_n go_v not_o from_o their_o nature_n for_o they_o tarry_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n figure_n and_o form_n yea_o even_a gelasius_n a_o pope_n about_o the_o year_n 500_o against_o eutiches_n be_v as_o plain_a say_v in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o substance_n and_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v not_o for_o the_o image_n and_o similitude_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v celebrate_v in_o those_o mystery_n and_o bertram_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o this_o matter_n write_v in_o the_o time_n of_o carolus_n caluus_fw-la labour_v by_o many_o proof_n &_o testimony_n to_o show_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v still_o and_o that_o we_o be_v here_o to_o follow_v christ_n in_o a_o figure_n and_o mystery_n and_o bede_n upon_o luke_n 22._o say_v because_o bread_n do_v comfort_n man_n heart_n and_o wine_n do_v make_v good_a blood_n in_o his_o body_n therefore_o the_o bread_n be_v mystical_o compare_v to_o christ_n body_n and_o the_o wine_n to_o christ_n blood_n the_o like_a say_n have_v haymo_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n de_fw-fr sermonum_fw-la proprietate_fw-la emissenus_fw-la de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi dist_n 2._o cap._n quia_fw-la corpus_fw-la compare_v the_o conversion_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o conversion_n in_o a_o man_n regenerate_v which_o we_o all_o know_v be_v in_o quality_n and_o not_o in_o substance_n there_o be_v two_o epistle_n yet_o extant_a in_o the_o saxon_a tongue_n make_v by_o one_o alfricke_n in_o king_n etheldreds_n time_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 996_o be_v then_o as_o some_o write_v bishop_n of_o canterbury_n wherein_o he_o teach_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v no_o otherwise_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o manna_n and_o the_o water_n of_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n who_o also_o translate_v 80_o sermon_n out_o of_o latin_a into_o the_o saxon_a tongue_n whereof_o 24._o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v read_v for_o homily_n and_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v read_v on_o easter_n day_n there_o be_v much_o direct_a matter_n against_o transubstantiation_n and_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o since_o these_o time_n you_o know_v well_o enough_o we_o have_v have_v many_o from_o time_n to_o time_n yea_o mo_z they_o you_o well_o like_a of_o that_o have_v be_v as_o flat_a and_o direct_a against_o your_o kind_n of_o real_a presence_n as_o we_o be_v now_o this_o master_n fox_n book_n of_o act_n and_o monument_n have_v make_v evident_a to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v famous_o know_v that_o before_o your_o lateran_n council_n under_o innocent_a the_o 3._o in_o the_o year_n 1215._o it_o be_v not_o decree_v to_o be_v as_o you_o now_o hold_v it_o appear_v also_o by_o the_o last_o session_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n which_o be_v not_o much_o above_o 140._o year_n ago_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n until_o then_o stand_v against_o your_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o tonstall_n though_o otherwise_o a_o great_a man_n on_o your_o side_n yet_o in_o his_o book_n of_o this_o sacrament_n say_v perhaps_o it_o have_v be_v better_a to_o leave_v every_o man_n that_o will_v be_v curious_a concern_v this_o matter_n of_o the_o manner_n how_o christ_n be_v present_a to_o his_o own_o conjecture_n as_o by_o his_o confession_n before_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n it_o be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n and_o john_n duns_n a_o friend_n of_o you_o upon_o the_o 4._o book_n of_o the_o sentence_n say_v that_o the_o word_n may_v have_v be_v expound_v more_o plain_o then_o by_o transubstantiation_n if_o it_o have_v please_v the_o church_n gabriel_n biell_n another_o great_a doctor_n upon_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o his_o 40._o read_v plain_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o bible_n how_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o whither_o by_o transubstantiation_n or_o consubstantiation_n even_o so_o your_o great_a bishop_n john_n fisher_n write_v against_o luther_n book_n of_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o he_o find_v not_o in_o matthew_n nor_o any_o where_o else_o in_o the_o scripture_n any_o thing_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v thereby_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o your_o mass_n nor_o that_o whensoever_o a_o priest_n shall_v go_v about_o that_o matter_n he_o make_v the_o bread_n &_o wine_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o conclude_v that_o he_o think_v that_o every_o man_n understand_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o that_o matter_n depend_v not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o gospel_n as_o it_o do_v upon_o the_o use_n tradition_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n these_o testimony_n forasmuch_o as_o direct_o they_o be_v against_o your_o literal_a exposition_n of_o christ_n word_n your_o new_a devise_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o only_a pillar_n and_o buttress_n of_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o against_o your_o gross_a and_o carnal_a eat_n of_o he_o with_o the_o bodily_a mouth_n of_o all_o receiver_n good_a and_o bad_a they_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v forcible_a against_o your_o real_a presence_n for_o the_o cause_n thereof_o deny_v and_o take_v away_o the_o effect_n must_v cease_v and_o if_o the_o
not_o be_v against_o himself_o ma._n 12._o what_o be_v they_o to_o do_v else_o but_o according_a to_o that_o the_o god_n give_v they_o and_o the_o place_n they_o have_v in_o university_n &_o in_o the_o church_n to_o proceed_v to_o call_v the_o people_n yet_o from_o those_o error_n to_o the_o truth_n when_o fire_n shall_v take_v hold_n of_o a_o city_n or_o the_o enemy_n scale_v the_o wall_n in_o the_o night_n if_o the_o lest_o burgess_n shall_v give_v a_o alarun_a yea_o if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o stranger_n the_o watchman_n sleep_v that_o shall_v give_v warning_n no_o man_n will_v stand_v trifle_v in_o demand_v by_o what_o title_n he_o do_v it_o but_o straight_o he_o will_v run_v to_o the_o water_n and_o to_z the_o wall_n and_o lay_v to_o his_o hand_n to_o prevent_v the_o mischief_n &_o thank_v he_o that_o give_v the_o warning_n and_o yet_o when_o the_o man_n we_o speak_v of_o give_v notice_n of_o a_o great_a danger_n though_o it_o be_v as_o necessary_a to_o listen_v unto_o they_o &_o to_o be_v warn_v by_o they_o as_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n be_v yet_o they_o can_v find_v this_o wisdom_n and_o thankfulness_n in_o man_n it_o shall_v seem_v by_o your_o stand_v thus_o precise_o upon_o the_o necessity_n of_o visible_a succession_n &_o ordinary_a imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o they_o the_o god_n shall_v send_v to_o teach_v man_n or_o else_o they_o may_v not_o be_v hear_v that_o either_o you_o have_v not_o red_a or_o else_o that_o you_o great_o dissemble_v your_o knowledge_n that_o god_n have_v use_v the_o ministry_n of_o diverse_a person_n that_o have_v want_v those_o to_o convert_v nation_n to_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o church_n &_o to_o do_v very_o much_o good_a for_o ruffinus_n in_o his_o eccl._n hist_o 1._o book_n and_o c._n 10._o &_o theodoret_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n c._n 23._o report_n that_o a_o captive_a maiden_n do_v first_o kindle_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o the_o iberians_n who_o be_v the_o mean_n first_o to_o convert_v the_o queen_n the_o queen_n convert_v the_o king_n &_o he_o wtout_fw-fr any_o order_n as_o you_o call_v they_o teach_v his_o people_n the_o christian_n faith_n &_o so_o begin_v the_o church_n there_o it_o be_v also_o write_v by_o ruff._n lib._n 1_o c._n 9_o by_o theodoret_n in_o the_o 22._o c._n of_o his_o say_v book_n by_o nicep_n in_o his_o 8._o book_n c._n 35_o that_o aedesius_n and_o frumentius_n bring_v thither_o be_v ●●yes_n by_o meropius_n a_o philosopher_n and_o there_o take_v and_o preserve_v alive_a when_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o company_n be_v slay_v grow_v after_o into_o good_a credit_n and_o authority_n there_o be_v the_o first_o mean_n of_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o the_o barbarian_n in_o the_o further_a india_n to_o the_o profession_n and_o exercise_n whereof_o especial_o frumentius_n and_o that_o not_o only_o after_o that_o by_o athanasius_n he_o be_v ordain_v there_o bishop_n but_o before_o ever_o by_o any_o he_o be_v ordain_v either_o minister_n or_o bishop_n be_v a_o notable_a &_o effectual_a mean_n both_o to_o excite_v merchant_n that_o come_v thither_o and_o to_o draw_v the_o people_n of_o that_o country_n itself_o moreover_o eusebius_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n report_v in_o his_o sixth_o book_n and_o 19_o chapter_n that_o origen_n teach_v public_o before_o he_o have_v ordination_n certain_a bishop_n be_v present_a which_o when_o demetrius_n alexandrinus_n object_v as_o a_o fault_n to_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o to_o theoclistus_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n they_o defend_v themselves_o by_o allege_v diverse_a such_o famous_a example_n as_o namely_o of_o euelpis_n paulinus_n and_o theodorus_n which_o in_o like_a sort_n have_v preach_v without_o the_o ordinary_a ordination_n yea_o read_v nicephorus_n 2_o book_n and_o 25._o chapter_n and_o he_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o under_o constantius_n antony_n the_o eremite_n teach_v at_o alexandria_n and_o that_o under_o valens_n at_o antioch_n aphraatis_fw-la flavianus_n &_o julianus_n be_v then_o but_o monk_n who_o in_o those_o day_n be_v not_o reckon_v among_o clerk_n at_o all_o for_o unto_o gregory_n time_n they_o be_v not_o account_v clerk_n do_v public_o preach_v and_o confute_v heretic_n and_o yet_o these_o example_n i_o allege_v not_o that_o i_o will_v be_v author_n to_o any_o when_o a_o ordinary_a call_n may_v be_v have_v to_o despise_v that_o and_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o that_o function_n of_o the_o ministry_n without_o that_o lawful_a ordinary_a calling_n for_o that_o be_v to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o much_o disorder_n and_o inconvenience_n but_o to_o this_o end_n to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o former_a ancient_a time_n have_v not_o so_o precise_o and_o curious_o stand_v upon_o these_o point_n of_o visible_a succession_n and_o ordination_n for_o the_o justify_n of_o one_o preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n as_o you_o do_v for_o doubtless_o there_o have_v be_v time_n and_o yet_o may_v be_v as_o after_o that_o great_a apostasy_n speak_v of_o 2._o thes_n 2._o &_o in_o other_o great_a ruin_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o have_v and_o may_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o call_v man_n extraordinary_o to_o this_o work_n without_o either_o immediate_a local_a or_o personal_a succession_n go_v before_o who_o as_o long_o as_o they_o preach_v but_o the_o truth_n and_o otherwise_o the_o time_n be_v so_o corrupt_a that_o of_o they_o that_o have_v authority_n ordinary_o to_o call_v man_n to_o that_o business_n such_o rather_o shall_v be_v shut_v out_o general_o then_o let_v into_o the_o ministry_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v hear_v and_o listen_v unto_o as_o such_o who_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o mercy_n have_v extraordinary_o call_v himself_o the_o xiiii_o chapter_n caluin_n do_v allege_v to_o we_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v say_v that_o no_o body_n ought_v to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o high_a priesthood_n except_o he_o be_v call_v to_o it_o as_o aaron_n be_v mean_v by_o that_o to_o conclude_v that_o of_o our_o own_o authority_n we_o have_v usurp_v the_o dignity_n of_o priesthood_n purpose_n priesthood_n and_o ●et_o to_o no_o purpose_n we_o have_v answer_v he_o at_o large_a of_o our_o vocation_n by_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n join_v with_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n i_o do_v demand_n of_o he_o or_o of_o his_o if_o they_o can_v make_v any_o true_a answer_n to_o the_o like_a objection_n you_o do_v lie_v to_o our_o charge_n the_o all_o life_n of_o our_o pope_n and_o bishop_n and_o the_o naughtiness_n that_o you_o pretend_v to_o find_v in_o our_o preacher_n but_o all_o those_o invective_n serve_v to_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o show_v how_o you_o keep_v scoff_v keep_v nay_o you_o shall_v have_v the_o bell_n both_o for_o that_o &_o for_o profane_a ier_n &_o scoff_v a_o learned_a school_n of_o rail_v the_o which_o pre-eminence_n we_o do_v yield_v to_o you_o without_o any_o debate_n or_o process_n for_o you_o may_v attribute_v that_o unto_o yourselves_o as_o your_o own_o by_o right_n instead_o of_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o you_o want_v but_o in_o one_o thing_n to_o my_o judgement_n you_o be_v great_o oversee_v and_o that_o be_v this_o you_o this_o when_o you_o observe_v this_o law_n yourselves_o we_o will_v learn_v of_o you_o why_o do_v you_o not_o fill_v both_o side_n of_o your_o book_n in_o the_o one_o you_o set_v forth_o at_o large_a without_o omit_v any_o point_n of_o their_o ill_a do_n all_o the_o naughty_a life_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n but_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o leaf_n be_v empty_a you_o shall_v have_v write_v on_o they_o the_o holy_a life_n of_o your_o minister_n succeed_v one_o after_o a_o other_o this_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o year_n when_o the_o pope_n bonifacius_n &_o gregorius_n do_v govern_v ill_o their_o seat_n at_o rome_n 4._o rome_n i_o have_v sufficient_o answer_v this_o cap._n 4._o which_o be_v the_o good_a and_o holy_a minister_n that_o do_v their_o duty_n at_o geneva_n when_o our_o doctor_n do_v preach_v against_o god_n in_o time_n past_a in_o what_o part_n or_o under_o what_o sign_n be_v your_o minister_n lodge_v that_o do_v then_o preach_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n persecuter_n lord_n reason_v like_o yourselves_o as_o though_o the_o apostle_n never_o lawful_o hide_v themselves_o from_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o persecuter_n if_o they_o do_v hide_v themselves_o they_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o which_o you_o say_v be_v necessary_a to_o know_v the_o true_a &_o faithful_a believer_n for_o christ_n do_v say_v mat._n 10._o that_o he_o that_o shall_v deny_v he_o before_o man_n he_o
will_v he_o deny_v before_o his_o father_n in_o heaven_n and_o s._n paul_n do_v say_v ro._n 10._o do_v 10._o and_o so_o have_v we_o all_o way_n in_o due_a time_n and_o place_n though_o to_o the_o loss_n of_o thousand_o of_o their_o life_n do_v that_o with_o the_o hart_n one_o do_v believe_v to_o justice_n &_o with_o the_o mouth_n one_o must_v confess_v to_o salvation_n honesty_n salvation_n this_o be_v but_o your_o cuckoo_n song_n contain_v neither_o truth_n nor_o honesty_n but_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n your_o religion_n be_v not_o they_o find_v out_o &_o the_o grandfather_n &_o great_a grandfather_n of_o caluin_n have_v never_o dream_v of_o the_o heresy_n that_o now_o their_o reform_a child_n have_v set_v so_o new_o abroach_o and_o therefore_o think_v it_o not_o strange_a if_o that_o those_o people_n that_o be_v not_o light_v head_v send_v you_o to_o preach_v in_o new_a find_v land_n as_o one_o that_o have_v here_o at_o home_n give_v manifest_o judgement_n against_o himself_o foolish_o himself_o be_v you_o not_o ashamed_a to_o lie_v so_o impudent_o and_o to_o reason_n so_o foolish_o confess_v as_o we_o have_v allege_v above_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v use_v the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n you_o have_v not_o do_v so_o and_o therefore_o it_o do_v follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n &_o that_o that_o do_v follow_v consequent_o be_v that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n for_o we_o know_v that_o you_o allow_v fit_o allow_v neither_o will_v you_o but_o that_o your_o belly_n be_v your_o god_n and_o that_o you_o mind_v earthly_a thing_n unto_o which_o purpose_n that_o doctrine_n serve_v you_o fit_o no_o purgatory_n i_o mean_v no_o mean_a between_o they_o both_o the_o xiiii_o chapter_n how_o you_o have_v answer_v caluin_n and_o prove_v your_o vocation_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o that_o which_o now_o the_o reader_n have_v hear_v both_o part_n say_v let_v he_o judge_v our_o answer_n to_o the_o like_a demand_n i_o have_v give_v you_o chap._n 9_o when_o you_o first_o call_v for_o it_o but_o have_v demand_v this_o now_o again_o of_o we_o instead_o of_o pursue_v your_o demand_n as_o one_o that_o have_v straight_o forget_v what_o you_o say_v you_o be_v in_o hand_n again_o with_o our_o say_n to_o your_o charge_n your_o pope_n &_o bishop_n ill_a life_n with_o twice_o or_o thrice_o you_o be_v in_o hand_n wtal_a before_o where_o you_o have_v your_o full_a answer_n herein_o you_o say_v in_o rail_v you_o give_v we_o the_o preeminence_n but_o you_o do_v so_o but_o in_o word_n for_o indeed_o &_o truth_n as_o all_o your_o late_a book_n fraught_v with_o nothing_o more_o than_o this_o kind_n of_o rhetoric_n to_o bring_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n unjust_o into_o hatred_n do_v prove_v none_o can_v go_v beyond_o you_o herein_o and_o as_o for_o that_o which_o we_o say_v of_o your_o pope_n &_o bishop_n your_o own_o storie-writer_n and_o manifest_a experience_n do_v justify_v to_o be_v true_a &_o therefore_o can_v just_o be_v count_v rail_v but_o you_o find_v fault_n with_o we_o that_o have_v write_v the_o lewd_a life_n of_o your_o bishop_n &_o pope_n on_o the_o one_o side_n of_o the_o leaf_n we_o set_v not_o down_o on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o succession_n of_o those_o good_a one_o that_o we_o have_v this_o law_n you_o nether_a have_v nor_o can_v always_o observe_v yourself_o for_o though_o you_o have_v have_v many_o good_a pope_n &_o bishop_n yet_o a_o great_a while_n your_o good_a one_o have_v be_v as_o hard_o to_o find_v as_o coalblack_a swan_n and_o yet_o you_o please_v yourself_o and_o your_o friend_n that_o take_v pleasure_n in_o your_o give_v &_o scoff_v in_o ask_v we_o when_o your_o pope_n behave_v themselves_o ill_a at_o rome_n who_o be_v the_o holy_a doctor_n at_o geneva_n &_o when_o your_o doctor_n preach_v against_o god_n under_o what_o sign_n our_o minister_n lodge_v all_o this_o kind_n of_o rhetoric_n of_o you_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o false_a principle_n namely_o that_o the_o church_n and_o minister_n thereof_o have_v be_v &_o always_o must_v be_v so_o visible_a as_o that_o in_o all_o time_n demonstration_n may_v be_v make_v thereof_o contrary_a to_o these_o often_o allege_v prophecy_n 2._o thess_n 2._o reu._n 12._o &_o 17._o and_o the_o thing_n that_o deceive_v you_o &_o nourish_v in_o you_o this_o error_n be_v that_o you_o expound_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v utter_v concern_v the_o continuance_n &_o spiritual_a beauty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o elect_a the_o true_a heavenly_a jerusalem_n &_o spouse_n of_o christ_n as_o speak_v of_o the_o continuance_n of_o particular_a church_n or_o of_o the_o outward_a order_n &_o state_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a only_o and_o that_o you_o either_o wilful_o or_o otherwise_o can_v distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o being_n and_o continue_v of_o the_o church_n and_o her_o pastor_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o be_v and_o continue_v and_o so_o you_o construe_v those_o place_n that_o prove_v she_o be_v and_o their_o continue_n as_o though_o thereupon_o follow_v your_o manner_n of_o visible_a and_o apparent_a be_v also_o as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o be_v or_o continue_v of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o your_o manner_n whereas_o in_o israel_n in_o ahabs_n time_n you_o have_v hear_v both_o the_o church_n and_o minister_n thereof_o there_o continue_v in_o that_o even_o in_o that_o kingdone_v obadiah_n have_v hide_v 100_o prophet_n and_o god_n have_v reserve_v unto_o himself_o 7000._o that_o have_v not_o bow_v their_o knee_n to_o baal_n &_o yet_o not_o in_o your_o manner_n for_o eliah_n be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v such_o demonstration_n thereof_o who_o they_o be_v and_o where_o they_o be_v as_o you_o require_v of_o we_o for_o he_o think_v himself_o alone_o 1._o king_n 18._o &_o 19_o o_o but_o you_o very_o like_o a_o divine_a prove_v out_o of_o mat._n 10._o &_o ro._n 10._o because_o christ_n have_v say_v he_o that_o deni_v i_o before_o man_n will_v i_o deny_v before_o my_o heavenly_a father_n and_o paul_n require_v aswell_o confession_n with_o the_o mouth_n to_o salvation_n as_o belief_n with_o the_o hart_n to_o justification_n that_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o be_v faithful_a believer_n because_o they_o do_v hide_v themselves_o as_o though_o every_o one_o be_v a_o denier_n of_o christ_n that_o hide_v himself_o from_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o persecutor_n or_o as_o though_o none_o confess_v with_o their_o mouth_n to_o salvation_n that_o so_o hide_v themselves_o what_o think_v you_o then_o of_o the_o 100_o prophet_n before_o name_v and_o of_o eliah_n himself_o who_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o those_o place_n hide_v themselves_o from_o ahab_n and_o jesebel_n fury_n have_v you_o forget_v that_o the_o same_o christ_n say_v in_o the_o same_o chap_n to_o his_o apostle_n if_o they_o persecute_v you_o in_o one_o city_n fly_v to_o another_o and_o that_o the_o same_o paul_n himself_o do_v sundry_a time_n by_o hide_v himself_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o persecutor_n save_o his_o life_n as_o you_o may_v read_v act._n 17._o and_o elsewhere_o who_o though_o he_o be_v assure_v in_o a_o vision_n by_o revelation_n from_o god_n that_o with_o safety_n of_o life_n he_o shall_v come_v to_o testify_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n at_o rome_n yet_o refuse_v not_o all_o good_a and_o lawful_a mean_n to_o have_v himself_o convey_v away_o and_o so_o to_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o his_o bloody_a persecutor_n the_o jew_n which_o have_v solemn_o bind_v themselves_o with_o a_o oath_n that_o they_o will_v neither_o eat_v nor_o drink_v till_o they_o have_v kill_v he_o act._n 23.11.12_o your_o divinity_n be_v not_o so_o simple_a i_o think_v but_o that_o you_o understand_v that_o as_o long_o as_o a_o christian_a carry_v that_o mind_n and_o purpose_n that_o wheresoever_o he_o be_v he_o will_v be_v ready_a bold_o to_o yield_v a_o sound_a confession_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o therefore_o when_o he_o be_v call_v thereunto_o and_o just_o occasion_v be_v ready_a to_o perform_v that_o purpose_n of_o he_o and_o do_v it_o indeed_o that_o man_n can_v be_v say_v to_o deny_v christ_n or_o not_o to_o confess_v he_o with_o his_o mouth_n though_o by_o fly_v and_o hide_v himself_o as_o long_o as_o he_o may_v lawful_o he_o seek_v to_o keep_v himself_o for_o the_o further_a good_a of_o god_n church_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o persecutor_n and_o therefore_o you_o be_v much_o to_o blame_v by_o thus_o wrest_v of_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o seek_v to_o abuse_v your_o reader_n but_o our_o religion_n you_o say_v be_v not_o find_v out_o then_o and_o caluin_n great_a grandfather_n have_v not_o once_o dream_v of_o his_o religion_n and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n though_o they_o can_v not_o be_v find_v that_o be_v the_o
be_v perceive_v that_o none_o of_o these_o point_n as_o they_o be_v now_o teach_v by_o you_o be_v receive_v for_o catholic_a 360._o year_n ago_o for_o if_o when_o they_o break_v of_o communion_n from_o you_o these_o have_v then_o be_v so_o account_v and_o take_v doubtless_o they_o have_v then_o be_v acquaint_v with_o these_o and_o so_o by_o all_o likelihood_n have_v hold_v they_o as_o they_o do_v other_o thing_n which_o with_o you_o they_o have_v learn_v before_o unto_o this_o day_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o not_o long_o after_o in_o gregory_n the_o tenthes_o time_n in_o a_o council_n at_o lion_n and_o after_o that_o again_o in_o the_o florentine_a council_n labour_n be_v make_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o communion_n &_o union_n with_o you_o again_o and_o that_o in_o the_o first_o michael_z paleologus_fw-la so_o the_o better_a to_o compass_v help_n to_o keep_v his_o kingdom_n which_o with_o brutish_a murder_n he_o have_v get_v and_o some_o other_o of_o his_o friend_n assent_v unto_o a_o decree_n to_o that_o end_n and_o that_o in_o the_o other_o likewise_o johannes_n paleologus_fw-la emperor_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o patriarch_n there_o with_o some_o other_o greek_a bishop_n among_o who_o be_v bessarion_n assent_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o your_o pope_n title_n and_o your_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n but_o withal_o good_a reader_n i_o must_v tell_v thou_o that_o i_o find_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o first_o be_v so_o mislike_v of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o grecia_n when_o they_o come_v home_o that_o the_o story_n report_n that_o even_o therefore_o they_o hold_v they_o that_o so_o assent_v always_o after_o as_o person_n cut_v of_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o church_n and_o when_o they_o die_v deny_v they_o the_o honour_n of_o burial_n and_o that_o likewise_o the_o same_o story_n report_v not_o only_o that_o in_o the_o late_a by_o no_o mean_n they_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o allow_v of_o transubstantiation_n though_o there_o they_o be_v urge_v much_o thereunto_o but_o that_o for_o their_o yield_v in_o the_o other_o they_o be_v so_o resist_v when_o they_o come_v at_o home_n by_o one_o marcus_n the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o other_o bishop_n that_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o recant_v and_o to_o declare_v mere_o void_a all_o that_o they_o have_v do_v there_o yea_o moreover_o it_o be_v record_v in_o a_o ancient_a register_n of_o the_o church_n of_o herford_n that_o in_o 29._o article_n there_o also_o set_v down_o the_o greek_n church_n differ_v quite_o from_o your_o roman_a church_n and_o therefore_o hereby_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o these_o point_n of_o popery_n which_o it_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v be_v either_o not_o at_o all_o or_o at_o least_o not_o universal_o receive_v before_o the_o foresay_v breach_n and_o that_o therefore_o these_o have_v not_o 400_o year_n continuance_n on_o their_o back_n which_o come_v far_o short_a of_o your_o account_n of_o 1500._o year_n further_o evident_a and_o apparent_a proof_n there_o be_v to_o make_v it_o utter_o without_o all_o question_n that_o both_o these_o &_o many_o other_o point_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n that_o now_o be_v be_v far_o young_a than_o your_o reckon_n for_o before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n in_o the_o year_n 1414._o we_o find_v not_o the_o minister_a the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n public_o forbid_v to_o the_o common_a communicant_a and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n it_o be_v permit_v again_o in_o the_o year_n 1431._o to_o the_o bohemians_n to_o receive_v under_o both_o kind_n &_o so_o there_o from_o that_o day_n to_o this_o many_o have_v use_v to_o do_v certain_a it_o be_v as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_a that_o in_o his_o time_n with_o be_v 260._o year_n after_o christ_n it_o be_v by_o he_o account_v absurd_a to_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o any_o communicant_a &_o the_o consecratione_n do_v 2._o it_o be_v record_v that_o gelasius_n who_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n 500_o make_v a_o flat_a decree_n to_o bind_v all_o man_n to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n say_v either_o let_v he_o that_o receive_v receive_v both_o or_o neither_o because_o the_o division_n of_o one_o mystery_n can_v be_v without_o sacrilege_n and_o yet_o now_o your_o pope_n &_o their_o counsel_n which_o you_o hold_v can_v err_v condenne_v it_o for_o a_o curse_a heresy_n to_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v needful_a that_o this_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v receive_v of_o all_o communicant_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o same_o distinction_n cap._n peracta_fw-la that_o pope_n calixt_v in_o the_o year_n 223_o make_v a_o flat_a law_n contrary_a to_o your_o receive_a use_n now_o of_o your_o priest_n receve_v all_o alone_a for_o there_o he_o decree_v that_o consecration_n be_v do_v all_o that_o will_v not_o be_v shut_v from_o the_o church_n shall_v communicate_v for_o so_o say_v he_o the_o apostle_n teach_v &_o the_o fashion_n they_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v how_o be_v it_o they_o that_o your_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o ancient_a decree_n thus_o ground_v both_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o practice_n then_o of_o that_o church_n in_o this_o point_n now_o practise_v the_o quite_o contrary_a transubstantiation_n the_o very_a life_n of_o your_o mass_n your_o own_o doctor_n tonstal_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n &_o diverse_a other_o of_o your_o friend_n as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o cap._n 11._o confess_v be_v not_o enact_v &_o decree_v for_o a_o catholic_a truth_n among_o yourselves_o before_o innocent_a the_o 3_o time_n 1215_o in_o the_o lateran_n council_n which_o be_v after_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v go_v from_o you_o &_o so_o it_o be_v rather_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o particular_a assembly_n then_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_v though_o the_o greek_n reject_v this_o your_o council_n and_o decree_n your_o own_o schoolman_n canonist_n and_o chronicler_n as_o durand_n albertus_n gabriel_n biel_n innocentius_n vrspergensis_n and_o other_o show_v from_o point_n to_o point_n and_o from_o piece_n to_o piece_n who_o invent_v &_o devise_v your_o mass_n withal_o the_o ceremony_n thereof_o as_o also_o polidor_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n and_o 9_o chapter_n of_o the_o inventour_n of_o thing_n and_o platina_n in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o namely_o in_o the_o life_n of_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o first_o it_o be_v so_o long_a a_o lick_n before_o it_o come_v to_o the_o shape_n it_o now_o have_v and_o be_v patch_v together_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o these_o and_o other_o your_o own_o writer_n by_o so_o many_o pope_n so_o long_o distant_a one_o from_o a_o other_o in_o time_n that_o it_o will_v require_v a_o good_a pretty_a long_a treatise_n to_o set_v down_o the_o several_a shred_n and_o morselle_n thereof_o with_o the_o author_n and_o deviser_n of_o they_o which_o thing_n consider_v it_o be_v the_o like_v a_o beggar_n cloak_n consist_v of_o a_o infinite_a sort_n of_o patch_n at_o sundry_a time_n and_o of_o sundry_a colour_n sow_v and_o cobble_v together_o that_o can_v be_v the_o mass_n now_o use_v in_o your_o church_n common_o call_v s._n gregory_n mass_n be_v first_o receive_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n adrian_n 780._o year_n after_o christ_n at_o the_o least_o for_o other_o account_v it_o more_o as_o witness_v durand_n nauclere_n &_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la in_o the_o life_n of_o gregory_n the_o first_o for_o before_o that_o s._n ambrose_n lyturgie_n be_v much_o in_o use_n and_o the_o last_o of_o these_o author_n report_n that_o when_o with_o much_o a_o do_v adrian_z have_v get_v it_o to_o be_v decree_v in_o a_o council_n that_o s._n gregory_n mass_n shall_v be_v universal_o use_v and_o charles_n the_o emperor_n have_v labour_v both_o by_o fair_a and_o foul_a mean_n to_o cause_v the_o same_o decree_n to_o be_v execute_v and_o yet_o many_o will_v hardly_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o use_n of_o saint_n ambroses_n one_o eugenius_n see_v this_o stir_n about_o it_o give_v the_o pope_n this_o grave_a advice_n that_o the_o book_n of_o both_o the_o liturgy_n shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o the_o church_n door_n shall_v careful_o be_v shut_v and_o seal_v with_o the_o signet_n of_o sundry_a bishop_n and_o that_o then_o they_o shall_v give_v themselves_o all_o that_o night_n to_o earnest_a prayer_n that_o god_n by_o some_o evident_a sign_n may_v show_v which_o of_o they_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v use_v who_o counsel_n be_v in_o every_o point_n follow_v in_o the_o next_o morning_n when_o they_o go_v into_o the_o church_n they_o find_v as_o say_v the_o story_n only_a s._n ambrose_n book_n open_v and_o lie_v upon_o the_o
hypocrisy_n and_o therefore_o the_o better_a altogether_o to_o preserve_v man_n from_o this_o vanity_n &_o impiety_n he_o pronounce_v marriage_n to_o be_v honourable_a &_o the_o marriage_n bed_n to_o be_v undefiled_a he._n 13._o and_o therefore_o ignatius_n in_o his_o epist_n to_o the_o philadelphians_n say_v flat_o that_o to_o say_v the_o contrary_n come_v of_o the_o devil_n &_o upon_o this_o ground_n dionysius_n corinthiacus_n labour_v to_o persuade_v pynitus_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o gnosians_n as_o we_o read_v eus_n l._n 4._o ca._n 22._o that_o he_o do_v not_o impose_v a_o unnecessary_a &_o too_o heavy_a a_o burden_n of_o single_a life_n upon_o the_o brethren_n yea_o even_o your_o own_o gratian_n can_v not_o dissemble_v or_o deny_v but_o that_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o council_n of_o gangra_n pronounce_v he_o accurse_v the_o will_v or_o shall_v more_o refuse_v the_o ministry_n of_o one_o that_o be_v marry_v they_o of_o one_o unmarried_a &_o the_o also_o there_o be_v a_o ancient_a canon_n father_v upon_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o same_o end_n do_v 28._o indeed_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o in_o clement_n alexandrinꝰ_n time_n which_o be_v about_o 200_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o there_o be_v some_o that_o they_o begin_v to_o urge_v the_o single_a life_n of_o the_o minister_n but_o he_o call_v such_o proud_a bragger_n &_o such_o as_o god_n will_v resist_v show_v they_o by_o many_o example_n reason_n &_o place_n of_o scripture_n the_o lawfulness_n both_o of_o the_o marriage_n of_o such_o &_o of_o the_o use_v thereof_o &_o that_o the_o deny_v it_o they_o be_v the_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o devil_n speak_v against_o by_o paul_n 1_o tim._n 4._o stro._n 3._o yet_o it_o be_v attempt_v again_o as_o we_o read_v it_o be_v often_o before_o that_o particular_o so_o in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_n general_o to_o be_v establish_v that_o man_n once_o enter_v into_o the_o ministry_n may_v neither_o marry_v nor_o yet_o accompany_v with_o their_o wyve_n marry_v before_o but_o there_o also_o it_o be_v so_o withstand_v by_o one_o paplinutiu_n that_o they_o give_v over_o that_o their_o attempt_n and_o consequent_o by_o that_o 〈◊〉_d ●●●cel_n that_o which_o as_o some_o write_v be_v decree_v before_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d counsel_v of_o elybert_n and_o arles_n to_o the_o contrary_a be_v so_o repea●●●_n 〈◊〉_d weaken_a that_o thence_o forth_o it_o be_v thereby_o leave_v free_a unto_o minister_n to_o accompany_v with_o their_o lawful_a wife_n as_o to_o other_o man_n 〈…〉_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n whatsoever_o have_v any_o where_o before_o that_o be_v attempt_v to_o the_o contrary_a which_o be_v 680._o year_n after_o christ_n we_o find_v restraint_n of_o their_o marriage_n so_o condemn_v that_o there_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o marry_v and_o to_o enjoy_v the_o company_n of_o their_o wife_n and_o that_o whosoever_o will_v go_v about_o to_o debar_v they_o thereof_o shall_v be_v depose_v and_o in_o make_v of_o this_o decree_n the_o father_n in_o that_o council_n assemble_v do_v say_v that_o therein_o they_o have_v follow_v the_o apostle_n sincere_a canon_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o holy_a man_n howsoever_o epiphanius_n lib._n 2._o tom_n 1._o contrary_a to_o all_o truth_n of_o the_o story_n write_v that_o where_o such_o be_v admit_v the_o sincere_a canon_n be_v not_o keep_v and_o indeed_o this_o decree_n stand_v in_o force_n &_o ever_o since_o unto_o this_o day_n have_v be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o churches_n under_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n jerusalem_n alexandria_n antioch_n &_o under_o presbyter_n johannes_n in_o aethiopia_n which_o be_v of_o far_o large_a compass_n than_o ever_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n in_o these_o western_a part_n indeed_o it_o seem_v by_o a_o epistle_n write●●s_v some_o think_v by_o one_o hulderick_n as_o other_o suppose_v by_o one_o volusianus_n unto_o pope_n nicolas_n to_o dissuade_v he_o from_o restrain_v the_o clergy_n of_o lawful_a marriage_n that_o gregory_n and_o some_o other_o before_o he_o as_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o popish_a reporter_n siricius_n in_o the_o roman_a see_v have_v be_v busy_a in_o make_v decree_n to_o restrain_v they_o but_o yet_o that_o gregory_n upon_o the_o find_n on_o a_o time_n of_o 6000_o infant_n head_n in_o certain_a pond_n repent_v thereof_o and_o revoke_v the_o same_o say_v it_o be_v better_a they_o shall_v marry_v they_o to_o give_v such_o occasion_n of_o murder_n it_o shall_v seem_v that_o the_o epistle_n be_v write_v rather_o to_o nicolas_n the_o second_o they_o to_o nicolas_n the_o first_o about_o the_o year_n 867._o for_o then_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v somewhat_o busy_a about_o the_o restrain_v of_o they_o howbeit_o they_o be_v so_o resist_v herein_o that_o before_o pope_n hildebrands_n time_n about_o the_o year_n 1070_o or_o rather_o pope_n calixt_n time_n in_o the_o year_n 1120_o this_o restraint_n of_o they_o take_v no_o great_a place_n for_o aventinus_n in_o historia_fw-la boiorum_fw-la lib._n 5._o speak_v of_o a_o council_n of_o hildebrand_n say_v that_o in_o that_o time_n priest_n open_o have_v wife_n and_o beget_v child_n as_o other_o christian_n as_o appear_v say_v he_o by_o sundry_a instrument_n wherein_o their_o wife_n be_v specify_v as_o witness_n and_o that_o call_v honesto_fw-la vocabulo_fw-la presbyterissae_n that_o be_v by_o a_o honest_a name_n eldriss_n and_o the_o 9_o canon_n of_o the_o 2._o counsel_n of_o turon_n hold_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n pelagius_n the_o first_o as_o witness_v caranza_n and_o the_o 14_o as_o write_v surius_n tom_n 2._o conc_fw-fr and_o henry_n huntingdon_n in_o his_o 7_o book_n write_v that_o anselme_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n in_o his_o time_n which_o be_v about_o the_o year_n 1106._o forbid_v the_o priest_n of_o england_n marriage_n as_o he_o say_v not_o forbid_v they_o before_o whereupon_o as_o he_o note_v within_o short_a time_n such_o grievous_a complaint_n be_v bring_v unto_o he_o of_o their_o sodomitry_n that_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o make_v a_o law_n against_o that_o sin_n yet_o in_o the_o make_n of_o these_o law_n he_o deal_v so_o favourable_o that_o whereas_o to_o live_v in_o marriage_n with_o a_o lawful_a wife_n be_v punish_v with_o deprivation_n one_o convict_v of_o sodomitry_n be_v only_o to_o be_v accurse_v with_o their_o ordinary_a excommunication_n until_o he_o repent_v &_o get_v absolution_n which_o be_v easy_a enough_o to_o come_v by_o and_o thus_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n most_o just_o they_o forsake_v like_o hypocrite_n the_o natural_a and_o lawful_a use_n of_o marriage_n they_o be_v give_v over_o as_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o reprobate_a gentile_n rom._n 1_o to_o their_o own_o filthy_a affection_n in_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_a than_o filthy_a fornication_n &_o adultery_n among_o they_o or_o that_o in_o their_o cloister_n they_o have_v leave_v the_o natural_a use_n of_o the_o woman_n one_o of_o they_o lust_v towards_o another_o and_o man_n with_o man_n wrought_v filthiness_n and_o so_o as_o he_o there_o say_v receive_v in_o themselves_o such_o recompense_n of_o their_o error_n as_o be_v meet_v these_o thing_n consider_v no_o marvel_v though_o your_o glosser_n upon_o the_o 84_o distinction_n be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o olim_fw-la &_o tempore_fw-la praeterito_fw-la that_o be_v that_o in_o ancient_a and_o former_a time_n they_o be_v marry_v for_o by_o these_o testimony_n and_o by_o that_o also_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o that_o distinction_n it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o your_o fashion_n herein_o be_v but_o of_o late_o devise_v and_o public_o receive_v among_o your_o own_o self_n your_o doctrine_n also_o of_o free_a will_n howsoever_o it_o be_v then_o favour_v of_o the_o pelagian_n heretic_n yet_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v in_o s._n augustine_n time_n asmuch_o mislike_v of_o he_o &_o of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v now_o of_o us._n for_o he_o say_v what_o be_v there_o so_o much_o presume_v of_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n it_o be_v wound_v maim_a vex_a &_o lose_v it_o stand_v need_v of_o true_a confession_n &_o not_o of_o a_o false_a defence_n de_fw-fr natura_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la cap._n 53._o further_o if_o you_o will_v take_v pain_n to_o read_v he_o de_fw-fr gratia_fw-la &_o libero_fw-la arbitro_fw-la ca._n 17._o de_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap_n 32._o de_fw-mi bono_fw-mi perseverantiae_fw-la ca._n 6._o and_o in_o his_o 11._o sermon_n de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apostoli_fw-la you_o shall_v find_v he_o most_o direct_o to_o teach_v that_o of_o our_o own_o self_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n and_o that_o to_o do_v well_o &_o will_v well_o come_v whole_o of_o god_n which_o he_o of_o his_o free_a grace_n work_v in_o we_o and_o that_o never_o any_o of_o we_o do_v more_o plain_o confute_v and_o oppugn_v
that_o within_z the_o compass_n of_o their_o commission_n they_o have_v to_o do_v many_o new_a and_o strange_a thing_n namely_o to_o call_v the_o gentile_n to_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o church_n to_o preach_v the_o abrogation_n of_o moses_n ceremony_n to_o administer_v new_a sacrament_n to_o ordain_v new_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n as_o evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n and_o especial_o to_o preach_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o person_n of_o the_o messiah_n god_n and_o man_n the_o only_a and_o sole_a saviour_n of_o the_o world_n for_o which_o thing_n sake_n it_o be_v needful_a for_o they_o to_o work_v miracle_n howsoever_o it_o be_v needless_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o other_o old_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o one_o true_a god_n and_o therefore_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o their_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v especial_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o point_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n &_o the_o person_n of_o the_o messiah_n always_o they_o work_v their_o miracle_n in_o his_o name_n whereas_o we_o do_v not_o preach_v some_o one_o point_n of_o old_a doctrine_n only_o but_o altogether_o from_o point_n to_o point_v our_o doctrine_n be_v old_a and_o have_v be_v sufficient_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n already_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n neither_o have_v we_o any_o new_a but_o the_o old_a ordinary_a office_n of_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o publish_v it_o and_o indeed_o we_o take_v upon_o we_o no_o new_a or_o strange_a thing_n but_o labour_v as_o nigh_o as_o possible_o we_o can_v to_o conform_v ourselves_o every_o way_n to_o the_o pattern_n show_v we_o of_o ancient_a time_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n wherefore_o unless_o as_o you_o have_v show_v that_o moses_n and_o the_o apostle_n teach_v this_o one_o old_a lesson_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v he_o that_o make_v heaven_n &_o earth_n so_o you_o can_v have_v show_v also_o that_o they_o wrought_v all_o their_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v that_o &_o that_o otherwise_o beside_o that_o they_o have_v no_o new_a &_o strange_a thing_n to_o do_v &_o teach_v for_o confirmation_n whereof_o miracle_n be_v needful_a &_o therefore_o do_v by_o they_o this_z that_o you_o say_v of_o they_o be_v nothing_o to_o bind_v we_o to_o work_v miracle_n do_v nothing_o or_o teach_v nothing_o otherwise_o then_o be_v do_v and_o teach_v 1500._o year_n ago_o and_o more_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o you_o may_v have_v spare_v all_o that_o you_o have_v say_v or_o can_v say_v to_o prove_v that_o this_o be_v a_o old_a and_o no_o new_a doctrine_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n &_o that_o he_o be_v but_o one_o the_o xix_o chapter_n lactantius_n firmianus_n in_o his_o book_n of_o his_o divine_a institution_n cap._n 5._o writing_n against_o the_o gentile_n do_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n &_o he_o do_v allege_v as_o witness_n all_o the_o old_a learned_a philosopher_n such_o as_o thales_n milesius_n pythagoras_n anaxagoras_n cleanthus_n anaximeus_n crysippus_n heno_n plato_n aristotle_n seneca_n and_o other_o octavius_n likewise_o a_o christian_a orator_n dispute_v against_o cecilius_n as_o they_o a_o gentle_a do_v allege_v likewise_o to_o confound_v these_o old_a philosopher_n and_o he_o do_v add_v more_o xenophon_n spensippus_n demaritus_n strato_n theophrastus_n &_o many_o more_o 12._o more_o a_o act._n 12._o s._n paul_n likewise_o preach_v to_o the_o athenian_n do_v protest_v say_v protest_v act._n 17._o you_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o he_o do_v teach_v they_o no_o new_a thing_n but_o rather_o he_o who_o they_o do_v worship_v &_o do_v not_o know_v by_o the_o which_o it_o be_v plain_o to_o be_v see_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o announce_v unto_o the_o people_n any_o new_a law_n for_o it_o be_v very_o old_a and_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v confirm_v it_o with_o miracle_n and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o although_o those_o learned_a philosopher_n have_v acknowledge_v of_o god_n as_o it_o do_v appear_v by_o their_o work_n yet_o there_o be_v find_v in_o they_o no_o mention_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o approve_v that_o doctrine_n with_o sign_n and_o miracle_n but_o contrariwise_o that_o you_o in_o your_o new_a reform_a gospel_n do_v preach_v the_o old_a apostolical_a law_n i_o do_v answer_v you_o to_o this_o that_o the_o 9_o sybilles_n miracle_n sybilles_n though_o it_o be_v foresee_v that_o such_o a_o one_o shall_v come_v yet_o that_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o mary_n be_v he_o be_v new_a and_o need_v such_o confirmation_n by_o miracle_n do_v speak_v of_o his_o come_n and_o birth_n even_o as_o plain_o as_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o among_o other_o sibylla_n erithrea_n do_v as_o full_o prophesy_v of_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a as_o any_o other_o prophet_n at_o s_n augustine_n do_v testify_v prophet_n testify_v there_o be_v nothing_o once_o sound_v that_o way_n in_o other_o place_n i_o grant_v he_o speak_v hereof_o but_o he_o not_o where_o th●s_o match_v they_o with_o the_o prophet_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la civi_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 23._o likewise_o of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n and_o of_o the_o miracle_n he_o shall_v do_v before_o his_o death_n the_o oracle_n of_o the_o false_a god_n have_v likewise_o declare_v unto_o the_o gentile_n the_o come_n of_o christ_n as_o lactantius_n firmianus_n do_v write_v 15._o write_v li●_n 1._o cap._n 15._o li._n 4._o cap._n 15._o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o divine_a institution_n nicephorus_n in_o like_a manner_n do_v write_v how_o augustus_n cesar_n sacrifice_v to_o the_o god_n apollo_n pithius_fw-la in_o his_o temple_n can_v get_v no_o other_o but_o a_o very_a brief_a answer_n than_o cesar_n do_v demand_v why_o he_o can_v not_o make_v he_o then_o as_o full_o answer_v as_o he_o do_v at_o other_o time_n apollo_n be_v constrain_v to_o say_v the_o truth_n the_o which_o be_v that_o a_o young_a hebrew_n child_n bear_v of_o late_a do_v command_v he_o to_o retire_v himself_o into_o his_o hell_n wrong_n hell_n you_o text_n and_o your_o margin_n agree_v ●o●y_o our_o margin_n be_v right_a and_o the_o other_o wrong_n unto_o who_o he_o be_v force_v to_o yield_v obedient_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o other_o god_n &_o therefore_o that_o he_o do_v counsel_v the_o say_v cesar_n quiet_o to_o retire_v himself_o &_o to_o make_v no_o more_o ado_n the_o verse_n be_v these_o i_o pver_fw-la hebraeus_n divos_fw-la deus_fw-la ipse_fw-la gubernans_fw-la cedere_fw-la sede_fw-la ●ubet_fw-la tristemque_fw-la redire_fw-la sub_fw-la orcum_fw-la aris_n ergo_fw-la dehinc_fw-la tacitus_fw-la abscedito_fw-la nostris_fw-la the_o xix_o chapter_n your_o proof_n in_o this_o chapter_n out_o of_o lactantius_n and_o octavius_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o one_o god_n be_v old_a and_o ancient_a in_o that_o they_o induce_v the_o old_a learned_a philosopher_n as_o witness_n thereof_o and_o that_o which_o you_o allege_v to_o the_o same_o end_n speak_v by_o s._n paul_n act._n 17._o and_o not_o as_o your_o quotation_n be_v act._n 12._o might_n well_o enough_o have_v be_v omit_v for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o in_o question_n so_o also_o as_o you_o may_v perceive_v by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o former_a chapter_n it_o prove_v not_o the_o thing_n you_o intend_v for_o that_o both_o moses_n and_o the_o apostle_n have_v other_o matter_n in_o their_o commission_n that_o be_v new_a and_o strange_a for_o confirmation_n whereof_o they_o wrought_v their_o miracle_n and_o not_o for_o this_o purpose_n only_o but_o foresee_v that_o we_o will_v in_o some_o part_n answer_n as_o i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n to_o be_v the_o person_n of_o the_o messiah_n yet_o be_v new_a in_o respect_n whereof_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o approve_v their_o doctrine_n by_o miracle_n you_o will_v prove_v that_o that_o be_v not_o new_a neither_o and_o so_o your_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o oldnes_n of_o our_o doctrine_n can_v prove_v miracle_n to_o be_v unnecessary_a but_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o you_o prove_v this_o in_o this_o chapter_n you_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o nine_o sibyl_n especial_o of_o sibilla_n erithrea_n the_o rather_o for_o augustine_n testimony_n of_o she_o in_o his_o 1._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n c._n 23._o though_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o she_o in_o that_o place_n who_o you_o say_v do_v speak_v as_o plain_o &_o full_o of_o his_o come_n birth_n miracle_n death_n &_o come_v to_o judgement_n as_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n out_o of_o lactantius_n 1._o book_n &_o 15._o c._n of_o divine_a institution_n &_o out_o of_o nicephorus_n by_o the_o oracle_n that_o apollo_n give_v of_o he_o to_o the_o
gentile_n &_o namely_o to_o augustus_n cesar_n which_o profess_v though_o they_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v of_o sufficient_a force_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o gentile_n have_v thereby_o some_o knowledge_n of_o the_o come_n manner_n of_o come_v &_o office_n of_o such_o a_o messiah_n yet_o they_o prove_v not_o but_o that_o it_o be_v notwithstanding_o a_o thing_n new_a and_o not_o understand_v to_o most_o of_o they_o neither_o do_v they_o at_o all_o prove_v but_o that_o still_o the_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o particular_a person_n of_o that_o messiah_n namely_o that_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n who_o the_o jew_n crucify_v be_v he_o &_o no_o other_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_a and_o therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o apostle_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n to_o confirm_v that_o by_o miracle_n whereas_o now_o among_o we_o that_o bear_v any_o way_n the_o name_n of_o christian_n that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o new_a neither_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o we_o preach_v but_o to_o those_o to_o who_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v new_a and_o therefore_o as_o yet_o there_o remain_v cause_n sufficient_a why_o the_o apostle_n shall_v work_v miracle_n and_o not_o we_o this_o also_o i_o can_v but_o tell_v you_o of_o that_o howsoever_o the_o sybilles_n be_v report_v to_o have_v prophesy_v of_o christ_n your_o comparison_n be_v very_o odious_a when_o you_o say_v they_o do_v it_o as_o full_o and_o as_o plain_o as_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o that_o you_o wrong_v augustine_n too_o too_o much_o in_o make_v your_o reader_n believe_v that_o he_o either_o in_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o you_o or_o any_o where_o else_o join_v with_o you_o in_o that_o malaperte_a comparison_n but_o these_o comparison_n of_o you_o argue_v the_o profaneness_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o direct_v your_o pen_n the_o xx._n chapter_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v anounce_v among_o the_o gentile_n before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o notwithstanding_o this_o do_v not_o let_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o doctrine_n that_o they_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v with_o many_o notable_a miracle_n although_o they_o do_v not_o teach_v but_o that_o doctrine_n that_o be_v very_o ancient_a and_o although_o that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v new_a and_o unknowen_a to_o the_o gentile_n yet_o you_o can_v allege_v that_o it_o be_v so_o they_o so_o yes_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o true_a doctrine_n both_o of_o his_o person_n and_o office_n be_v new_a and_o strange_a unto_o they_o unto_o the_o jew_n for_o they_o be_v study_v and_o learn_v in_o moses_n law_n they_o hear_v nothing_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o have_v be_v prophesy_v by_o the_o prophet_n do_v not_o saint_n paul_n say_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n that_o he_o be_v separate_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n the_o which_o god_n promise_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 3._o scripture_n act._n 3._o saint_n peter_n talk_v with_o the_o jew_n do_v give_v they_o plain_o to_o understande_v that_o his_o be_v no_o new_a doctrine_n because_o that_o he_o do_v preach_v jesus_n christ_n of_o who_o moses_n have_v prophesy_v long_o before_o say_v thus_o 16._o thus_o b_o deut._n 16._o god_n shall_v raise_v a_o prophet_n among_o your_o brethren_n say_v brethren_n deut._n 18_o you_o will_v say_v you_o shall_v obey_v he_o as_o you_o do_v i_o and_o he_o that_o do_v refuse_v it_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n saint_n peter_n say_v afterward_o all_o the_o prophet_n that_o have_v be_v from_o samuel_n unto_o this_o time_n do_v announce_v unto_o you_o these_o day_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n that_o we_o do_v preach_v that_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v preach_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o as_o 10._o as_o act._n 10._o saint_n peter_n say_v unto_o cornelius_n all_z the_o prophet_n have_v witness_v that_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v obtain_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n for_o it_o have_v be_v so_o prophesy_v by_o esay_n say_v esay_n 53_o you_o shall_v have_v say_v cap._n 55._o unto_o the_o people_n above_o eight_o hundred_o year_n say_v that_o he_o have_v lay_v upon_o his_o son_n all_o our_o iniquity_n as_o it_o do_v appear_v in_o his_o book_n in_o the_o which_o he_o do_v show_v himself_o more_o an_o evangelist_n than_o a_o prophet_n for_o there_o he_o do_v write_v the_o torment_n of_o our_o saviour_n even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v present_a at_o his_o passion_n david_n likewise_o do_v talk_n of_o the_o like_a where_o he_o do_v mention_v the_o extreme_a affliction_n of_o our_o redeemer_n and_o of_o the_o gall_n and_o isope_n and_o the_o vinager_n daniel_n do_v not_o only_o descry_v the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o therewithal_o the_o very_a time_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v and_o to_o be_v brief_a all_o the_o prophet_n have_v announce_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v preach_v unto_o they_o now_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v why_o this_o old_a doctrine_n preach_v aswell_o to_o the_o gentile_n as_o to_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o apostle_n be_v confirm_v with_o many_o miracle_n which_o they_o do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n who_o send_v they_o the_o cause_n be_v this_o the_o devil_n have_v so_o obscure_v and_o hide_v the_o truth_n over_o all_o nation_n that_o superstitious_a idolatry_n have_v take_v place_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n so_o that_o the_o poor_a painim_n do_v not_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o one_o god_n but_o in_o a_o multitude_n of_o go_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o true_a religion_n give_v by_o god_n to_o the_o israelite_n have_v be_v trouble_v and_o almost_o clean_o abolish_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o the_o which_o they_o do_v trust_v for_o the_o justification_n and_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n cause_n sin_n and_o in_o your_o own_o conscience_n you_o can_v but_o see_v we_o have_v just_a cause_n the_o like_a do_v you_o report_v of_o we_o and_o of_o your_o great_a courtesy_n you_o be_v content_a to_o match_v we_o with_o the_o superstitious_a jew_n and_o idolatrous_a paynim_n place_v your_o self_n in_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o pure_a gospeler_n and_o the_o true_a child_n of_o god_n take_v upon_o you_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o call_v your_o congregation_n the_o true_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n this_o sound_v notable_o well_o but_o see_v that_o your_o cause_n be_v absolute_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n as_o they_o do_v preach_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o god_n as_o they_o do_v and_o deal_v with_o superstitious_a idolater_n that_o cleave_v more_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n they_o unto_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o jew_n see_v then_o that_o our_o case_n be_v report_v unto_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o you_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o do_v not_o as_o they_o do_v see_v that_o you_o be_v send_v from_o one_o master_n why_o end_n why_o because_o our_o doctrine_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o they_o be_v their_o miracle_n serve_v sufficient_o to_o confirm_v it_o to_o take_v away_o all_o excuse_n from_o they_o that_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o to_o the_o world_n end_n do_v you_o not_o make_v your_o commission_n appear_v by_o sign_n and_o miracle_n see_v that_o god_n have_v ever_o do_v the_o like_a heretofore_o when_o he_o have_v send_v the_o like_a commission_n to_o you_o the_o xx._n chapter_n i_o have_v show_v you_o my_o reason_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n why_o you_o must_v stay_v for_o all_o your_o premise_n from_o the_o conclusion_n that_o you_o begin_v withal_o in_o this_o for_o howsoever_o some_o few_o of_o they_o they_o hear_v in_o some_o sort_n that_o such_o a_o messiah_n either_o shall_v come_v or_o be_v come_v yet_o the_o particular_a person_n who_o that_o same_o be_v be_v first_o preach_v by_o the_o angel_n gabriel_n &_o second_o by_o zacharie_n and_o elizabeth_n his_o wife_n luke_n 1._o before_o he_o be_v bear_v then_o by_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o shepherd_n the_o day_n of_o his_o birth_n after_o by_o simeon_n and_o anna_n john_n baptist_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o rest_n as_o it_o follow_v set_v down_o in_o the_o story_n luke_n 2._o etc._n etc._n but_o you_o say_v yet_o further_o that_o though_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v jesus_n christ_n the_o messiah_n be_v unknowen_a to_o the_o gentile_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o to_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o apostle_n preach_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o
confute_v they_o and_o to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o christ_n answer_n to_o satan_n mat._n 4._o and_o by_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n against_o these_o heretic_n and_o the_o hardness_n that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o leave_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o such_o but_o as_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o simple_a may_v read_v and_o travel_v in_o the_o scripture_n with_o great_a profit_n howsoever_o it_o please_v you_o to_o insinuate_v in_o your_o taunt_a manner_n ca._n 26._o that_o artificer_n may_v not_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o be_v profitable_a reader_n and_o understander_n thereof_o for_o every_o one_o that_o will_v be_v bless_v be_v to_o take_v delight_n in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o to_o show_v that_o his_o delight_n by_o meditate_v therein_o day_n &_o night_n psalm_n 1._o and_o christ_n have_v command_v all_o his_o hearer_n indifferent_o to_o search_v the_o scripture_n john_n 5._o and_o for_o all_o the_o hardness_n that_o be_v in_o they_o we_o read_v psal_n 19_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o lord_n give_v wisdom_n unto_o the_o simple_a and_o his_o commandment_n give_v light_a unto_o the_o eye_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o david_n speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v then_o hard_o than_o they_o be_v now_o be_v so_o open_v as_o they_o be_v now_o by_o the_o access_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n say_v thus_o thy_o word_n be_v a_o lantern_n unto_o my_o foot_n and_o a_o light_n to_o my_o path_n psal_n 119._o wherefore_o peter_n in_o his_o 2._o epist_n &_o 1._o cap._n call_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o he_o account_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n lightsome_a which_o it_o seem_v in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n he_o have_v a_o eye_n unto_o add_v that_o they_o do_v well_o to_o attend_v to_o the_o former_a until_o the_o day_n daun_v and_o the_o day_n star_n arise_v in_o their_o har●●_n which_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n may_v be_v though_o i_o forget_v not_o that_o the_o same_o peter_n in_o the_o same_o epist_n chap._n 3._o write_v also_o that_o among_o the_o thing_n write_v by_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n concern_v the_o late_a day_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v for_o i_o remember_v also_o that_o yet_o he_o note_v to_o who_o they_o be_v so_o say_v which_o they_o that_o be_v unlearned_a and_o unstable_a perverte_a as_o they_o do_v the_o other_o scripture_n unto_o their_o own_o destruction_n for_o to_o such_o nothing_o be_v plain_a enough_o to_o preserve_v or_o keep_v they_o from_o thus_o do_v upon_o which_o ground_n howsoever_o you_v and_o your_o fellow_n with_o such_o like_a discourse_n as_o this_o will_v discourage_v the_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a from_o reading_z the_o scripture_n origen_n wish_v that_o all_o will_v do_v as_o it_o be_v write_v search_v the_o scripture_n in_o his_o 2._o hom._n upon_o esay_n and_o hierom_n note_v upon_o these_o word_n colosse_n 3._o let_v the_o word_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o plentiful_o etc._n etc._n that_o even_o layman_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o only_o sufficient_o but_o also_o abundant_o dwell_v in_o they_o and_o therefore_o augustine_n in_o his_o 55._o sermon_n de_fw-la tempore_fw-la say_v general_o unto_o his_o hearer_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o you_o hear_v the_o divine_a scripture_n in_o the_o church_n but_o also_o in_o your_o house_n either_o read_v they_o yourselves_o or_o else_o desire_v some_o other_o to_o read_v they_o and_o give_v you_o diligent_a ear_n to_o they_o and_o chrysost_o likewise_o in_o his_o 9_o homil_n upon_o the_o coloss_n be_v very_o earnest_a to_o persuade_v seculare_fw-la man_n as_o you_o call_v they_o to_o get_v they_o the_o bible_n or_o at_o the_o least_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v their_o continual_a teachet_n and_o in_o his_o 3._o homil_n upon_o mat._n he_o say_v plain_o that_o this_o as_o a_o plague_n mar_v or_o infect_v all_o that_o some_o think_v that_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n pertain_v only_o to_o monk_n and_o these_o exhortation_n take_v such_o place_n in_o the_o ancient_a time_n that_o hierom_n upon_o the_o 133._o psalm_n say_v that_o both_o marry_a man_n and_o their_o wife_n then_o have_v this_o contention_n and_o not_o monk_n only_o who_o can_v learn_v most_o scripture_n whereof_o come_v such_o profit_n that_o howsoever_o your_o gibe_a spirit_n can_v not_o digest_v the_o like_a in_o these_o day_n theodoret_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n write_v that_o man_n in_o his_o time_n may_v common_o see_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v not_o only_o know_v of_o they_o that_o be_v doctor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o master_n of_o the_o people_n but_o also_o even_o of_o tailor_n smith_n weaver_n &_o of_o all_o artificer_n yea_o and_o not_o only_o of_o learned_a woman_n but_o also_o of_o labour_a woman_n as_o sewster_n servant_n and_o handmaid_n yea_o he_o go_v further_a say_n that_o not_o only_a citizen_n understand_v the_o same_o but_o also_o country_n people_n and_o among_o they_o ditcher_n deluer_n cowherde_n and_o gardiner_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o you_o shall_v then_o hear_v they_o dispute_v of_o the_o trinity_n and_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o as_o for_o the_o objection_n that_o you_o terrify_v they_o so_o much_o withal_o of_o the_o hardness_n therein_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v meet_v with_o that_o also_o and_o will_v not_o have_v they_o thereby_o in_o any_o case_n discourage_v from_o follow_v this_o counsel_n whereby_o they_o be_v stir_v up_o to_o hear_v 〈◊〉_d they_o and_o therefore_o origen_n in_o his_o 20._o homil_n upon_o john_n say_v it_o may_v be_v say_v the_o scripture_n be_v hard_a yet_o notwithstanding_o i●_n thou_o read_v they_o they_o shall_v do_v thou_o good_a and_o hierom_n nove_v that_o it_o be_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o scripture_n after_o hard_a thing_n to_o 〈◊〉_d other_o thing_n that_o be_v plain_a in_o his_o 19_o homil_n upon_o esay_n but_o augustine_n belike_o meet_v in_o his_o time_n with_o your_o forefather_n of_o who_o you_o have_v learn_v this_o objection_n have_v these_o word_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n against_o julian_n you_o enlarge_v and_o lay_v out_o with_o many_o word_n a●_n nothing_o be_v more_o usual_a with_o you_o how_o hard_a a_o matter_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v and_o meet_v only_o for_o a_o few_o learned_a man_n and_o therefore_o in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 26._o cap._n of_o christian_a doctrine_n hi●_n give_v we_o this_o rule_n to_o expound_v dark_a place_n by_o more_o plain_a place_n which_o say_v he_o be_v the_o sure_a way_n of_o declare_v the_o scripture_n to_o expound_v one_o scripture_n by_o another_o &_o in_o his_o 2._o book_n and_o 3._o chap._n of_o the_o same_o matter_n he_o write_v that_o in_o those_o which_o be_v contain_v evident_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v find_v all_o thing_n that_o contain_v f●●th_n manner_n hope_v and_o love_n but_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n chap._n 3_o ●●●teth_v simple_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o chrysost_o in_o his_o first_o homil_n upon_o math._n and_o upon_o the_o 2._o thess_n 2._o write_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a to_o the_o slave_n husbandman_n widow_n &_o child_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v plain_a and_o clear_a therein_o and_o yet_o i_o 〈◊〉_d need_v add_v with_o epiphanius_n only_o to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o scripture_n plain_a and_o clear_a in_o his_o 2._o book_n and_o with_o solomon_n knowledge_n be_v easy_a to_o he_o that_o will_v understand_v prou._n 14.6_o for_o the_o natural_a man_n perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n unto_o he_o neither_o can_v he_o know_v they_o because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v 1._o cor._n 2.14_o of_o who_o that_o s._n peter_n 2._o epist_n 3._o may_v give_v we_o to_o understande_v he_o only_o mean_v he_o call_v they_o to_o who_o those_o thing_n in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n whereof_o he_o speak_v be_v hard_a and_o who_o fashion_n it_o be_v to_o misunderstand_v not_o only_o those_o thing_n but_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n how_o plain_a soever_o both_o unlearned_a &_o also_o unstable_a which_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o want_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n &_o of_o all_o true_a desire_n indeed_o to_o find_v knowledge_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v and_o it_o may_v be_v this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o scripture_n seem_v hard_a unto_o you_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n because_o you_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o pope_n
which_o be_v but_o a_o man_n &_o often_o time_n a_o ignorant_a &_o wicked_a man_n to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n and_o have_v indeed_o no_o true_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o true_a desire_n after_o knowledge_n but_o rather_o after_o ignorance_n because_o that_o be_v the_o best_a foundation_n of_o your_o religion_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o fashion_n be_v you_o measure_v another_o 〈…〉_o by_o your_o own_o happy_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v as_o hard_a to_o all_o other_o as_o to_o yourselves_o and_o thereupon_o by_o the_o hardness_n thereof_o discourage_v they_o from_o read_v they_o as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v i_o be_o sure_a whatsoever_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o fellow_n prate_v hereof_o that_o therein_o be_v contain_v the_o will_n and_o testament_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n and_o that_o this_o pertain_v to_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a artificer_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o great_a learned_a man_n of_o this_o world_n for_o therein_o and_o thereby_o i_o know_v that_o god_n be_v no_o accepter_n of_o person_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o any_o hardness_n of_o term_n or_o phrase_n therein_o contain_v to_o express_v unto_o they_o or_o bequeath_v unto_o they_o their_o heavenly_a father_n behest_n and_o bequeste_n shall_v drive_v they_o from_o the_o read_n and_o study_v of_o they_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o pain_n and_o diligence_n they_o ought_v to_o use_v to_o atteyne_v to_o the_o right_a sense_n thereof_o for_o we_o see_v in_o our_o earthly_a father_n will_n the_o hard_a the_o tearines_n and_o phrase_n be_v wherein_o he_o have_v give_v we_o any_o thing_n or_o will_v we_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n nature_n &_o reason_n have_v teach_v we_o not_o therefore_o to_o take_v and_o bestow_v less_o pain_n &_o cost_n but_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o to_o seek_v to_o understand_v the_o same_o how_o much_o more_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v so_o in_o this_o case_n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o our_o heavenly_a father_n have_v so_o temper_v hardness_n with_o plainness_n &_o plainness_n with_o hardness_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o plainness_n may_v allure_v and_o encourage_v every_o simple_a man_n to_o read_v &_o study_v they_o with_o hope_n to_o understand_v they_o &_o that_o the_o other_o may_v admonish_v he_o to_o be_v no_o negligent_a but_o a_o careful_a &_o wise_a peruser_n of_o they_o &_o so_o both_o together_o make_v every_o one_o a_o willing_a and_o studious_a reader_n of_o they_o which_o it_o shall_v seem_v both_o fulgentius_n in_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o confessor_n &_o gregory_n in_o his_o epist_n to_o leander_n have_v observe_v in_o note_v that_o god_n have_v so_o order_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o therein_o he_o have_v provide_v for_o the_o strong_a man_n meat_n &_o for_o the_o weakling_n milk_n and_o that_o there_o both_o the_o elephant_n may_v swim_v and_o the_o lamb_n safe_o wade_v these_o thing_n notwithstanding_o &_o whatsoever_o else_o may_v be_v say_v further_a to_o this_o purpose_n i_o perceive_v that_o you_o in_o this_o your_o long_a discourse_n of_o the_o heretic_n abuse_v and_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n care_v not_o how_o little_a otherwise_o that_o which_o you_o write_v be_v to_o the_o purpose_n so_o the_o thereby_o you_o may_v gain_v thus_o much_o as_o by_o such_o experiment_n to_o withdraw_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n from_o the_o love_n &_o study_v of_o the_o scripture_n for_o i_o know_v they_o great_o cumber_v you_o &_o stand_v in_o your_o way_n and_o therefore_o by_o your_o will_n you_o care_v not_o if_o the_o people_n never_o hear_v of_o they_o whereof_o you_o have_v give_v a_o invincible_a demonstration_n in_o that_o you_o have_v keep_v they_o hide_v and_o shut_v up_o from_o they_o as_o long_o as_o you_o 〈◊〉_d under_o the_o close_a bushel_n of_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n and_o your_o goodwill_n towards_o thou_o have_v otherwise_o be_v sufficient_o bewray_v by_o the_o unreverent_a and_o disgrace_v speech_n utter_v by_o your_o chief_a &_o great_a champion_n against_o they_o as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v too_o too_o often_o for_o first_o for_o their_o authority_n though_o now_o some_o of_o your_o side_n will_v seem_v in_o that_o point_n to_o speak_v more_o modest_o not_o long_o ago_o piggins_n a_o great_a man_n in_o his_o time_n with_o you_o in_o the_o first_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n of_o his_o hierarchy_n have_v flat_o write_v that_o all_o authority_n of_o scripture_n now_o necessary_o depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o otherwise_o we_o can_v not_o believe_v they_o but_o because_o we_o believe_v the_o church_n that_o give_v testimony_n unto_o they_o add_v further_o that_o mark_v and_o luke_n be_v not_o of_o themselves_o sufficient_a witness_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o write_v that_o they_o may_v be_v above_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n but_o rather_o to_o be_v subject_a thereunto_o and_o ecchius_n another_o great_a doctor_n of_o you_o of_o the_o same_o time_n in_o his_o enchiridion_n write_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o authentic_a authority_n but_o through_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o he_o bold_o affirm_v that_o to_o say_v that_o great_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n then_o of_o the_o church_n be_v heretical_a and_o the_o contrary_n be_v catholic_a and_o whereas_o it_o be_v object_v by_o brentius_n in_o the_o confession_n of_o wittingberge_n that_o one_o of_o your_o crew_n mean_v thereby_o one_o herman_n have_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v have_v have_v no_o great_a estimation_n or_o credit_n than_o aesop_n fable_n but_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n hosius_n a_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n of_o you_o write_v against_o the_o say_v brentius_n in_o his_o three_o book_n be_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n defend_v it_o as_o well_o enough_o speak_v for_o say_v he_o unless_o the_o church_n have_v teach_v we_o which_o be_v scripture_n canonical_a it_o can_v have_v have_v small_a authority_n with_o us._n likewise_o teach_v melchior_n canus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n &_o seven_o chapter_n of_o his_o place_n of_o divinity_n that_o it_o appear_v not_o to_o we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n insomuch_o that_o she_o must_v determine_v say_v he_o what_o book_n be_v canonical_a and_o her_o authority_n be_v a_o certain_a rule_n whereby_o either_o to_o receive_v or_o to_o reject_v book_n into_o or_o out_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v canisius_n in_o his_o catechism_n ca._n 30._o sect_n 16._o and_o stapleton_n in_o his_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o nine_o book_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o doctrine_n with_o a_o great_a rabble_n more_o of_o your_o writer_n of_o great_a account_n since_o luther_n and_o this_o position_n so_o like_v ecchius_n that_o in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v he_o write_v of_o the_o margin_n achilles_n against_o this_o position_n to_o insinuate_v that_o this_o be_v a_o special_a try_a captain_n of_o you_o and_o yet_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o your_o meaning_n all_o this_o while_n be_v by_o the_o church_n to_o understand_v only_o the_o pope_n forasmuch_o as_o none_o but_o he_o have_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o church_n in_o weeld_v for_o catherine_n in_o epistolam_fw-la ad_fw-la galatas_fw-la cap._n 2._o hold_v that_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n proper_a privilege_n to_o canonize_v or_o to_o reject_v from_o the_o canon_n scripture_n which_o be_v also_o canus_n five_o proposition_n in_o effect_n in_o the_o chapter_n before_o name_v this_o be_v your_o meaning_n &_o leo_n the_o ten_o be_v one_o of_o your_o pope_n what_o canonical_a authority_n have_v you_o leave_v the_o scripture_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o be_v write_v of_o he_o that_o he_o talk_v with_o bembus_n then_o a_o cardinal_n contemptuous_o say_v speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n that_o that_o fable_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v very_o profitable_a unto_o they_o and_o as_o for_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o sense_n &_o insufficiency_n of_o they_o who_o know_v not_o what_o cost_v usual_o always_o upon_o every_o light_a occasion_n you_o be_v ready_a to_o bestow_v in_o amplify_a the_o hardness_n of_o they_o &_o in_o either_o prefer_n therefore_o or_o equal_v the_o unwriten_a word_n with_o you_o call_v the_o lively_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n before_o they_o both_o for_o plainness_n &_o sufficiency_n when_o you_o be_v in_o this_o vain_a both_o the_o father_n of_o colen_n shall_v be_v justify_v and_o piggius_n also_o by_o your_o andradius_fw-la orthodox_n epl._n li._n 2._o p._n 104._o though_o they_o compare_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n &_o he_o to_o a_o leaden_a lesbian_a rule_n and_o to_o their_o further_a
sure_a way_n of_o declare_v the_o scripture_n to_o expound_v one_o scripture_n by_o another_o in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n cap._n 26._o and_o in_o those_o book_n write_v of_o christian_a doctrine_n many_o more_o very_a profitable_a which_o way_n chrys_n think_v so_o sure_a a_o way_n that_o he_o say_v flat_o the_o holy_a scripture_n expound_v themselves_o and_o suffer_v not_o the_o reader_n to_o err_v in_o his_o 12._o homil_n upon_o gen_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o to_o this_o trial_n will_v not_o you_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v bring_v neither_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o your_o interpretation_n nor_o yet_o for_o determine_v of_o this_o question_n whither_o you_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n or_o no._n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v content_v to_o put_v themselves_o for_o trial_n of_o their_o do_n to_o this_o but_o your_o pope_n think_v scorn_v to_o look_v so_o low_o yea_o rather_o they_o will_v have_v all_o question_n wherein_o they_o be_v principal_a party_n themselves_o try_v by_o themselves_o and_o you_o and_o they_o cry_v out_o that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o ready_a way_n to_o end_v such_o question_n but_o who_o be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o think_v that_o you_o can_v find_v out_o a_o better_a way_n than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n use_v you_o will_v send_v we_o say_v some_o of_o you_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o these_o matter_n unto_o the_o doctor_n and_o counsel_n and_o yet_o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o point_n unless_o they_o and_o their_o say_n please_v you_o you_o reject_v they_o also_o and_o you_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o oftentimes_o also_o it_o be_v far_o more_o disputable_a and_o doubtful_a what_o be_v their_o meaning_n than_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o you_o know_v also_o that_o it_o be_v a_o usual_a thing_n with_o they_o to_o send_v we_o back_o again_o to_o the_o scripture_n for_o trial_n of_o their_o writing_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o augustine_n 19_o epist_n to_o hirom_n and_o in_o his_o 111._o epist_n to_o fortunatian_n and_o therefore_o indeed_o say_v you_o what_o you_o will_v this_o be_v the_o safe_a sure_a and_o ready_a way_n of_o trial_n of_o this_o and_o all_o other_o matter_n in_o question_n betwixt_o we_o to_o bring_v all_o to_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o will_v to_o god_n therefore_o that_o once_o you_o will_v give_v over_o all_o other_o high_a and_o indirect_a trial_n and_o come_v only_o to_o this_o for_o than_o it_o will_v quick_o appear_v even_o to_o the_o simple_a whither_o you_o or_o we_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v follow_v for_o all_o this_o we_o join_v with_o you_o in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o your_o twenty_o three_o chapter_n in_o warn_a man_n to_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o do_v not_o rash_o believe_v &_o follow_v every_o one_o that_o will_v pretend_v that_o they_o have_v the_o scripture_n on_o their_o side_n but_o whereas_o you_o write_v that_o the_o heresy_n which_o you_o will_v after_o speak_v of_o &_o that_o be_v conden_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v as_o well_o &_o more_o large_o confirm_v by_o scripture_n they_o we_o can_v thereby_o confirm_v our_o religion_n therein_o first_o you_o most_o untrue_o report_v that_o of_o we_o as_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o make_v it_o evident_a unto_o the_o world_n if_o you_o will_v once_o come_v to_o any_o indifferent_a trial_n with_o we_o &_o second_o i_o must_v admonish_v the_o reader_n that_o these_o ancient_a heresy_n indeed_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o that_o that_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o you_o nor_o as_o you_o now_o be_v for_o the_o difference_n be_v infinite_a betwixt_o you_o &_o the_o church_n they_o by_o reason_n whereof_o there_o be_v as_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o church_n then_o and_o you_o now_o in_o effect_n as_o there_o be_v betwixt_o we_o now_o and_o you_o in_o your_o recital_n of_o the_o heretic_n abuse_v the_o scripture_n diverse_a thing_n slip_v from_o you_o also_o worthy_a the_o note_n namely_o these_o that_o you_o can_v not_o content_v yourself_o with_o show_v we_o how_o they_o do_v abuse_v the_o scripture_n in_o wrong_n allege_v they_o but_o that_o as_o though_o your_o finger_n itch_v to_o show_v that_o you_o have_v as_o good_a skill_n therein_o as_o they_o you_o still_o intermingle_v with_o they_o your_o own_o cunning_a in_o show_v how_o other_o place_n may_v be_v abuse_v in_o like_a manner_n neither_o confute_v in_o the_o end_n their_o collection_n nor_o your_o own_o how_o dangerous_a soever_o another_o trick_n you_o have_v in_o note_v the_o truth_n impugn_a by_o they_o and_o the_o manner_n how_o they_o go_v to_o work_v though_o never_o so_o untrue_o yet_o confident_o to_o set_v down_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o impugn_v in_o you_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o church_n in_o equal_a degree_n of_o truth_n and_o reverence_n with_o they_o that_o they_o set_v themselves_o then_o against_o and_o that_o they_o cry_v out_o against_o tradition_n of_o man_n and_o cry_v only_o for_o the_o write_v word_n as_o we_o do_v whereas_o in_o truth_n few_o or_o none_o of_o the_o thing_n we_o condemn_v in_o you_o be_v hatch_v then_o and_o the_o contrary_a before_o have_v appear_v out_o of_o irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 2._o that_o it_o be_v their_o fashion_n to_o fly_v from_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o accuse_v they_o as_o you_o do_v and_o to_o urge_v tradition_n &_o that_o they_o also_o use_v to_o urge_v other_o such_o like_a ground_n for_o their_o heresy_n as_o you_o do_v as_o i_o have_v show_v cap._n 3._o the_o last_o be_v that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n you_o charge_v they_o with_o what_o you_o listen_v not_o show_v we_o where_o you_o read_v or_o find_v ground_n for_o these_o thing_n wherewith_o you_o charge_v they_o belike_o lest_o in_o turn_v to_o the_o place_n &_o examine_v you_o proof_n we_o shall_v to_o your_o discredit_n have_v occasion_n thereby_o to_o descry_v in_o you_o either_o some_o malice_n error_n ignorance_n or_o some_o negligence_n at_o the_o least_o for_o example_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o which_o you_o write_v cap._n 22._o that_o the_o arrian_n allege_v as_o many_o or_o more_o place_n than_o the_o catholic_n or_o that_o the_o same_o church_n that_o condemn_v the_o adamite_z have_v condemn_v we_o hus_n and_o his_o scholar_n condemn_v they_o but_o to_o pass_v on_o from_o these_o thing_n to_o your_o conclusion_n upon_o these_o premise_n and_o to_o that_o which_o you_o infer_v thereupon_o in_o your_o 26_o chapter_n i_o grant_v you_o by_o that_o which_o you_o have_v write_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n it_o may_v be_v see_v that_o one_o ill_o dispose_v may_v soon_o allege_v scripture_n in_o a_o corrupt_a sense_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o you_o undertake_v cap._n 22._o that_o be_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o we_o allege_v do_v not_o justify_v our_o do_n if_o you_o will_v have_v prove_v this_o indeed_o you_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o we_o allege_v the_o scripture_n in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n as_o these_o do_v that_o you_o have_v talk_v on_o but_o that_o be_v to_o heavy_a a_o piece_n of_o work_n for_o you_o &_o therefore_o you_o think_v good_a not_o once_o to_o meddle_v with_o it_o but_o yet_o as_o though_o either_o you_o have_v prove_v it_o or_o else_o that_o it_o can_v not_o but_o wtout_fw-fr proof_n be_v grant_v you_o you_o bold_o affirm_v as_o these_o heretic_n that_o you_o have_v talk_v of_o have_v perish_v &_o their_o heresy_n so_o shall_v we_o &_o our_o follower_n if_o we_o repent_v not_o whereunto_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o so_o repentance_n may_v be_v take_v that_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o not_o only_o we_o &_o our_o follower_n but_o you_o &_o you_o also_o &_o all_o man_n else_o must_v repent_v or_o else_o we_o all_o you_o and_o all_o other_o shall_v perish_v but_o take_v it_o as_o you_o do_v for_o repent_v of_o our_o religion_n &_o of_o allege_v of_o the_o scripture_n which_o we_o do_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o it_o against_o you_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o at_o all_o as_o yet_o to_o make_v we_o once_o to_o think_v that_o we_o have_v any_o need_n at_o all_o so_o or_o thereof_o to_o repent_v second_o i_o say_v that_o in_o thus_o say_v you_o have_v show_v your_o malice_n &_o boldness_n more_o than_o any_o thing_n else_o for_o you_o have_v therein_o utter_v nothing_o but_o a_o blind_a prophet_n dreane_a and_o fancy_n which_o no_o man_n of_o any_o wisdom_n or_o discretion_n will_v make_v any_o reckon_n of_o it_o be_v well_o yet_o that_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n have_v enforce_v you_o here_o to_o confess_v that_o it_o may_v be_v see_v in_o all_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n that_o the_o doctor_n full_o
spirit_n and_o whosoever_o among_o we_o come_v unto_o the_o scripture_n trust_v to_o their_o own_o wit_n and_o so_o puff_v up_o with_o ignorance_n as_o you_o speak_v we_o utter_o mislike_v they_o as_o much_o as_o you_o but_o that_o you_o shall_v give_v forth_o this_o sentence_n of_o you_o in_o such_o general_a term_n against_o simple_a &_o poor_a man_n among_o we_o that_o travel_n in_o the_o scripture_n you_o have_v neither_o reason_n nor_o charity_n in_o so_o do_v common_o such_o rash_a judge_v of_o other_o proceed_v from_o a_o mind_n even_o so_o qualify_v as_o you_o charge_v they_o to_o be_v and_o from_o no_o other_o fountain_n and_o who_o so_o consider_v their_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o error_n that_o remain_v in_o your_o great_a clerk_n every_o where_o notwithstanding_o these_o scripture_n what_o other_o learning_n soever_o they_o pretend_v he_o have_v most_o just_a occasion_n thereby_o to_o judge_v that_o either_o they_o study_v the_o scripture_n very_o little_a or_o else_o that_o they_o come_v to_o they_o with_o the_o mind_n you_o talk_v of_o and_o if_o you_o will_v tell_v we_o plain_o what_o you_o mean_v by_o humility_n of_o spirit_n which_o in_o this_o case_n you_o speak_v of_o we_o shall_v soon_o perceive_v that_o thereby_o you_o understand_v not_o true_a christian_a humility_n which_o through_o a_o base_a conceit_n that_o it_o breed_v in_o the_o owner_n stir_v he_o up_o the_o more_o earnest_o to_o crave_v assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o by_o diligent_a search_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o more_o careful_a use_n of_o all_o good_a mean_n to_o compass_v the_o right_a understanding_n of_o they_o but_o a_o popish_a and_o slavish_a kind_n of_o humility_n which_o must_v breed_v in_o the_o owner_n such_o a_o servile_a depend_v upon_o your_o pope_n will_n and_o church_n tradition_n for_o the_o sense_n thereof_o as_o that_o he_o admit_v no_o sense_n at_o all_o of_o they_o though_o thrust_v upon_o he_o never_o so_o plain_o by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o place_n that_o will_v not_o full_o agree_v therewith_o which_o breed_v in_o all_o of_o your_o side_n either_o a_o flat_a give_v over_o all_o read_n of_o they_o or_o else_o such_o a_o read_n of_o they_o as_o that_o they_o must_v bring_v a_o sense_n unto_o they_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o your_o church_n and_o so_o enforce_v that_o upon_o they_o whither_o they_o will_v or_o no_o for_o howsoever_o the_o scripture_n speak_v the_o church_n tradition_n may_v not_o be_v contrary_v this_o be_v your_o humbleness_n of_o spirit_n when_o you_o have_v bring_v god_n spirit_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o subjection_n unto_o your_o popish_a spirit_n but_o this_o be_v a_o proud_a humility_n and_o a_o curse_a meekness_n you_o do_v but_o malicious_o slander_v we_o in_o that_o you_o will_v persuade_v your_o reader_n that_o how_o bad_a and_o simple_a soever_o the_o man_n be_v before_o assoon_o as_o a_o bishop_n have_v make_v he_o minister_v we_o say_v straight_o he_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no_o scripture_n be_v to_o hard_a for_o he_o if_o he_o can_v with_o all_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o rail_v upon_o the_o pope_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o we_o think_v it_o not_o unlawful_a but_o very_o necessary_a to_o paint_v out_o your_o pope_n with_o the_o colour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o that_o man_n may_v the_o better_a beware_v of_o he_o and_o yet_o we_o count_v that_o no_o rail_n but_o we_o neither_o tie_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n hand_n nor_o place_v any_o such_o matter_n in_o these_o thing_n here_o mention_v by_o you_o as_o you_o will_v lead_v your_o reader_n to_o imagine_v we_o do_v you_o know_v we_o may_v as_o easy_o and_o suit_n i_o be_o with_o far_o more_o truth_n say_v that_o with_o you_o how_o lewd_a &_o unlearned_a soever_o the_o man_n be_v yet_o when_o one_o of_o your_o bishop_n have_v prie_v he_o them_z if_o he_o can_v call_v the_o pope_n most_o holy_a father_n &_o speak_v reverent_o of_o your_o cardinal_n bishop_n &_o other_o prelate_n &_o say_v fi●_n on_o these_o heretic_n these_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n he_o be_v straight_o a_o famous_a and_o worthy_a catholic_a priest_n with_o you_o but_o whereas_o among_o other_o thing_n you_o object_n that_o as_o a_o fault_n to_o their_o disgrace_n that_o they_o say_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n be_v man_n and_o that_o the_o general_a counsel_n have_v err_v it_o be_v but_o to_o discredit_v they_o with_o the_o simple_a for_o you_o know_v that_o the_o learned_a know_fw-mi that_o both_o father_n and_o counsel_n have_v err_v &_o that_o you_o your_o own_o self_n when_o they_o write_v or_o determine_v any_o thing_n which_o you_o like_v not_o will_n and_o do_v as_o plain_o as_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o for_o which_o point_n let_v a_o man_n read_v andrad_n first_o book_n write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o tridentine_a faith_n and_o but_o what_o pighius_fw-la have_v write_v of_o purpose_n for_o such_o cause_n to_o discredit_v the_o sixth_o and_o seven_o sinod_n and_o he_o shall_v most_o plain_o perceive_v that_o counsel_n be_v of_o no_o further_a credit_n with_o you_o than_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o say_v nothing_o to_o your_o mislike_n but_o to_o make_v it_o clear_a that_o it_o be_v no_o absurdity_n to_o say_v or_o hold_v that_o counsel_n and_o father_n may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o as_o the_o first_o nicean_n council_n and_o sundry_a after_o according_o decree_v a_o right_a against_o the_o arrian_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n manhood_n so_o the_o tyrian_a the_o sirmiense_n the_o ariminense_n the_o sebucian_n and_o the_o antiochen_n counsel_v determine_v with_o the_o arrian_n against_o the_o nicean_a and_o the_o truth_n the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a act._n 5._o agree_v that_o angel_n and_o man_n soul_n be_v bodily_a and_o circumscriptible_a and_o yet_o this_o council_n notwithstanding_o this_o gross_a error_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o 6_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n which_o pope_n agatho_n have_v allow_v for_o a_o general_a council_n the_o 3._o council_n of_o carthage_n cap._n 23._o determine_v that_o all_o prayer_n at_o the_o altar_n shall_v only_o be_v make_v to_o the_o father_n the_o 2_o council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v on_o eutyches_n the_o heretic_n side_n and_o decree_v for_o he_o your_o late_a counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n decree_v a_o dangerous_a error_n in_o your_o conceit_n i_o be_o sure_a when_o they_o decree_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o general_a council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n for_o your_o holy_a father_n can_v not_o be_v quiet_a until_o he_o get_v the_o contrary_n decree_v in_o other_o two_o synod_n at_o ferraria_n and_o florence_n and_o in_o the_o 6_o of_o constantinople_n mention_v before_o there_o be_v a_o perilous_a heresy_n agree_v on_o i_o be_o sure_a in_o your_o judgement_n canonthirty_a six_o against_o your_o pope_n title_n namely_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v enjoy_v and_o have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o they_o of_o rome_n see_v also_o the_o twenty_o two_o chapter_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n ca._n the_o 26._o of_o the_o 3_o council_n at_o carthage_n and_o the_o 92_o chapter_n of_o the_o african_a &_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o to_o boniface_n &_o celestine_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v plain_a &_o direct_a canon_n against_o the_o supremacy_n that_o now_o your_o pope_n callenge_n you_o be_v best_o therefore_o not_o only_o to_o be_v content_a that_o we_o say_v general_a counsel_n may_v o_z but_o to_o learn_v to_o say_v so_o aswell_o as_o we_o yourselves_o all_o the_o sort_n of_o you_o or_o else_o you_o see_v you_o be_v not_o friend_n to_o your_o holy_a father_n you_o may_v do_v it_o i_o warrant_v you_o without_o any_o discredit_n for_o august_n a_o great_a doctor_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n &_o 3_o chap_n against_o the_o donatist_n say_v that_o the_o very_a general_a counsel_n be_v often_o correct_v the_o former_a by_o the_o late_a as_o often_o as_o by_o trial_n &_o experience_n the_o thing_n be_v open_v that_o before_o be_v shut_v and_o therefore_o dispute_v against_o maximinus_n li._n 3._o ca._n 14._o he_o call_v he_o from_o the_o counsel_n to_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o the_o doctor_n the_o same_z aug._n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o in_o his_o 2._o book_n &_o 2._o chap._n against_o cresconius_n plain_o confess_v that_o the_o judge_n or_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v man_n be_v often_o deceive_v &_o therefore_o in_o his_o 2_o book_n of_o one_o baptism_n he_o write_v that_o we_o may_v argue_v &_o doubt_v of_o the_o writing_n of_o any_o bishop_n whosoever_o he_o be_v but_o we_o may_v not_o so_o do_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n if_o he_o have_v
gibe_v you_o know_v well_o enough_o who_o have_v a_o right_a unto_o and_o that_o ●heir_a place_n be_v know_v though_o your_o purgatory_n have_v never_o be_v dream_v of_o for_o when_o they_o read_v luther_n work_n they_o be_v lutheran_n when_o they_o meet_v with_o caluin_n work_v they_o be_v caluinist_n &_o at_o the_o last_o they_o do_v not_o know_v which_o side_n indeed_o be_v the_o true_a be_v both_o false_a &_o therefore_o i_o think_v it_o be_v good_a that_o a_o sequestration_n be_v make_v that_o neither_o god_n nor_o the_o devil_n may_v have_v part_n of_o their_o soul_n till_o there_o be_v a_o far_a inquiry_n make_v of_o such_o a_o number_n of_o sect_n &_o that_o some_o good_a and_o honest_a arbitratour_n may_v give_v judgement_n as_o concern_v which_o party_n have_v most_o right_a and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o beseech_v god_n to_o open_v so_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n that_o they_o may_v see_v both_o your_o error_n and_o their_o own_o and_o that_o through_o the_o abundance_n of_o their_o sin_n he_o permit_v they_o not_o to_o fall_v into_o a_o heathenism_n unto_o the_o which_o you_o do_v seek_v to_o draw_v they_o with_o so_o many_o contrary_a gospel_n the_o xxviii_o chapter_n once_o again_o you_o object_n unto_o we_o the_o contention_n betwixt_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n which_o you_o say_v be_v cause_n sufficient_a not_o only_o to_o make_v you_o stay_v from_o yield_v your_o consent_n to_o either_o of_o we_o though_o otherwise_o you_o be_v willing_a to_o forsake_v your_o religion_n which_o wrongful_o you_o call_v catholic_a but_o also_o so_o trouble_v the_o conscience_n of_o they_o that_o read_v the_o book_n write_v on_o both_o side_n that_o they_o be_v lead_v one_o while_n on_o the_o one_o side_n anon_o again_o on_o the_o other_o &_o so_o in_o the_o end_n they_o can_v tell_v of_o what_o religion_n to_o be_v for_o who_o sake_n though_o otherwise_o as_o you_o say_v we_o give_v absolute_a sentence_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v err_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o this_o present_a in_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n you_o think_v yet_o we_o shall_v appoint_v some_o three_o place_n or_o other_o to_o receive_v their_o soul_n until_o it_o be_v determine_v with_o of_o these_o belong_v to_o god_n and_o which_o to_o the_o devil_n and_o then_o you_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n with_o a_o solemn_a prayer_n to_o god_n to_o open_v the_o people_n eye_n to_o see_v both_o our_o error_n &_o their_o own_o sin_n lest_o for_o they_o through_o these_o variety_n of_o opinion_n among_o we_o they_o be_v draw_v to_o heathenism_n by_o god_n permission_n this_o contention_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o your_o former_a chapter_n you_o wonderful_o amplify_v tell_v we_o of_o great_a battle_n rail_v process_n and_o horrible_a excommunication_n that_o have_v pass_v about_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n on_o both_o side_n and_o yet_o there_o in_o another_o book_n which_o you_o have_v make_v you_o say_v of_o the_o sacrament_n you_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o you_o have_v bestow_v more_o cost_n to_o amplify_v this_o matter_n against_o this_o &_o such_o like_a out-cry_n of_o these_o man_n about_o this_o matter_n gentle_a reader_n thou_o be_v to_o arm_n and_o strengthen_v thyself_o with_o that_o which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n concern_v this_o matter_n whereby_o i_o have_v make_v evident_a demonstration_n unto_o thou_o that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n among_o the_o famous_a teacher_n in_o the_o church_n and_o true_a member_n thereof_o to_o have_v as_o great_a &_o hot_a contention_n as_o ever_o there_o have_v be_v among_o we_o in_o this_o and_o if_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v there_o be_v not_o sufficient_a i_o can_v now_o further_o show_v you_o that_o not_o only_o there_o be_v as_o great_a a_o controversy_n now_o and_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n among_o themselves_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o religion_n consider_v as_o any_o they_o can_v charge_v we_o with_o namely_o this_o whither_o their_o pope_n or_o general_a counsel_n have_v the_o great_a and_o high_a authority_n but_o also_o i_o may_v easy_o again_o say_v and_o say_v true_o as_o they_o themselves_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o in_o ancient_a time_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v such_o lamentable_a and_o grievous_a contention_n between_o paulinus_n and_o flavianus_n lucifer_n and_o eusebius_n the_o meletian_o and_o eustathian_o all_o yet_o otherwise_o be_v for_o and_o in_o the_o substantial_a point_n of_o religion_n sound_a christian_n as_o that_o with_o great_a trouble_n to_o the_o church_n they_o shun_v one_o another_o communion_n and_o that_o for_o very_a many_o year_n together_o as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o epiphanius_n libro_fw-la 1._o tom._n 2._o in_o theodoret_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 8._o etc._n etc._n in_o socrates_n libro_fw-la 2._o cap._n 33._o &_o 34._o and_o in_o zozomen_n libro_fw-la 2._o cap._n 17._o &_o 18._o and_o we_o read_v histor_n tripart_v libro_fw-la 1._o cap._n 12._o that_o epiphanius_n and_o chrysostome_n be_v at_o such_o hot_a contention_n and_o enmity_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v famous_a christian_n and_o bishop_n both_o that_o depart_a one_o from_o the_o other_o the_o one_o spiteful_o say_v to_o the_o other_o thou_o shall_v never_o die_v bishop_n and_o the_o other_o say_v to_o he_o as_o uncharitable_o neither_o shall_v thou_o get_v home_o to_o thy_o bishopric_n alive_a both_o which_o their_o imprecation_n or_o prediction_n as_o the_o story_n show_v come_v even_o so_o to_o pass_v for_o chrysostome_n die_v banish_v and_o the_o other_o before_o he_o get_v home_o to_o cyprus_n if_o you_o will_v see_v what_o controversy_n there_o be_v betwixt_o cyprian_a cornelius_n and_o stephanus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n read_v augustine_n contra_fw-la donatistas_n libro_fw-la 5._o cap._n 23._o &_o 25._o and_o euseb_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 3._o &_o 4._o and_o who_o be_v so_o ignorant_a that_o the_o church_n story_n and_o ancient_a writer_n minister_n unto_o we_o but_o too_o too_o great_a store_n in_o all_o age_n of_o controversy_n and_o those_o also_o too_o hoat_o follow_v even_o among_o christian_n of_o great_a name_n and_o fame_n in_o their_o time_n and_o therefore_o what_o vain_a thing_n be_v it_o either_o for_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o fellow_n in_o this_o sort_n still_o to_o amplify_v this_o one_o controversy_n about_o the_o sacrament_n among_o we_o as_o though_o it_o be_v sufficient_a cause_n of_o all_o or_o of_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n which_o you_o infer_v thereupon_o against_o us._n have_v there_o be_v any_o wisdom_n in_o they_o that_o live_v in_o these_o ancient_a time_n when_o these_o contention_n be_v that_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o here_o and_o elsewhere_o thereupon_o to_o have_v gather_v either_o all_o or_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n nay_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o if_o thereupon_o they_o have_v either_o stand_v a_o loof_o from_o the_o truth_n grow_v neuter_n or_o atheist_n that_o they_o have_v be_v without_o excuse_n before_o god_n for_o see_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o be_v settle_v in_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o necessary_a as_o it_o be_v the_o more_o difficult_a it_o be_v make_v by_o such_o mean_n to_o find_v it_o out_o the_o more_o thereby_o they_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o have_v any_o grace_n be_v provoke_v to_o labour_n and_o search_v to_o find_v it_o and_o to_o settle_v themselves_o the_o strongly_a in_o it_o and_o therefore_o see_v such_o offence_n have_v be_v and_o always_o in_o some_o measure_n be_v like_a to_o be_v for_o the_o exercise_v of_o the_o church_n and_o trial_n of_o god_n child_n you_o and_o such_o as_o you_o that_o by_o such_o discourse_n as_o this_o lead_v the_o people_n to_o gather_v such_o lesson_n thereupon_o as_o to_o suspend_v their_o judgement_n till_o all_o part_n be_v agree_v or_o now_o to_o be_v carry_v this_o way_n now_o that_o way_n as_o long_o as_o the_o contention_n last_v seem_v to_o be_v dispose_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o learn_v how_o to_o be_v atheist_n if_o you_o mind_v to_o have_v they_o settle_v in_o religion_n and_o preserve_v from_o neutralitie_n the_o mother_n of_o atheism_n it_o be_v your_o part_n to_o join_v with_o we_o especial_o in_o these_o great_a diversity_n of_o opinion_n about_o religion_n that_o be_v now_o a_o day_n in_o the_o world_n to_o persuade_v they_o most_o diligent_o to_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o thereby_o to_o try_v all_o spirit_n and_o their_o opinion_n whither_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o yea_o even_o so_o much_o the_o more_o for_o these_o variety_n sake_n that_o so_o they_o may_v find_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v settle_v in_o it_o for_o they_o may_v not_o faint_a or_o give_v over_o thus_o do_v for_o this_o for_o necessary_a it_o be_v that_o
yet_o without_o fruit_n to_o the_o receiver_n the_o benefit_n indeed_o arise_v by_o his_o presence_n only_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o communicant_a the_o matter_n be_v not_o of_o so_o great_a moment_n &_o weight_n as_o that_o either_o you_o shall_v need_v to_o make_v such_o a_o do_v about_o or_o that_o the_o maintainer_n thereof_o shall_v need_v to_o strive_v so_o eager_o for_o which_o i_o hope_v god_n will_v in_o his_o good_a time_n reveal_v unto_o they_o and_o so_o make_v they_o to_o give_v over_o their_o contention_n and_o to_o grow_v into_o unity_n in_o this_o matter_n with_o their_o brethren_n i_o can_v but_o tell_v you_o yet_o before_o i_o end_v this_o chapter_n that_o you_o very_o great_o belie_v we_o when_o you_o write_v that_o we_o have_v give_v absolute_a sentence_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v err_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o this_o present_a in_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a constitute_v in_o a_o three_o place_n call_v purgatory_n for_o both_o your_o devyse_n of_o purgatory_n and_o of_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o soul_n there_o we_o say_v and_o constant_o defend_v to_o be_v but_o popish_a devise_n find_v out_o and_o ground_v but_o upon_o humane_a reason_n dream_n and_o fond_a vision_n and_o apparition_n and_o neither_o teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n nor_o any_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n at_o least_o after_o christ_n tertullian_n be_v the_o first_o and_o that_o in_o a_o book_n write_v by_o he_o when_o he_o be_v a_o montanist_n that_o make_v any_o mention_n towards_o the_o allowance_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o until_o the_o florentine_a council_n the_o greek_a church_n can_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o join_v with_o you_o in_o this_o doctrine_n of_o you_o as_o you_o know_v well_o enough_o and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v more_o for_o your_o credit_n and_o honesty_n to_o have_v spare_v this_o your_o merry_a conceit_n and_o pleasant_a devise_n of_o wish_v we_o though_o we_o refuse_v your_o purgatory_n to_o provide_v a_o third_o place_n for_o they_o who_o our_o contention_n make_v constant_a on_o neither_o side_n for_o either_o if_o you_o have_v be_v wise_a you_o will_v have_v utter_v that_o your_o conceit_n with_o more_o truth_n in_o your_o first_o entrance_n into_o it_o or_o else_o you_o will_v have_v let_v it_o alone_o for_o altogether_o the_o xxix_o chapter_n it_o do_v appear_v well_o by_o that_o that_o i_o have_v say_v how_o the_o assurance_n of_o your_o vocation_n to_o the_o ministry_n be_v but_o found_v upon_o sand_n for_o asmuch_o as_o you_o do_v seek_v particulerlie_o a_o contrary_a meaning_n every_o one_o to_o his_o own_o particular_a sense_n be_v not_o this_o the_o way_n that_o a_o extraordinary_a minister_n send_v from_o god_n shall_v use_v to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n for_o this_o have_v be_v the_o custom_n of_o all_o old_a heretic_n as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a difference_n between_o set_v forth_o the_o scripture_n to_o refourme_v one_o religion_n and_o to_o reform_v one_o condition_n for_o when_o there_o be_v any_o question_n of_o the_o refourm_v of_o one_o manner_n sense_n manner_n good_a stuff_n by_o this_o divinity_n than_o man_n may_v by_o the_o warrant_n of_o the_o apostle_n take_v the_o scripture_n in_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a sense_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o regard_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n be_v new_a or_o old_a for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v let_v every_o man_n take_v it_o to_o his_o own_o sense_n but_o when_o it_o be_v to_o be_v talk_v of_o as_o touch_v one_o faith_n the_o catholic_a ought_v great_o to_o beware_v of_o be_v of_o and_o such_o be_v all_o they_o whosoever_o make_v they_o that_o will_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o wh●ch_a kind_n your_o popish_a interpretation_n be_v singular_a interpretation_n and_o to_o hold_v they_o as_o very_o suspicious_a 〈◊〉_d suspicious_a if_o this_o rule_n be_v receive_v and_o follow_v your_o popery_n will_v be_v find_v new_a devise_n and_o will_v you_o will_v you_o you_o shall_v become_v all_o one_o with_o 〈◊〉_d he_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o sentence_n that_o be_v hold_v and_o teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n without_o make_v any_o account_n of_o all_o these_o new_a devise_n for_o even_o as_o when_o one_o will_v repair_v a_o old_a house_n he_o dare_v commit_v it_o to_o any_o mason_n although_o his_o cunning_n be_v but_o small_a but_o if_o the_o foundation_n must_v be_v touch_v he_o will_v seek_v the_o best_a master_n he_o can_v find_v even_o so_o when_o one_o will_v correct_v i_o for_o my_o evil_a life_n or_o condition_n although_o that_o it_o be_v so_o that_o he_o that_o seek_v to_o reform_v i_o be_v not_o of_o the_o wise_a of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o allege_v to_o i_o some_o place_n or_o figure_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o altogether_o to_o the_o purpose_n yet_o all_o this_o aught_o to_o turn_v to_o i_o to_o one_o effect_n for_o i_o know_v his_o meaning_n although_o he_o can_v well_o express_v it_o the_o which_o be_v to_o have_v i_o change_v my_o naughty_a life_n and_o to_o leave_v my_o ill_a condition_n ground_v condition_n but_o all_o the_o pack_n of_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v ●opery_n to_o be_v thus_o ground_v but_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o touch_v my_o faith_n and_o to_o persuade_v i_o from_o that_o that_o all_o my_o ancetour_n do_v ever_o hold_v from_o that_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n have_v hold_v and_o do_v hold_v and_o from_o that_o that_o both_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n teach_v and_o affirm_v in_o the_o repair_n of_o this_o foundation_n i_o ought_v to_o trust_v none_o but_o even_o the_o very_o best_a i_o mean_v not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o all_o these_o that_o i_o have_v name_v and_o now_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o may_v all_o err_v i_o pray_v remember_v the_o old_a proverb_n that_o say_v he_o be_v a_o fool_n that_o think_v that_o he_o only_o be_v wise_a and_o all_o the_o other_o fool_n &_o that_o it_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n that_o one_o only_o shall_v err_v than_o one_o great_a multitude_n for_o as_o they_o say_v common_o two_o eye_n see_v more_o than_o one_o and_o four_o more_o than_o two_o the_o xxix_o chapter_n what_o you_o have_v gain_v by_o all_o you_o have_v hitherto_o write_v to_o disprove_v either_o our_o vocation_n or_o religion_n for_o all_o your_o great_a brag_n here_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n by_o weigh_v together_o your_o objection_n and_o my_o answer_n now_o let_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_v unto_o who_o i_o doubt_v not_o your_o brag_n notwithstanding_o it_o shall_v and_o will_v well_o appear_v that_o both_o may_v be_v build_v upon_o the_o rock_n for_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v yet_o say_v the_o only_a new_a thing_n that_o you_o set_v down_o in_o this_o chapter_n be_v this_o that_o the_o former_a variety_n among_o they_o that_o allege_v scripture_n consider_v you_o allow_v well_o that_o one_o shall_v listen_v to_o mean_a man_n allege_v scripture_n though_o not_o very_o apt_o to_o reform_v manner_n withal_o but_o when_o they_o be_v allege_v to_o teach_v faith_n than_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o catholic_a man_n trust_v none_o but_o the_o best_a and_o those_o allege_v they_o according_a to_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o all_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o therefore_o you_o write_v that_o the_o catholic_n must_v take_v heed_n of_o singular_a interpretation_n that_o he_o must_v follow_v the_o sentence_n hold_v &_o teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n &_o not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v persuade_v from_o that_o faith_n that_o all_o his_o ancetour_n do_v ever_o hold_v the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o hold_v the_o scripture_n general_a counsel_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n do_v teach_v in_o which_o case_n if_o one_o shall_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v wise_a than_o all_o these_o you_o will_v have_v he_o according_a to_o the_o proverb_n account_v a_o fool_n that_o think_v himself_o only_o wise_a and_o all_o other_o fool_n because_o in_o reason_n it_o be_v more_o likely_a that_o one_o shall_v err_v than_o all_o these_o etc._n etc._n be_v it_o that_o all_o this_o be_v very_o true_a what_o have_v you_o win_v hereby_o against_o we_o for_o neither_o shall_v you_o ever_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v as_o we_o have_v often_o tell_v you_o that_o your_o religion_n be_v that_o ancient_a catholic_a religion_n nor_o your_o church_n to_o be_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n nor_o that_o your_o church_n have_v either_o the_o scripture_n general_a counsel_n or_o
father_n as_o you_o herein_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v on_o your_o side_n for_o in_o truth_n you_o have_v none_o of_o these_o on_o your_o side_n but_o the_o only_a ground_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v your_o own_o private_a and_o singular_a interpretation_n &_o tradition_n of_o man_n without_o warrant_n either_o from_o the_o scripture_n indeed_o sound_o understand_v or_o from_o general_a counsel_n or_o ancient_a father_n that_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v of_o credit_n in_o god_n church_n for_o as_o we_o have_v make_v appear_v in_o infinite_a discourse_n against_o you_o all_o these_o be_v far_o more_o strong_a on_o our_o side_n then_o with_o you_o and_o therefore_o you_o rather_o be_v the_o fool_n that_o seem_v wise_a they_o all_o these_o in_o your_o own_o conceit_n and_o so_o labour_v to_o draw_v we_o from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n and_o christ_n true_a church_n by_o your_o corrupt_a gloss_n &_o allegation_n of_o these_o &_o by_o your_o vain_a &_o uncertain_a tradition_n of_o mortal_a man_n whereof_o let_v the_o reader_n take_v for_o a_o taste_n these_o few_o proof_n among_o infinite_a other_o use_v by_o us._n the_o scripture_n with_o we_o teach_v justification_n free_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n without_o work_n rom._n 3.24.25_o ephes_n 2.8.9_o and_o you_o condenne_v they_o as_o heretic_n that_o teach_v so_o the_o scripture_n with_o we_o teach_v that_o christ_n offering_n himself_o once_o for_o all_o have_v make_v perfect_a all_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v heb._n 10.14_o and_o you_o contrary_o teach_v that_o they_o must_v be_v perfect_v by_o the_o iteration_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n in_o your_o mass_n &_o by_o a_o number_n of_o other_o thing_n do_v by_o themselves_o and_o other_o for_o they_o the_o scripture_n with_o we_o teach_v that_o christ_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n coloss_n 3.1_o act._n 1.9_o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o until_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n act._n 3.21_o and_o you_o contrary_o will_v have_v he_o as_o oft_o as_o you_o consecrate_v to_o come_v down_o to_o hide_v himself_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o scripture_n with_o we_o say_v concern_v the_o cup_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o all_o christian_n right_o prepare_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o matth._n 26.22_o and_o you_o say_v it_o be_v heresy_n to_o hold_v that_o the_o lay_v people_n must_v drink_v thereof_o to_o proceed_v a_o little_a further_o the_o same_o scripture_n in_o the_o 2._o commandment_n exod._n 20.4_o forbid_v as_o we_o do_v both_o the_o make_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n to_o represent_v god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n withal_o and_o you_o allow_v both_o these_o the_o scripture_n prefer_v as_o we_o do_v the_o speak_v of_o five_o word_n in_o the_o church_n that_o may_v be_v understand_v before_o ten_o thousand_o in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v 1._o cor._n 14.19_o and_o your_o church_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o have_v all_o your_o service_n in_o lat_fw-la in_fw-la prefer_v five_a word_n speak_v there_o i●_n a_o unknowen_a tongue_n before_o ten_o thousand_o speak_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o the_o people_n to_o their_o edification_n last_o the_o scripture_n as_o we_o do_v account_v marriage_n honourable_a among_o all_o man_n in_o all_o estate_n and_o the_o marriage_n bed_n undefiled_a heb._n 13.4_o insomuch_o that_o they_o advouch_v the_o forbid_a of_o it_o though_o under_o pretence_n of_o holiness_n to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n 1._o tim._n 4.1.2.3_o &_o yet_o you_o condemn_v it_o in_o your_o priest_n as_o a_o filthy_a life_n in_o like_a manner_n be_v there_o a_o plain_a contrariety_n betwixt_o your_o religion_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o ancient_a and_o general_a counsel_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o 17._o chapter_n i_o have_v show_v you_o already_o that_o the_o ancient_a famous_a first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o 6._o canon_n thereof_o be_v direct_o against_o that_o pre-eminence_n that_o now_o you_o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o church_n there_o also_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o council_n of_o gangra_n pronounce_v you_o accurse_v for_o your_o doctrine_n against_o the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n i_o have_v also_o show_v you_o before_o that_o the_o 6._o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o 36._o decree_n have_v flat_o determine_v against_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o your_o religion_n your_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o determine_v that_o the_o bishop_n there_o shall_v have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o your_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o counsel_n also_o of_o constance_n and_o basil_n against_o your_o receive_a opinion_n now_o prefer_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_a council_n before_o the_o authority_n of_o your_o pope_n and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a there_o be_v a_o council_n call_v at_o franckeforde_n whereat_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n germany_n &_o italy_n be_v assemble_v about_o the_o year_n as_o regin_v write_v in_o his_o 2_o book_n 794_o where_o the_o make_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n allow_v of_o by_o the_o false_a synod_n of_o the_o greek_n as_o he_o term_v it_o be_v condemn_v and_o hickma●e_a archbishop_n of_o rheame_n write_v against_o another_o bishop_n of_o that_o 〈◊〉_d chap._n 20._o somewhat_o about_o these_o time_n call_v this_o a_o general_a council_n call_v by_o the_o will_n &_o commandment_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o emperor_n charles_n &_o witness_v that_o not_o only_o there_o the_o false_a synod_n of_o the_o greek_n that_o make_v for_o image_n be_v confute_v &_o reject_v but_o also_o a_o great_a book_n make_v thereof_o then_o send_v to_o rome_n as_o for_o father_n and_o ancient_a doctor_n i_o have_v plentiful_o show_v to_o be_v against_o you_o already_o for_o the_o sufficiency_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n chap._n 3._o &_o 5._o against_o your_o real_a presence_n chap._n 11._o &_o against_o your_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n &_o other_o point_n of_o your_o religion_n chap._n 16._o and_o it_o be_v as_o easy_a a_o matter_n to_o show_v they_o so_o to_o be_v against_o you_o &_o with_o we_o in_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o us._n at_o least_o this_o most_o confident_o i_o do_v advouch_v that_o for_o 600._o year_n you_o shall_v never_o prove_v they_o all_o nor_o half_a to_o be_v on_o your_o side_n in_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o question_n betwixt_o you_o and_o we_o and_o therefore_o you_o do_v but_o too_o shameful_o deceive_v the_o simple_a people_n in_o this_o case_n with_o a_o show_n &_o brag_v of_o that_o with_o you_o be_v of_o all_o other_o further_a from_o the_o xxx_o chapter_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v approve_v his_o vocation_n after_o another_o sort_n than_o you_o do_v you_o 12._o you_o but_o in_o another_o place_n you_o know_v he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n that_o he_o have_v speak_v shall_v judge_v they_o at_o the_o last_o day_n john_n 12._o search_v say_v 5._o say_v joh._n 5._o he_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o hear_v witness_n of_o i_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o they_o be_v judge_n as_o you_o say_v for_o you_o will_v have_v none_o other_o arbitrator_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o know_v that_o they_o be_v two_o different_a thing_n to_o bear_v witness_n and_o to_o be_v a_o judge_n and_o yet_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v contain_v not_o only_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n but_o therewithal_o the_o very_a sufficient_a probation_n of_o his_o person_n to_o teach_v we_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n &_o to_o overthrow_v &_o destroy_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o satan_n as_o it_o be_v plain_o see_v by_o those_o that_o listen_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o old_a patriarch_n &_o prophet_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o three_o of_o gen._n that_o god_n say_v unto_o the_o woman_n that_o her_o seed_n shall_v break_v down_o the_o serpent_n head_n and_o likewise_o in_o the_o say_v 24._o say_v gen._n cap._n 12.15.19.22_o &_o 24._o book_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o this_o divine_a seed_n of_o abraham_n &_o in_o the_o 15._o &_o 53._o chapter_n of_o esay_n &_o in_o the_o 2._o psalm_n david_n do_v talk_v of_o it_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n daniel_n moses_n &_o aaron_n withal_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o their_o sacrifice_n have_v very_o perfect_o paint_v the_o come_n &_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n moses_n leave_v write_v in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o jacob_n that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v when_o the_o royal_a sceptre_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o line_n of_o juda_n daniel_n be_v not_o content_a to_o say_v as_o the_o rest_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v here_o come_v there_o
thereby_o sufficient_o ratify_v or_o else_o gibe_v at_o it_o howsoever_o here_o you_o shall_v one_o day_n to_o your_o smart_n i_o fear_v find_v yourselves_o to_o be_v without_o all_o excuse_n one_o trick_n of_o your_o learning_n yet_o i_o may_v not_o forget_v which_o you_o have_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n which_o be_v this_o that_o allege_v this_o say_n of_o christ_n search_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o be_v they_o that_o testify_v of_o i_o you_o note_v that_o he_o say_v not_o they_o be_v judge_n but_o they_o bearewitnes_n of_o i_o which_o you_o tell_v we_o be_v two_o different_a thing_n this_o be_v by_o the_o way_n to_o give_v we_o a_o blow_n that_o will_v have_v no_o other_o judge_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o what_o end_n will_v you_o have_v the_o scripture_n but_o to_o stand_v at_o the_o bar_n as_o witness_n true_o that_o your_o pope_n and_o your_o church_n may_v sit_v on_o the_o bench_n as_o judge_n to_o give_v sentence_n as_o it_o please_v they_o whatsoever_o the_o witness_n depose_v but_o what_o little_a reason_n there_o be_v therein_o nay_o what_o blasphemy_n that_o savour_v of_o you_o &_o every_o man_n may_v learn_v by_o the_o certain_a &_o infallible_a truth_n always_o witness_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o one_o &_o of_o the_o manifold_a error_n judge_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o other_o it_o be_v worthy_a the_o mark_v to_o see_v how_o still_o it_o grieve_v you_o that_o the_o scripture_n or_o certain_a word_n of_o god_n shall_v sit_v above_o your_o pope_n &_o you_o to_o check_v &_o control_v your_o do_n and_o how_o fain_o you_o will_v bring_v they_o under_o to_o be_v judge_v &_o overrule_v by_o you_o but_o to_o answer_v this_o your_o objection_n you_o must_v be_v put_v in_o remembrance_n that_o there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o judge_n and_o a_o witness_n but_o one_o &_o selfsame_o man_n may_v be_v both_o a_o witness_n &_o a_o judge_n &_o that_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o force_n in_o this_o word_n witness_n here_o to_o drive_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o bar_n to_o stand_v but_o among_o witness_n there_o be_v as_o great_a force_n in_o the_o word_n judge_n in_o another_o place_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o bench_n again_o to_o sit_v as_o judge_v remember_v yourself_o therefore_o that_o the_o same_o christ_n that_o say_v here_o that_o the_o scripture_n bear_v witness_n of_o he_o say_v joh._n 12.48_o to_o such_o as_o you_o be_v he_o that_o refuse_v i_o &_o receive_v not_o my_o word_n have_v one_o that_o judge_v he_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v shall_v judge_v he_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o never_o disdain_v you_o that_o the_o scripture_n that_o bare_a witness_n to_o christ_n sit_v as_o judge_n over_o you_o and_o your_o do_n if_o you_o do_v the_o will_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n for_o christ_n have_v tell_v you_o what_o you_o shall_v trust_v to_o if_o you_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n here_o you_o shall_v one_o day_n will_v you_o will_v you_o be_v judge_v by_o they_o to_o your_o smart_n elsewhere_o wherefore_o howsoever_o in_o the_o end_n of_o your_o former_a chap._n you_o count_v he_o a_o fool_n &_o to_o be_v reject_v that_o counsel_v you_o to_o leave_v that_o which_o you_o take_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n confirm_v by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n &_o general_a counsel_n if_o he_o bring_v scripture_n indeed_o on_o his_o side_n you_o will_v prove_v most_o fool_n if_o you_o believe_v he_o not_o this_o your_o gerson_n see_v &_o therefore_o he_o have_v write_v that_o there_o be_v more_o credit_n to_o be_v give_v to_o one_o man_n learn_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o have_v thenof_o his_o side_n then_o either_o to_o the_o pope_n sentence_n or_o to_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_a council_n and_o your_o abbot_n panormitan_n ad_fw-la canonen_fw-mi titulo_fw-la de_fw-la electionibus_fw-la have_v the_o like_a say_n but_o indeed_o while_o we_o labour_v to_o draw_v you_o from_o your_o error_n to_o join_v with_o we_o in_o our_o religion_n we_o do_v not_o persuade_v you_o from_o that_o but_o to_o that_o indeed_o which_o our_o ancestor_n who_o we_o may_v safe_o follow_v the_o patriarch_n prophet_n christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n have_v teach_v we_o and_o which_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v by_o her_o sound_n and_o faithful_a pastor_n &_o lawful_a synod_n and_o counsel_n ever_o since_o unto_o this_o day_n teach_v us._n this_o we_o be_v sure_o be_v true_a for_o we_o find_v ourselves_o able_a by_o the_o scripture_n the_o sound_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n &_o the_o chronicle_n of_o all_o time_n &_o age_n to_o prove_v and_o justify_v it_o to_o be_v so_o against_o all_o gainsayers_a and_o therefore_o i_o will_v wish_v you_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o sentence_n of_o this_o judge_n the_o scripture_n though_o you_o labour_v never_o so_o much_o to_o bereave_v they_o of_o that_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n among_o you_o that_o neither_o lack_n of_o miracle_n work_v by_o we_o nor_o the_o glorious_a dumb_a show_n of_o catholic_a faith_n catholic_a church_n ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n etc._n etc._n hold_v you_o any_o long_o from_o join_v hand_n with_o us._n for_o to_o pretend_v all_o these_o never_o so_o much_o will_v no_o more_o excuse_v you_o from_o fall_v under_o the_o sentence_n of_o this_o judge_n than_o the_o like_a do_v your_o predecessor_n the_o high_a priest_n scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o christ_n time_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o such_o false_o pretend_a argument_n keep_v themselves_o back_o from_o yield_v unto_o the_o same_o religion_n then_o preach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o their_o utter_a destruction_n the_o lord_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n open_v your_o eye_n in_o time_n and_o give_v you_o once_o grace_n in_o simplicity_n of_o heart_n to_o search_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n in_o his_o write_v word_n and_o to_o leave_v deceive_v of_o yourselves_o &_o other_o with_o these_o sound_v and_o swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n amen_o your_o childish_a and_o gross_a oversight_n &_o ignorance_n by_o the_o way_n show_v about_o daniel_n 70._o week_n in_o this_o chapter_n be_v most_o pitiful_a for_o whereas_o he_o speak_v but_o of_o 70_o you_o say_v he_o do_v speak_v of_o 72_o &_o those_o you_o count_v to_o contain_v less_o year_n by_o 4._o then_o they_o do_v and_o contrary_a to_o all_o truth_n of_o story_n &_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o angel_n chapter_n 9_o set_v down_o by_o the_o prophet_n you_o appoint_v they_o their_o beginning_n before_o the_o captivity_n whereas_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n begin_v after_o the_o xxxi_o chapter_n you_o cause_n you_o but_o not_o alone_a fo●_n especial_o we_o comfort_v ourselves_o in_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o cause_n do_v allege_v the_o invincible_a patience_n of_o your_o holy_a martyr_n in_o time_n past_a for_o at_o this_o present_a if_o it_o please_v god_n that_o you_o do_v martyrizate_v no_o more_o soul_n with_o your_o false_a preach_n then_o there_o be_v body_n that_o suffer_v for_o your_o doctrine_n your_o sect_n be_v nothing_o so_o dangerous_a as_o it_o be_v you_o glory_n in_o your_o martyr_n of_o time_n past_a which_o have_v seal_v with_o their_o own_o blood_n the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o holy_a city_n geneva_n but_o in_o this_o you_o be_v much_o deceive_v for_o s._n john_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o first_o oration_n against_o the_o jew_n do_v say_v that_o the_o pain_n do_v not_o make_v the_o martyr_n but_o the_o cause_n for_o otherwise_o the_o thief_n &_o murderer_n may_v claim_v the_o like_a title_n although_o they_o suffer_v for_o another_o cause_n for_o we_o honour_n and_o love_v the_o martyr_n say_v he_o not_o for_o the_o torment_n that_o they_o do_v suffer_v but_o for_o that_o it_o be_v for_o christ_n &_o that_o they_o suffer_v for_o justice_n martyr_n justice_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n there_o turn_v the_o place_n who_o list_n yet_o i_o de●●_n not_o but_o in_o some_o other_o place_n he_o may_v write_v so_o but_o no_o where_o against_o such_o as_o we_o but_o rather_o against_o such_o as_o common_o your_o fellow_n be_v here_o in_o england_n who_o die_v for_o it_o e●s●n_o yet_o you_o will_v canonize_v for_o holy_a martyr_n and_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o first_o book_n contra_fw-la epistolam_fw-la parmeni●ni_fw-la cap._n septimo_fw-la write_v against_o some_o of_o your_o fellow_n that_o presume_v to_o be_v martyr_n he_o do_v say_v that_o every_o one_o be_v not_o a_o martyr_n that_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o emperor_n or_o by_o the_o king_n for_o matter_n of_o religion_n otherwise_o say_v he_o the_o devil_n may_v attribute_v unto_o themselves_o the_o glory_n of_o martyrdom_n because_o they_o suffer_v persecution_n at_o the_o christian_a emperor_n hand_n when_o throughout_o the_o world_n their_o idol_n be_v
pull_v down_o and_o they_o cast_v out_o and_o those_o that_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o they_o grievous_o punish_v then_o say_v he_o the_o justice_n be_v not_o certain_a through_o the_o passion_n or_o for_o have_v suffer_v death_n but_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n be_v glorious_a when_o it_o be_v for_o the_o sustain_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o our_o saviour_n because_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o simple_a deceive_v under_o this_o colour_n of_o truth_n he_o do_v not_o only_o say_v bless_a be_v those_o that_o suffer_v but_o he_o add_v for_o justice_n but_o this_o can_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v attribute_v unto_o those_o heretic_n that_o suffer_v to_o separate_v the_o union_n and_o concord_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o church_n in_o that_o book_n it_o appear_v these_o donatist_n do_v indeed_o complain_v and_o yet_o brag_v of_o their_o persecution_n but_o thus_o much_o i_o find_v not_o there_o testify_v against_o they_o or_o of_o they_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr haeresibus_fw-la ad_fw-la quod_fw-la vult_fw-la deum_fw-la he_o write_v to_o this_o effect_n of_o they_o and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la contra_fw-la epistolam_fw-la petiliani_fw-la he_o do_v write_v that_o the_o donatist_n which_o be_v a_o sect_n of_o heretic_n that_o reign_v in_o his_o time_n to_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n they_o do_v not_o attend_v that_o other_o shall_v put_v they_o to_o death_n but_o they_o do_v cast_v themselves_o down_o from_o high_a place_n other_o do_v burn_v themselves_o in_o the_o fire_n to_o be_v honour_v after_o their_o death_n as_o martyr_n and_o that_o be_v more_o they_o do_v threaten_v man_n if_o they_o will_v not_o kill_v they_o wr●ng_v they_o he_o write_v in_o that_o epistle_n no_o such_o thing_n you_o have_v the_o worst_a luck_n in_o quote_v of_o your_o testimony_n that_o ever_o have_v a●y_n for_o 3._o for_o one_o you_o cite_v wr●ng_v s._n cyprian_n in_o like_a manner_n do_v write_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o epistle_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n that_o though_o a_o heretic_n suffer_v death_n for_o christ_n that_o do_v not_o confirm_v he_o as_o a_o martyr_n but_o that_o his_o death_n be_v the_o very_a punishment_n of_o his_o error_n and_o that_o he_o can_v go_v to_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o mansion_n of_o the_o humble_a for_o see_v that_o he_o do_v separate_v himself_o from_o the_o house_n of_o peace_n which_o be_v the_o church_n you_o know_v well_o of_o what_o church_n he_o do_v speak_v that_o he_o can_v be_v receive_v into_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n all_o those_o that_o have_v write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o bohemians_n do_v say_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o none_o of_o zisch●_n be_v a_o famous_a soldier_n &_o captain_n but_o minister_v he_o be_v none_o one_o zischa_n a_o martial_a minister_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o heborit_n or_o hussite_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a sect_n of_o heretic_n call_v adamite_n like_v unto_o the_o old_a heresy_n of_o the_o nicholaites_n for_o they_o do_v say_v as_o these_o do_v that_o man_n wife_n shall_v be_v common_a and_o they_o go_v all_o naked_a every_o one_o take_v the_o woman_n he_o like_v best_a who_o he_o do_v carry_v unto_o their_o minister_n and_o before_o he_o he_o do_v say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v inspire_v i_o to_o lie_v with_o this_o person_n then_o the_o say_v reverend_a father_n do_v give_v he_o his_o blessing_n say_v increase_n and_o multiply_v and_o so_o they_o go_v away_o this_o above_o name_v zischa_n although_o he_o have_v do_v a_o number_n of_o wicked_a deed_n yet_o he_o determine_v to_o abolish_v and_o take_v away_o this_o sect_n saint_n sect_n and_o therefore_o popish_a traitor_n that_o be_v execute_v among_o u●_n for_o high_a treason_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o take_v their_o death_n never_o so_o patient_o we_o lawful_o coun●_n &_o call_v traitor_n though_o you_o canonize_v they_o for_o saint_n and_o so_o he_o cause_v two_o woman_n to_o be_v burn_v for_o this_o abomination_n the_o which_o two_o notwithstanding_o the_o torment_n of_o the_o fire_n do_v sing_v and_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n for_o that_o it_o have_v please_v he_o to_o permit_v they_o to_o die_v for_o so_o holy_a &_o so_o just_a a_o quarrel_n do_v not_o michael_n seruet_fw-la who_o be_v once_o master_n caluins_n darling_n rather_o desire_v to_o suffer_v at_o geneva_n than_o he_o will_v confess_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o his_o great_a patience_n or_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n devilish_a obstinacy_n can_v be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v he_o a_o martyr_n nor_o to_o persuade_v you_o to_o believe_v his_o doctrine_n where_o doctrine_n what_o need_v all_o these_o see_v none_o of_o we_o ever_o stand_v upon_o the_o bare_a suffering_n of_o man_n no_o more_o than_o you_o you_o shall_v yet_o have_v name_v the_o place_n where_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v and_o not_o thus_o have_v send_v we_o to_o seek_v we_o can_v tell_v where_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a minister_n of_o the_o lutheran_n call_v joachim_n westphall_n who_o in_o a_o work_n of_o he_o do_v mock_v at_o caluin_n who_o do_v vaunt_v that_o within_o these_o five_o year_n above_o a_o hundred_o have_v suffer_v death_n to_o sustain_v the_o gospel_n of_o geneva_n and_o he_o do_v answer_v he_o at_o large_a prove_v that_o the_o sect_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o say_v place_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v approve_v for_o the_o multitude_n of_o false_a martyr_n for_o the_o anabaptist_n who_o he_o do_v just_o condenne_v have_v have_v of_o their_o sect_n a_o great_a many_o more_o for_o in_o less_o they_o three_o year_n there_o have_v suffer_v a_o great_a number_n more_o than_o ever_o there_o do_v suffer_v of_o caluinist_n in_o fifteen_o and_o to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n the_o say_v westphal_n do_v say_v that_o the_o devil_n have_v his_o martyr_n even_o as_o well_o as_o god_n with_o who_o like_o a_o good_a sergeant_n he_o do_v march_v give_v the_o vauntward_a unto_o the_o martyr_n of_o the_o caluinist_n that_o have_v suffer_v at_o geneva_n 15_o geneva_n the_o more_o to_o blame_v be_v they_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v so_o but_o though_o heat_n of_o contention_n cause_v westphalꝰ_n to_o write_v so_o bitter_o i_o think_v very_o few_o will_v join_v with_o he_o in_o this_o judgement_n sure_o i_o be_o they_o who_o you_o call_v caluinist_n do_v not_o judge_v so_o of_o they_o because_o of_o that_o 1._o co._n ●_o v._o 15_o so_o that_o if_o one_o demand_v of_o the_o lutheran_n whither_o go_v those_o that_o die_v in_o the_o religion_n of_o caluin_n of_o beza_n or_o of_o the_o anabaptist_n they_o say_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o if_o one_o demand_n of_o the_o caluinist_n in_o like_a manner_n whither_o go_v the_o anabaptist_n and_o the_o lutheran_n they_o say_v likewise_o to_o the_o devil_n and_o who_o will_v put_v the_o like_a question_n to_o the_o anabaptist_n i_o be_o assure_v they_o will_v say_v at_o the_o other_o to_o the_o devil_n for_o my_o part_n i_o believe_v you_o i_o assure_v you_o all_z three_z writer_n three_z this_o argue_v a_o most_o devilish_a and_o profane_a spirit_n in_o the_o writer_n and_o see_v that_o you_o agree_v so_o well_o that_o one_o serve_v for_o a_o other_o harbinger_n we_o be_v very_a fool_n if_o we_o shall_v stay_v your_o passage_n but_o let_v you_o go_v all_o to_o the_o devil_n for_o company_n for_o i_o think_v if_o you_o be_v all_o go_v our_o debate_n will_v cease_v and_o hell_n will_v be_v so_o full_a that_o the_o devil_n will_v long_o for_o no_o more_o the_o xxxi_o chapter_n you_o need_v not_o to_o tell_v we_o that_o augustine_n and_o chrysostome_n have_v teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o death_n but_o the_o cause_n that_o make_v a_o martyr_n for_o we_o know_v that_o to_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a truth_n and_o the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o all_o good_a writer_n both_o old_a and_o new_a and_o therefore_o you_o may_v have_v spare_v your_o pain_n bestow_v in_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o and_o therefore_o most_o willing_o we_o acknowledge_v as_o christ_n have_v teach_v we_o that_o only_o they_o be_v bless_v martyr_n that_o suffer_v for_o righteousness_n sake_n mat._n 5._o and_o none_o to_o be_v martyr_n how_o patient_o soever_o they_o seem_v to_o suffer_v their_o death_n that_o by_o for_o a_o ill_a cause_n either_o in_o life_n or_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o many_o have_v die_v in_o lewd_a and_o for_o lewd_a opinion_n who_o yet_o have_v seem_v to_o die_v willing_o and_o cheerful_o and_o therefore_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v true_a that_o some_o such_o wicked_a woman_n of_o that_o beastly_a heresy_n of_o the_o adamite_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o zischae_n time_n in_o bohemia_n &_o die_v as_o you_o write_v and_o
show_v yourself_o to_o be_v not_o only_o one_o that_o dare_v write_v any_o thing_n how_o gross_a a_o lie_n soever_o it_o be_v but_o as_o malicious_a in_o your_o judgement_n as_o ever_o be_v any_o first_o you_o set_v down_o not_o only_o that_o the_o anabaptist_n condemn_v they_o that_o die_v in_o luther_n &_o caluins_n religion_n to_o hell_n which_o be_v likely_a enough_o because_o they_o be_v frantic_a heretic_n &_o have_v deny_v the_o foundation_n but_o also_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n will_n &_o do_v give_v that_o judgement_n one_o of_o another_o and_o yet_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o be_v not_o able_a true_o to_o say_v that_o ever_o any_o of_o caluins_n judgement_n say_v or_o write_v so_o second_o though_o your_o own_o judgement_n be_v short_a yet_o so_o it_o be_v set_v down_o that_o you_o show_v that_o you_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o three_o sort_n go_v thither_o and_o such_o care_n &_o compassion_n your_o catholic_a heart_n have_v of_o it_o when_o you_o have_v do_v that_o you_o jest_n at_o it_o account_v yourselves_o fool_n if_o you_o shall_v stay_v their_o passage_n thither_o for_o if_o we_o be_v all_o go_v for_o company_n you_o think_v you_o shall_v be_v at_o quiet_a you_o say_v &_o hell_n will_v be_v so_o full_a that_o the_o devil_n will_v long_o for_o no_o more_o company_n be_v this_o your_o popish_a divinity_n to_o make_v sport_n at_o the_o damnation_n of_o man_n and_o hold_v you_o this_o for_o a_o principle_n that_o it_o be_v folly_n to_o stay_v man_n from_o run_v together_o to_o hell_n indeed_o it_o may_v be_v for_o i_o have_v read_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n among_o you_o that_o if_o your_o pope_n lead_v headlong_o with_o he_o multitude_n by_o heap_n to_o hell_n yet_o no_o man_n may_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o say_v unto_o he_o why_o do_v thou_o so_o distinct_a 40._o cap._n si_fw-mi papa_n but_o howsoever_o you_o account_v this_o divinity_n certain_a i_o be_o you_o will_v find_v it_o that_o in_o no_o two_o thing_n more_o the_o devil_n show_v themselves_o devil_n then_o in_o these_o in_o laugh_v and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o damnation_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o in_o let_v they_o go_v free_o for_o company_n to_o hell_n without_o stoppage_n as_o many_o as_o will_n true_o true_o god_n must_v take_v from_o you_o this_o profane_a and_o devilish_a spirit_n of_o you_o and_o give_v you_o grace_n to_o repent_v of_o it_o or_o else_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a how_o many_o soever_o die_v and_o go_v to_o hell_n before_o you_o hell_n will_v long_o for_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v place_n and_o room_n enough_o there_o i_o warrant_v you_o the_o xxxii_o chapter_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a minister_n of_o the_o lutheran_n call_v faction_n call_v what_o will_v not_o a_o passionate_a adversary_n say_v to_o disgrace_v they_o that_o he_o write_v against_o if_o like_a testimony_n of_o man_n of_o your_o religion_n write_v yet_o in_o some_o point_v one_o against_o another_o will_v be_v admit_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n thus_o to_o discredit_v your_o whole_a faction_n heshusius_fw-la the_o which_o within_o these_o three_o year_n have_v make_v a_o book_n against_o caluin_n peter_n boquin_n theodore_n de_fw-fr beza_n &_o gulielmus_fw-la elcimalcius_fw-la &_o he_o say_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o carolstadius_n zuenfeldius_n caluin_n &_o beza_n do_v show_v well_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o faith_n by_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n that_o there_o be_v among_o they_o the_o which_o fault_n say_v he_o do_v proceed_v of_o this_o that_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o their_o own_o head_n himself_o head_n and_o yet_o in_o truth_n lie_v therein_o himself_o and_o in_o that_o very_a book_n the_o say_v author_n do_v give_v the_o lie_n to_o caluin_n because_o that_o in_o that_o he_o write_v against_o the_o above_o name_v westphal_n he_o say_v that_o martin_n luther_n and_o his_o adherent_n do_v acknowledge_v he_o as_o their_o brother_n the_o which_o thing_n he_o maintain_v to_o be_v false_a us._n false_a great_a &_o more_o disagreement●_n there_o be_v among_o you_o papist_n and_o therefore_o these_o conclusion_n press_v you_o rather_o than_o us._n thus_o see_v you_o agree_v together_o like_o dog_n and_o cat_n &_o that_o all_o these_o sect_n have_v confirm_v their_o false_a doctrine_n with_o the_o shed_n of_o their_o own_o blood_n it_o be_v best_o to_o conclude_v as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pain_n nor_o the_o torment_n that_o do_v make_v the_o righteous_a martyr_n except_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o diverse_a contrary_a messenger_n be_v send_v from_o one_o master_n the_o which_o be_v notorious_o false_a for_o that_o good_a king_n from_o who_o the_o truth_n do_v come_v indeed_o have_v so_o good_a a_o memory_n that_o he_o do_v never_o send_v contrary_a messenger_n but_o rather_o his_o faithful_a seruamt_n do_v all_o with_o one_o voice_n and_o one_o accord_n honour_v he_o as_o the_o father_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n the_o xxxii_o chapter_n here_o again_o as_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n you_o labour_v to_o discredit_v caluin_n beza_n and_o other_o only_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o heshusius_fw-la a_o utter_a enemy_n of_o they_o about_o the_o quarrel_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n who_o heat_n of_o contention_n and_o a_o desire_n therefore_o to_o disgrace_v his_o adversary_n rather_o than_o just_a cause_n lead_v thus_o to_o write_v for_o what_o reason_n have_v he_o there_o to_o join_v zuenfeldius_n with_o caluin_n and_o beza_n with_o who_o they_o hold_v no_o more_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n than_o he_o himself_o and_o corolstadius_fw-la who_o be_v a_o doctor_n in_o wittenberg_n in_o luther_n time_n and_o a_o associate_n to_o he_o in_o disputation_n against_o ecchius_n he_o may_v with_o more_o reason_n have_v join_v with_o luther_n himself_o and_o his_o partner_n then_o with_o these_o and_o howsoever_o the_o intemperate_a heat_n of_o contention_n embolden_v heshusius_fw-la to_o give_v caluin_n the_o lie_n most_o certain_a yet_o it_o be_v that_o melancthon_n a_o great_a friend_n of_o luther_n who_o heshusius_fw-la can_v deny_v be_v a_o adherent_a of_o luther_n account_v of_o caluin_n as_o of_o a_o good_a brother_n for_o in_o a_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v to_o he_o he_o call_v he_o charissim●_n fratrem_fw-la most_o dear_a brother_n it_o be_v the_o 187._o epistle_n in_o the_o book_n of_o caluins_n epistle_n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o what_o caluin_n write_v he_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v in_o this_o behalf_n how_o rude_o soever_o angry_a heshusius_fw-la give_v he_o the_o lie_n this_o objection_n of_o our_o disagreement_n have_v be_v oft_o enough_o urge_v and_o answer_v already_o it_o seem_v that_o you_o have_v great_a penury_n of_o argument_n against_o we_o when_o this_o must_v come_v in_o thus_o often_o especial_o see_v as_o i_o have_v show_v great_a contention_n have_v be_v among_o yourselves_o in_o which_o case_n will_v you_o have_v think_v a_o man_n shall_v have_v deal_v well_o with_o you_o if_o the_o bitter_a speech_n of_o the_o one_o side_n have_v always_o be_v take_v as_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o disgrace_v the_o other_o or_o will_v you_o have_v like_v that_o thereupon_o a_o man_n shall_v infer_v as_o you_o do_v that_o you_o agree_v no_o better_o than_o dog_n and_o cat_n and_o that_o therefore_o you_o so_o differ_v among_o yourselves_o come_v not_o both_o from_o one_o master_n god_n who_o use_v not_o to_o send_v contrary_a messenger_n this_o have_v be_v a_o hard_a conclusion_n against_o a_o number_n of_o you_o in_o the_o time_n of_o your_o schism_n betwixt_o your_o pope_n and_o antipope_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o contention_n of_o your_o friar_n with_o your_o other_o prelate_n and_o also_o among_o themselves_o whereof_o i_o have_v put_v you_o in_o remembrance_n before_o chapter_n twenty_o eight_o and_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v needs_o meet_v this_o measure_n unto_o we_o upon_o occasion_n of_o this_o one_o controversy_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n you_o must_v be_v content_v that_o upon_o more_o and_o great_a contention_n among_o you_o we_o send_v you_o home_o as_o good_a measure_n again_o as_o for_o your_o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pain_n but_o the_o cause_n that_o make_v a_o true_a martyr_n we_o grant_v it_o you_o at_o the_o first_o but_o where_o to_o make_v way_n to_o bring_v it_o in_o here_o again_o you_o insinuate_v not_o only_o that_o the_o donatist_n adamite_n seruetus_fw-la and_o the_o anabaptiste_n of_o who_o you_o have_v speak_v in_o your_o former_a chapter_n have_v die_v to_o confirm_v their_o false_a religion_n which_o we_o grant_v you_o but_o that_o these_o also_o that_o you_o speak_v of_o last_o lutheran_n and_o zuenfeldians_n have_v
insomuch_o that_o i_o dare_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v it_o be_v as_o much_o to_o the_o good_a of_o this_o church_n and_o common_a wealth_n as_o if_o a_o other_o such_o university_n as_o one_o of_o these_o have_v be_v now_o found_v build_v and_o endue_v as_o rich_o as_o either_o of_o these_o now_o be_v and_o though_o our_o clergy_n man_n now_o be_v not_o able_a to_o build_v so_o many_o college_n as_o you_o be_v yet_o those_o thing_n that_o they_o do_v that_o way_n though_o they_o match_v not_o you_o in_o quantity_n they_o yet_o may_v overmatch_v you_o quick_o in_o quality_n for_o you_o know_v in_o the_o gospel_n the_o widow_n two_o mite_n which_o she_o throw_v into_o the_o treasury_n for_o the_o poor_a of_o the_o little_a that_o she_o have_v well_o get_v be_v in_o christ_n account_n a_o great_a alm_n than_o they_o which_o throw_v in_o far_o great_a sum_n of_o their_o superfluity_n mark_v 12._o and_o well_o know_v it_o be_v that_o the_o rich_a and_o great_a of_o we_o be_v for_o their_o place_n but_o beggar_n to_o they_o that_o have_v be_v of_o like_a or_o the_o same_o place_n among_o you_o whereof_o the_o reason_n be_v not_o only_o that_o they_o lack_v a_o number_n of_o devise_n that_o you_o have_v to_o increase_v their_o gain_n but_o also_o that_o they_o have_v not_o your_o romish_a conscience_n which_o with_o your_o pope_n dispensation_n can_v make_v they_o wide_o enough_o to_o swallow_v up_o the_o commodity_n not_o only_o of_o as_o many_o benefice_n but_o also_o bishopric_n and_o other_o office_n civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a as_o they_o can_v possible_o get_v whereof_o it_o come_v that_o of_o their_o very_a superfluity_n unless_o they_o have_v be_v proud_a than_o lucifer_n and_o more_o wasteful_a in_o belly_n cheer_n than_o ever_o be_v the_o rich_a glutton_n some_o thing_n may_v well_o be_v spare_v and_o of_o a_o number_n of_o they_o so_o much_o as_o may_v have_v procure_v the_o build_n of_o many_o more_o than_o they_o leave_v behind_o they_o hospital_n and_o college_n though_o you_o will_v so_o insinuate_v we_o have_v pull_v down_o none_o but_o have_v increase_v the_o number_n of_o they_o and_o as_o for_o your_o abbey_n &_o other_o cloister_n of_o religious_a house_n you_o have_v for_o the_o enrich_n and_o build_n of_o they_o under_o pretence_n of_o your_o requite_v of_o they_o with_o your_o mass_n dirge_n and_o trental_n devour_v so_o many_o widow_n house_n rob_v so_o many_o heir_n and_o fatherless_a child_n spoil_v so_o many_o parish_n of_o the_o ordinary_a maintenance_n for_o their_o minister_n and_o since_o the_o liver_n in_o they_o be_v grow_v to_o such_o height_n of_o sin_n not_o to_o be_v name_v as_o that_o in_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n there_o can_v no_o less_o punishment_n come_v upon_o they_o than_o the_o utter_a deface_v and_o overthrow_v of_o they_o lest_o if_o they_o have_v be_v leave_v easy_a to_o have_v be_v set_v in_o their_o former_a state_n again_o they_o shall_v too_o easy_o and_o too_o quick_o have_v be_v shop_n and_o sty_n for_o the_o like_a filthiness_n and_o abomination_n again_o and_o yet_o here_o with_o we_o in_o england_n cardinal_n woolsey_n by_o the_o pope_n authority_n pull_v down_o the_o first_o and_o to_o the_o suppression_n of_o the_o rest_n many_o of_o your_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n under_o king_n henry_n consent_v and_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n they_o have_v be_v also_o by_o lawful_a and_o sufficient_a authority_n orderly_o for_o these_o cause_n deface_v and_o doubtless_o though_o not_o turn_v to_o so_o good_a use_n as_o they_o may_v perhaps_o have_v be_v if_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o they_o for_o the_o foresay_v cause_n will_v have_v suffer_v it_o yet_o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v to_o a_o better_a use_n by_o far_o yea_o infinite_a degree_n than_o they_o be_v before_o and_o therefore_o these_o thing_n consider_v this_o rather_o may_v be_v count_v a_o good_a work_n in_o we_o thus_o to_o have_v deface_v they_o and_o convert_v their_o use_n than_o a_o fault_n whereof_o we_o need_v repent_v we_o and_o consequent_o vain_a be_v your_o charge_v of_o we_o with_o seek_v to_o make_v amends_n with_o give_v a_o trifle_n to_o the_o poor_a this_o be_v a_o fault_n that_o rather_o touch_v your_o kingdom_n then_o we_o for_o we_o account_v all_o alm_n and_o other_o outward_a good_a work_n whatsoever_o to_o be_v unprofitable_a to_o the_o doer_n unless_o they_o be_v do_v with_o good_n get_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n which_o will_v overthrow_v most_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o gay_a work_n that_o you_o most_o brag_v of_o &_o you_o be_v they_o that_o care_v not_o so_o your_o church_n be_v enrich_v if_o it_o be_v with_o the_o farm_n of_o concubine_n &_o dispensation_n for_o any_o sin_n &_o with_o the_o rent_n yearly_a for_o the_o open_a stew_n &_o that_o with_o the_o which_o they_o get_v by_o whore_v during_o their_o life_n so_o you_o have_v it_o when_o they_o die_v for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_a they_o for_o your_o priest_n to_o farm_n concubine_n though_o they_o may_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o have_v lawful_a wife_n &_o experience_n have_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n but_o there_o may_v be_v merchandise_n make_v of_o it_o in_o your_o romish_a court_n &_o fair_a &_o the_o your_o pope_n a_o long_a time_n have_v take_v rend_v for_o the_o stew_n in_o rome_n &_o that_o yearly_a a_o good_a round_a sum_n &_o that_o they_o have_v be_v glad_a to_o take_v the_o good_n of_o those_o harlot_n when_o they_o die_v for_o their_o church_n use_n it_o be_v most_o notorious_o know_v and_o what_o have_v be_v more_o usual_a both_o in_o practice_n and_o doctrine_n with_o you_o then_o to_o teach_v much_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n and_o redemption_n of_o former_a fault_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o alm_n give_v especial_o so_o it_o be_v to_o your_o priest_n and_o clergy_n man_n never_o care_v so_o you_o may_v come_v by_o it_o of_o their_o good_n alive_a or_o dead_a whether_o ever_o it_o be_v well_o get_v or_o no_o for_o in_o truth_n this_o have_v be_v the_o policy_n that_o have_v bring_v your_o clergy_n to_o so_o infinite_a wealth_n as_o they_o be_v of_o and_o make_v all_o other_o but_o beggar_n in_o comparison_n of_o themselves_o therefore_o now_o let_v they_o that_o have_v any_o judgement_n as_o you_o wish_v look_v upon_o the_o fruit_n of_o your_o tree_n whether_o they_o be_v so_o good_a or_o no_o as_o you_o here_o make_v brag_n of_o the_o xxxv_o chapter_n now_o see_v that_o you_o have_v visit_v our_o garden_n if_o a_o man_n may_v be_v so_o bold_a i_o pray_v lend_v we_o the_o key_n that_o we_o may_v in_o like_a manner_n visit_v you_o &_o that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o fruit_n of_o your_o religion_n read_v all_o the_o history_n write_v from_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n to_o our_o day_n &_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o all_o those_o sect_n that_o have_v leave_v our_o roman_a church_n have_v do_v more_o mischief_n in_o one_o year_n true_a year_n your_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o i●_n be_v as_o far_o go_v from_o the_o ancient_a pure_a roman_a church_n as_o ever_o any_o heretic_n go_v from_o it_o and_o of_o you_o especial_o your_o say_n be_v true_a be_v separate_v from_o the_o say_v church_n than_o they_o do_v in_o a_o hundred_o year_n before_o but_o because_o our_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o recite_v all_o the_o act_n of_o your_o predecessor_n enemy_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o make_v a_o short_a discourse_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v of_o late_a day_n i_o mean_v the_o bohemian_o or_o hussite_n who_o follower_n you_o do_v affirm_v yourselves_o to_o be_v for_o in_o your_o godly_a book_n of_o martyr_n see_v martyr_n this_o be_v untrue_a as_o every_o one_o that_o will_v view_v the_o ●ct_n and_o monument_n of_o the_o church_n write_v by_o master_n fox_n may_v see_v you_o have_v place_v john_n hus_n as_o the_o first_o martyr_n of_o your_o ancient_a church_n who_o be_v burn_v for_o a_o heretic_n about_o a_o 120._o year_n ago_o even_o as_o we_o account_n dead_a account_n your_o religion_n and_o stephens_n agree_v ●o_o well_o that_o if_o he_o be_v alive_a again_o you_o will_v be_v as_o ready_a as_o ever_o be_v the_o jew_n to_o stone_n he_o whatsoever_o you_o say_v of_o he_o now_o he_o be_v dead_a s._n stephen_n to_o be_v the_o first_o martyr_n of_o our_o church_n now_o to_o know_v whither_o ye●e_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o hussite_n or_o no_o that_o i_o leave_v for_o some_o other_o time_n and_o for_o this_o present_a i_o be_o content_a to_o condescende_v to_o that_o that_o you_o have_v write_v i_o mean_v that_o john_n hus_n do_v preach_v your_o gospel_n and_o make_v a_o number_n of_o such_o faithful_a person_n
as_o you_o be_v and_o that_o he_o suffer_v death_n to_o sustain_v your_o religion_n then_o let_v we_o see_v what_o good_a fruit_n this_o do_v produce_v unto_o we_o those_o that_o have_v write_v the_o story_n of_o boheme_n and_o among_o other_o follow_v other_o your_o author_n you_o know_v be_v a_o great_a papist_n and_o afterwards_o a_o pope_n &_o therefore_o worthy_o he_o be_v to_o be_v suspect_v as_o a_o partial_a reporter_n and_o yet_o cap._n 35._o before_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o senate_n have_v secret_o murder_v so_o many_o of_o those_o that_o call_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o they_o run_v out_o of_o the_o gate_n bewray_v it_o whereupon_o this_o and_o some_o other_o extremity_n follow_v aeneas_n siluius_n do_v testify_v that_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n 1418._o there_o be_v a_o certain_a monk_n that_o become_v a_o hussite_n in_o the_o city_n of_o prage_n which_o be_v the_o metropolitan_a of_o that_o kingdom_n the_o which_o accompany_v with_o a_o number_n of_o companion_n as_o zealous_a as_o himself_o they_o do_v execute_v so_o horrible_a a_o cruelty_n that_o eleven_o of_o the_o principal_a magistrate_n be_v drive_v to_o fly_v from_o the_o city_n to_o save_v their_o life_n and_o seven_o more_o for_o in_o all_o they_o be_v 18_o be_v take_v by_o they_o they_o do_v cast_v they_o out_o at_o the_o window_n of_o their_o own_o house_n and_o do_v kill_v they_o with_o their_o spear_n as_o they_o fall_v this_o be_v do_v sigismondus_n be_v then_o emperor_n in_o the_o time_n of_o martin_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o rome_n of_o that_o name_n &_o vneslaus_n be_v then_o king_n of_o boheme_n the_o next_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o this_o say_v vneslaus_n they_o do_v spoil_v far_o spoil_v this_o all_o be_v too_o much_o and_o more_o than_o either_o your_o author_n or_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n will_v beat_v by_o far_o all_o the_o monastery_n abbey_v and_o church_n of_o of_o the_o say_v kingdom_n and_o among_o other_o one_o john_n zischa_n who_o be_v their_o captain_n in_o the_o city_n of_o prage_n he_o make_v they_o all_o pass_v through_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword_n without_o spare_a man_n woman_n or_o child_n and_o the_o like_a be_v do_v in_o another_o town_n of_o the_o say_v kingdom_n call_v messim_n the_o year_n 1423._o it_o be_v too_o tedious_a to_o write_v all_o their_o cruelty_n they_o do_v not_o care_n whither_o those_o of_o their_o company_n be_v of_o their_o sect_n or_o no_o caspinian_n no_o this_o be_v your_o slander_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o i_o can_v see_v in_o your_o author_n or_o any_o where_o else_o but_o indeed_o no_o people_n s●_n barbarous_a but_o you_o can_v find_v in_o your_o heart_n to_o us●_n they_o against_o good_a christian_n yea_o he_o have_v be_v a_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v betray_v a_o christian_a emperor_n into_o the_o h●nd●_n of_o the_o turk_n for_o so_o deal_v gregory_n 9_o with_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n witness_n caspinian_n for_o some_o be_v idumean_n some_o palestine_n some_o moabite_n and_o some_o other_o amelecite_v even_o as_o of_o your_o bountiful_a goodness_n you_o call_v all_o those_o that_o will_v not_o be_v of_o your_o sect_n papist_n infidel_n hypocrite_n &_o idolater_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v just_o say_v that_o you_o be_v their_o right_n hear_v apparent_a although_o you_o have_v go_v somewhat_o before_o they_o and_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v accomplish_v the_o measure_n of_o your_o father_n by_o the_o heroical_a act_n that_o you_o have_v do_v in_o this_o france_n this_o you_o may_v whole_o thank_v yourselves_o for_o the_o desolate_a estate_n of_o france_n almost_o desolate_a kingdom_n of_o france_n there_o need_v no_o other_o witness_n to_o prove_v it_o but_o the_o testimony_n of_o your_o own_o eye_n and_o ear_n which_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v more_o almost_o than_o any_o man_n can_v write_v therefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o not_o to_o reproach_n any_o more_o the_o abuse_n of_o our_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n for_o although_o it_o be_v so_o that_o they_o have_v need_n of_o some_o reformation_n yet_o i_o do_v think_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o choose_v some_o better_o stay_v person_n than_o you_o be_v sentence_n be_v if_o you_o may_v be_v judge_n this_o will_v easy_o be_v the_o sentence_n for_o you_o have_v do_v more_o harm_n in_o five_o year_n than_o we_o have_v do_v in_o 1500._o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n add_v god_n capite_fw-la 1._o you_o may_v have_v add_v do_v magnify_v in_o the_o christian_n behalf_n the_o divine_a favour_n of_o god_n for_o he_o do_v write_v that_o when_o the_o goth_n do_v destroy_v and_o spoil_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o roman_n although_o they_o be_v not_o christian_n do_v retire_v themselves_o for_o their_o safeguard_n into_o the_o church_n and_o temple_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o the_o goth_n be_v but_o a_o barbarous_a nation_n have_v that_o respect_n to_o god_n that_o they_o never_o dare_v nor_o will_v enter_v into_o those_o holy_a place_n to_o do_v they_o any_o displeasure_n virtue_n displeasure_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o yo●_n that_o have_v so_o open_o slaire_v thousand_o in_o church_n since_o your_o most_o barbarous_a and_o faithless_a massacre_n of_o late_a in_o france_n begin_v &_o as_o it_o be_v notorious_o know_v not_o yet_o beyond_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n in_o merindall_n and_o cabriers_n shall_v yet_o be_v so_o impudent_a to_o object_v this_o to_o we_o as_o a_o fault_n which_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v commit_v by_o we_o wherein_o you_o glory_v as_o a_o virtue_n you_o which_o make_v so_o great_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v show_v yourselves_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o cruel_a than_o those_o barbarous_a people_n for_o they_o do_v pardon_v all_o those_o that_o go_v to_o the_o temple_n and_o you_o have_v in_o many_o place_n spoil_v the_o church_n and_o murder_v all_o those_o that_o you_o find_v in_o they_o so_o that_o one_o may_v well_o say_v to_o you_o that_o that_o optatus_n mylevitanus_n in_o his_o book_n con_v parm._n donatist_n the_o which_o be_v that_o the_o donatist_n aught_o to_o be_v content_a &_o you_o likewise_o to_o have_v wound_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o have_v divide_v the_o people_n of_o god_n us._n god_n if_o you_o will_v have_v learn_v this_o lesson_n it_o have_v be_v well_o with_o us._n at_o the_o lest_o you_o shall_v have_v spare_v the_o altar_n and_o the_o temple_n &_o not_o to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o stone_n the_o xxxv_o chapter_n now_o in_o this_o you_o crave_v the_o key_n to_o enter_v by_o into_o our_o garden_n to_o visit_v our_o tree_n that_o so_o you_o may_v see_v the_o fruit_n of_o our_o religion_n have_v get_v in_o in_o your_o own_o pleasant_a conceit_n after_o you_o have_v cast_v your_o eye_n about_o you_o and_o look_v a_o while_n upon_o our_o tree_n first_o you_o bid_v we_o read_v all_o the_o story_n since_o christ_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o so_o do_v we_o shall_v find_v that_o all_o those_o sect_n that_o have_v leave_v your_o romish_a religion_n or_o church_n have_v do_v more_o mischief_n in_o one_o year_n be_v separate_v from_o you_o than_o they_o do_v in_o a_o hundred_o before_o now_o do_v as_o you_o will_v we_o we_o find_v indeed_o great_a hurt_n have_v be_v do_v by_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n for_o the_o space_n of_o six_o hundred_o year_n that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o then_o be_v but_o withal_o we_o find_v that_o our_o church_n be_v far_o like_a that_o church_n than_o your_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v and_o since_o what_o hurt_v soever_o have_v be_v do_v by_o one_o or_o other_o that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o you_o though_o we_o challenge_v not_o communion_n with_o every_o one_o that_o have_v so_o do_v your_o own_o do_n we_o find_v in_o story_n have_v far_o exceed_v they_o in_o all_o kind_n of_o impiety_n thus_o have_v in_o these_o general_a word_n set_v a_o good_a face_n upon_o it_o as_o though_o you_o can_v say_v very_o much_o of_o the_o bad_a fruit_n which_o you_o find_v grow_v of_o our_o religion_n you_o begin_v at_o the_o year_n 1418_o with_o the_o stir_n in_o bohemia_n lay_v to_o our_o charge_n the_o murder_a of_o seven_o magistrate_n of_o prage_n by_o a_o certain_a monk_n and_o his_o companion_n &_o sundry_a other_o thing_n do_v by_o john_n zischa_n and_o his_o army_n in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o war_n there_o than_o you_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n also_o once_o again_o all_o the_o trouble_n of_o late_a in_o france_n prefer_v we_o for_o cruelty_n before_o the_o goathe_n that_o conquer_v rome_n and_o yet_o spare_v their_o temple_n and_o those_o that_o
to_o escape_v this_o &_o 1000_o more_o such_o contrariety_n betwixt_o your_o doctrine_n and_o the_o reveil_v will_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o subtle_a sophistry_n fond_a quiddity_n and_o distinction_n devise_v of_o your_o own_o head_n without_o all_o warrant_n and_o ground_n from_o thence_o which_o in_o matter_n and_o question_n of_o divinity_n be_v intolerable_a these_o and_o such_o like_a contrariety_n betwixt_o the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o pope_n and_o prelate_n and_o the_o truth_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v oft_o observe_v and_o tell_v they_o of_o and_o yet_o find_v they_o most_o obstinate_o to_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o have_v cause_v we_o rather_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o heretical_a doctrine_n to_o call_v they_o wolf_n they_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o negligence_n only_a heretic_n and_o for_o this_o same_o cause_n see_v all_o you_o be_v thus_o infect_v you_o wish_v we_o in_o vain_a to_o join_v some_o of_o the_o best_a of_o they_o with_o some_o of_o the_o best_a of_o we_o to_o reform_v thing_n amiss_o in_o both_o for_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o any_o good_a reformation_n at_o all_o where_o any_o such_o as_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v therein_o and_o see_v it_o be_v and_o have_v be_v so_o common_a a_o thing_n with_o we_o as_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a if_o you_o have_v read_v any_o of_o our_o book_n write_v against_o you_o to_o deny_v that_o you_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v preach_v unto_o you_o at_o the_o first_o yea_o seeing_z you_o all_o know_v that_o we_o count_v your_o synagogue_n antichristian_a for_o her_o manifold_a apostasy_n from_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v first_o unto_o the_o roman_n i_o wonder_v with_o what_o face_n or_o forehead_n you_o can_v write_v as_o you_o do_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o we_o ourselves_o can_v deny_v if_o we_o will_v confess_v the_o truth_n but_o that_o you_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v first_o preach_v unto_o you_o and_o therefore_o not_o only_o for_o your_o lewdness_n of_o life_n and_o negligent_a shepherd_n &_o bad_a sheep_n do_v your_o kingdom_n decay_n as_o you_o will_v insinuate_v but_o especial_o for_o this_o also_o that_o in_o the_o point_v we_o strive_v with_o you_o about_o you_o be_v quite_o go_v from_o the_o ancient_a sound_a catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n first_o teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o receive_v and_o continue_v many_o year_n in_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n &_o other_o the_o only_a way_n therefore_o for_o you_o be_v to_o prevent_v a_o utter_a &_o universal_a subversion_n and_o confusion_n first_o to_o return_v again_o from_o your_o new_a antichristian_a religion_n &_o doctrine_n to_o the_o true_a ancient_a &_o catholic_a faith_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o to_o amend_v your_o manner_n according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o same_o the_o xxxvii_o chapter_n all_o our_o ancient_a doctor_n will_n doctor_n this_o be_v but_o a_o arrogant_a false_a brag_n as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v come_v to_o particular_n when_o you_o will_n as_o well_o of_o the_o greek_a as_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o the_o christian_n of_o all_o the_o four_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v in_o those_o day_n mean_v day_n christian_n have_v always_o vow_v and_o promise_v lawful_a thing_n only_o to_o god_n &_o they_o have_v have_v a_o care_n to_o make_v those_o vow_n and_o promise_n discreet_o &_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o see_v he_o have_v make_v possible_a unto_o they_o which_o thing_n be_v neglect_v in_o the_o vow_n that_o i_o fear_v you_o most_o mean_v have_v make_v their_o promise_n and_o vow_n unto_o god_n even_o as_o we_o do_v now_o and_o at_o their_o baptism_n they_o do_v use_v even_o those_o very_a ceremony_n that_o we_o do_v with_o the_o selfsame_o exorcism_n adjuration_n and_o annoynting_n that_o we_o do_v use_v in_o our_o catholic_a church_n which_o you_o call_v papistical_a and_o to_o prove_v this_o true_a we_o will_v bring_v the_o say_v ancient_a doctor_n as_o witness_n if_o it_o please_v you_o to_o read_v the_o chapter_n the_o never_o man_n have_v worse_a hap_n in_o quote_v so_o few_o place_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o answer_n to_o this_o chapter_n place_n that_o we_o will_v quote_v tertullian_n who_o live_v very_o near_o the_o apostle_n time_n do_v make_v mention_n in_o his_o book_n that_o he_o entitle_v de_fw-fr resurrectione_n carnis_fw-la of_o the_o anoint_v use_v at_o the_o baptism_n and_o of_o the_o renounce_v the_o devil_n &_o all_o his_o pomp_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr coronâ_fw-la militis_fw-la he_o do_v speak_v of_o the_o three_o dip_v under_o the_o water_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n s._n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n who_o be_v above_o 1300._o year_n ago_o do_v write_v in_o the_o second_o volume_n of_o his_o epistle_n epist_n 12._o how_o they_o do_v use_v in_o his_o time_n to_o give_v the_o holy_a chrism_n unto_o the_o child_n that_o be_v baptize_v origen_n in_o his_o twelve_o homily_n and_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n do_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o renounce_n of_o the_o devil_n at_o one_o baptism_n &_o of_o the_o make_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o child_n face_n when_o they_o be_v christen_v s._n john_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 12._o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n cap._n 4._o and_o in_o his_o first_o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n he_o do_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o say_v renunciation_n make_v from_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n read_v i_o pray_v if_o it_o be_v your_o pleasure_n s._n aug._n in_o psal_n 31._o aug._n li_n 15._o contra_fw-la julia._n pelag._n li._n 1._o ca._n 2._o item_n de_fw-fr nuptiis_fw-la &_o concupiscentia_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 20._o in_o joannem_fw-la tract_n 33._o in_o canonicam_fw-la joannis_n tract_n 3._o &_o tractat_fw-la 6._o et_fw-fr de_fw-fr eccle_n dogmat_fw-la cap._n 31._o de_fw-fr simbolo_fw-it lib._n 1._o cap._n 7._o &_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 11._o et_fw-la libro_fw-la de_fw-fr his_o qui_fw-la initiantur_fw-la sacris_fw-la cap._n 1._o basilius_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it cap._n 15._o &_o 27._o arnobius_n in_o psalm_n 75._o all_o these_o doctor_n which_o be_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o if_o you_o read_v in_o they_o the_o place_n that_o here_o i_o have_v quote_v you_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o do_v use_v at_o the_o baptism_n of_o their_o child_n those_o very_a ceremony_n that_o we_o do_v now_o use_v and_o that_o you_o do_v so_o mislike_v and_o as_o for_o confession_n before_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n have_v authority_n to_o bind_v and_o forgive_v sin_n saint_n cyprian_n in_o his_o five_o sermon_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la origen_n upon_o the_o thirty_o and_o seven_o psalm_n and_o in_o levit._n hom._n 2._o saint_n augustine_n libro_fw-la 2._o the_o visitatione_n infirmorum_fw-la cap._n 4._o saint_n cyril_n libro_fw-la 12._o in_fw-la johannem_fw-la cap._n 56._o saint_n hierom_n in_o ecclesiast_fw-la cap._n 10._o all_o these_o doctor_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n in_o these_o place_n do_v confirm_v auricular_a confession_n and_o as_o for_o pray_v unto_o the_o saint_n in_o paradise_n to_o help_v we_o with_o their_o prayer_n read_v origen_n in_o his_o three_o homily_n upon_o the_o canticle_n and_o in_o his_o 2._o book_n upon_o job_n &_o his_o eight_o book_n in_o eccl._n read_v chrysostom_n in_o his_o eight_o homily_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n the_o four_o chapter_n and_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o twenty_o book_n against_o faustus_n the_o one_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n and_o saint_n hierom_n against_o vigilantius_n all_o these_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o pray_n unto_o the_o saint_n and_o for_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a read_v tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monogonia_n and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_fw-la militis_fw-la and_o saint_n cyprian_n ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la furnensem_fw-la and_o in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o epistle_n and_o origen_n in_o hieremiam_fw-la homil._n 12._o item_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la rom._n libro_fw-la 8._o cap._n 11._o read_v chrysostome_n in_o his_o third_o homily_n upon_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o philippian_n and_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la gen_fw-la against_o the_o manichee_n cap._n 20._o &_o in_o the_o encheridion_n ad_fw-la laurent_n cap._n 110._o item_n libro_fw-la de_fw-la cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la agenda_fw-la all_o these_o doctor_n who_o work_n have_v continue_v these_o 1200._o year_n do_v teach_v we_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o now_o we_o do_v observe_v the_o which_o
they_o leave_v in_o writtng_a by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o confute_v such_o heretic_n as_o you_o be_v the_o xxxvii_o chapter_n at_o last_o it_o seem_v by_o your_o pain_n take_v in_o this_o chapter_n you_o be_v think_v yourself_o that_o forasmuch_o as_o hitherto_o only_o in_o bare_a and_o naked_a word_n you_o have_v vaunt_a and_o brag_v your_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o ancient_a religion_n that_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o you_o even_o for_o shame_n before_o you_o make_v a_o full_a end_n of_o your_o book_n to_o yield_v we_o some_o reason_n and_o ground_n or_o at_o least_o some_o show_n &_o colour_n of_o your_o so_o lewd_a and_o bold_a boast_n and_o therefore_o here_o now_o at_o last_o to_o that_o end_n you_o have_v muster_v the_o bare_a name_n of_o a_o few_o ancient_a father_n very_o provident_o leave_v your_o reader_n to_o the_o examine_n of_o your_o quotation_n among_o who_o not_o one_o of_o a_o hundred_o you_o know_v either_o for_o lack_v of_o skill_n or_o will_n leisure_n or_o book_n can_v and_o will_v turn_v to_o the_o place_n in_o the_o author_n themselves_o you_o think_v belike_o your_o credit_n to_o be_v such_o that_o they_o must_v needs_o believe_v that_o you_o cite_v they_o true_o and_o faithful_o and_o that_o because_o you_o so_o roundly_o have_v huddle_v they_o together_o that_o therefore_o also_o out_o of_o all_o question_n they_o speak_v and_o wroteful_o for_o you_o in_o the_o point_v you_o allege_v they_o for_o what_o small_a cause_n there_o be_v either_o for_o you_o to_o look_v thus_o to_o be_v trust_v or_o for_o any_o to_o yield_v you_o such_o credit_n herein_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o examine_n of_o your_o quotation_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n what_o mean_v you_o by_o this_o thus_o only_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o to_o countenance_v these_o 4_o points_z your_o ceremony_n in_o baptism_n confession_n before_o the_o sacrament_n prayer_n to_o the_o saint_n depart_v and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v these_o the_o great_a matter_n of_o your_o religion_n in_o question_n or_o do_v it_o especial_o depend_v upon_o these_o 4_o and_o the_o countenance_v of_o these_o or_o be_v your_o provision_n ready_a for_o no_o more_o that_o but_o once_o in_o all_o your_o book_n you_o seem_v to_o set_v down_o the_o authority_n whereupon_o you_o ground_n your_o religion_n you_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o go_v no_o further_o then_o to_o these_o 4_o point_n indeed_o in_o your_o next_o chapter_n you_o excuse_v yourself_o and_o say_v that_o you_o will_v have_v go_v likewise_o on_o to_o confirm_v the_o rest_n but_o for_o be_v tedious_a to_o your_o reader_n true_o he_o be_v much_o behold_v to_o you_o for_o your_o discreet_a kindness_n towards_o he_o that_o have_v not_o spare_v to_o be_v tedious_a unto_o he_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o book_n in_o trouble_v of_o he_o with_o such_o a_o number_n of_o proud_a brag_n of_o the_o antiquity_n and_o catholikenes_n of_o all_o your_o religion_n as_o you_o have_v and_o with_o many_o needle_n and_o frivolous_a long_a discourse_n beside_o and_o now_o when_o you_o come_v to_o the_o point_n indeed_o which_o of_o all_o other_o be_v most_o material_a and_o wherein_o both_o for_o his_o satisfaction_n and_o your_o own_o credit_n it_o stand_v you_o upon_o most_o to_o enlarge_v yourself_o than_o thus_o to_o shift_v he_o of_o with_o as_o good_a as_o nothing_o bear_v he_o yet_o in_o hand_n that_o but_o for_o his_o ease_n you_o both_o can_v and_o will_v have_v say_v enough_o this_o be_v a_o common_a trick_n among_o you_o thus_o to_o cozen_v and_o abuse_v your_o simple_a reader_n to_o weary_v they_o with_o thing_n needle_n and_o then_o to_o slip_v over_o with_o some_o such_o shift_n as_o this_o matter_n most_o needful_a well_o concern_v that_o which_o either_o you_o have_v say_v here_o for_o these_o 4_o points_z or_o that_o which_o after_o you_o pretend_v if_o you_o have_v listen_v you_o can_v have_v easy_o say_v for_o the_o rest_n this_o i_o will_v have_v the_o reader_n diligent_o to_o note_n and_o mark_n that_o but_o for_o two_o place_n vain_o allege_v to_o prove_v your_o confession_n that_o you_o neither_o have_v allege_v any_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n at_o all_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o these_o nor_o yet_o that_o you_o so_o much_o as_o say_v after_o you_o can_v or_o will_v for_o the_o rest_n which_o argue_v that_o even_a in_o your_o own_o conscience_n the_o best_a ground_n and_o countenance_n that_o your_o popish_a religion_n have_v either_o in_o these_o point_n or_o in_o the_o rest_n be_v but_o from_o earth_n and_o not_o from_o heaven_n from_o man_n and_o not_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o if_o you_o have_v be_v able_a with_o any_o good_a colour_n to_o have_v countenance_v either_o these_o point_n or_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n out_o of_o god_n own_o book_n and_o write_v word_n the_o reader_n may_v think_v that_o neither_o your_o zeal_n to_o your_o religion_n nor_o yet_o your_o boast_a spirit_n which_o hitherto_o have_v show_v itself_o overflow_a in_o you_o either_o will_v or_o can_v have_v suffer_v you_o thus_o much_o to_o the_o prejudice_n your_o whole_a cause_n clean_o to_o have_v forget_v so_o much_o as_o once_o to_o go_v about_o it_o but_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n see_v it_o be_v confess_v by_o your_o better_n not_o only_o that_o this_o but_o the_o most_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n of_o your_o religion_n which_o we_o strive_v with_o you_o for_o be_v ground_v but_o upon_o tradition_n as_o i_o have_v show_v out_o of_o soto_n against_o brentius_n canisius_n five_o chapter_n of_o his_o catechism_n and_o lyndans_fw-la 100_o chapter_n of_o the_o five_o book_n of_o his_o panoply_n before_o you_o be_v the_o honest_a man_n and_z the_o more_z a_o great_a deal_n to_o be_v like_v for_o your_o thus_o secret_o confess_v the_o same_o with_o they_o now_o yet_o by_o this_o the_o reader_n may_v plain_o understand_v what_o have_v indeed_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o in_o all_o your_o book_n hitherto_o you_o have_v labour_v so_o much_o as_o you_o have_v to_o grace_v and_o countenance_n tradition_n and_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o withal_o have_v spend_v so_o much_o time_n in_o diswade_v the_o appeal_n to_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o end_n of_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o us._n you_o be_v wise_a enough_o it_o seem_v to_o see_v where_o your_o strength_n lay_v and_o from_o whence_o will_v rise_v your_o bane_n and_o therefore_o who_o can_v blame_v you_o for_o lean_v as_o you_o do_v altogether_o to_o the_o one_o and_o shun_v the_o other_o but_o then_o in_o reason_n yet_o you_o shall_v call_v your_o religion_n no_o more_o divinity_n but_o humanity_n no_o more_o theology_n but_o patrologie_n and_o plain_o confess_v indeed_o from_o whence_o you_o have_v all_o your_o fig_n leave_v rag_n and_o clout_n to_o cover_v your_o shame_n and_o nakedness_n true_o these_o you_o have_v whatsoever_o in_o this_o respect_n you_o pretend_v not_o from_o the_o right_n and_o sound_a apostolic_a tradition_n which_o always_o be_v either_o express_v in_o scripture_n or_o at_o least_o consonant_a unto_o it_o nor_o from_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n right_o understand_v and_o when_o they_o teach_v as_o it_o be_v of_o themselves_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v their_o duty_n with_o sound_a warrant_n from_o the_o scripture_n as_o i_o have_v sundry_a time_n show_v already_o but_o only_a from_o forge_a or_o corrupt_a tradition_n and_o from_o the_o father_n either_o misunderstand_v or_o err_v as_o man_n so_o that_o unwriten_a verity_n or_o rather_o forgery_n sentence_n of_o father_n mistake_v or_o their_o very_a error_n whereof_o they_o will_v have_v be_v ashamed_a if_o they_o have_v have_v the_o mean_n to_o help_v they_o to_o see_v they_o that_o you_o have_v be_v the_o ground_n pillar_n and_o beauty_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n and_o this_o we_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o justify_v against_o you_o before_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o sound_n and_o invincible_a proof_n out_o of_o the_o un_fw-fr doubt_a word_n of_o god_n interpret_v according_o to_o the_o same_o rule_n of_o interpret_n it_o that_o the_o holy_a and_o ancient_a father_n themselves_o have_v follow_v in_o confute_v all_o heretic_n in_o their_o time_n by_o and_o which_o they_o have_v likewise_o commend_v to_o other_o always_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o out_o of_o the_o undoubted_a writing_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o best_a father_n themselves_o we_o be_v therefore_o very_o well_o content_a to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o church_n and_o religion_n which_o we_o be_v sure_o we_o be_v able_a thus_o to_o justify_v and_o we_o envy_v not_o you_o but_o rather_o hearty_o lament_v and_o pity_v you_o that_o you_o have_v no_o better_a ground_n than_o it_o have_v but_o to_o
be_v so_o full_a &_o fast_o of_o your_o side_n therein_o as_o you_o pretend_v i_o will_v vouchsafe_v so_o much_o further_a pain_n as_o particular_o to_o examine_v all_o your_o quotation_n out_o of_o they_o the_o first_o man_n you_o name_n be_v tertullian_n and_o in_o he_o you_o send_v we_o to_o two_o place_n for_o your_o anoint_v and_o abrenuntiation_n to_o his_o book_n the_o resurrectione_n carnis_fw-la and_o for_o thrice_o dip_v to_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr coronâ_fw-la militis_fw-la wherein_o it_o seem_v a_o little_a you_o mistake_v your_o note_n for_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o abrenuntiation_n that_o i_o can_v find_v in_o the_o former_a place_n in_o the_o late_a indeed_o there_o be_v but_o you_o quote_v the_o former_a for_o it_o &_o not_o the_o late_a at_o all_o whereby_o any_o man_n may_v see_v you_o take_v your_o quotation_n upon_o trust_n and_o never_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o turn_v to_o the_o place_n in_o the_o author_n themselves_o and_o that_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o that_o which_o you_o shall_v have_v father_v upon_o the_o late_a place_n through_o ignorance_n you_o have_v attribute_v to_o the_o former_a anoint_v i_o find_v mention_v in_o the_o former_a place_n i_o grant_v but_o neither_o the_o matter_n nor_o form_n of_o your_o anoint_v can_v i_o either_o find_v there_o or_o in_o any_o other_o place_n quote_v by_o you_o for_o it_o and_o in_o the_o other_o i_o confess_v he_o mention_v thrice_o dip_v but_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v that_o to_o justify_v your_o ceremony_n or_o manner_n of_o baptise_v see_v as_o i_o have_v note_v before_o out_o of_o your_o tridentine_a cathechism_n in_o this_o point_n you_o be_v so_o indifferent_a whither_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o dip_v pour_v or_o sprinkle_v &_o never_o once_o there_o prescribe_v this_o fashion_n of_o thrice_o dip_v as_o necessary_a your_o second_o author_n be_v cyprian_a who_o you_o say_v in_o the_o second_o volume_n of_o his_o epistle_n epist_n the_o twelve_o do_v write_v that_o the_o holy_a chrism_n be_v give_v unto_o child_n that_o be_v baptize_v wherein_o your_o note_n gatherer_n abuse_v you_o for_o doubtless_o in_o that_o epistle_n there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n either_o of_o chrism_n or_o any_o other_o ceremony_n about_o baptism_n indeed_o in_o the_o 12_o epistle_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o epistle_n he_o speak_v of_o anoint_v the_o baptize_v with_o oil_n but_o holy_a chrism_n he_o call_v it_o not_o but_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n both_o tertullian_n and_o he_o have_v not_o only_o in_o their_o work_n sundry_a time_n mention_v chrism_n and_o anoint_v of_o the_o baptize_v but_o they_o go_v too_o far_o both_o in_o urge_v the_o necessity_n thereof_o and_o in_o attribute_v unto_o it_o such_o divine_a grace_n as_o they_o do_v insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n of_o the_o learned_a thought_n that_o therein_o they_o be_v both_o the_o scholar_n of_o montanus_n but_o certain_a it_o be_v of_o whosoever_o they_o learn_v thus_o to_o urge_v this_o ceremony_n to_o the_o obscure_n &_o preiudice_v of_o the_o use_n and_o effect_n of_o baptism_n as_o too_o gross_o they_o do_v in_o tie_v rather_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o sanctify_v and_o regenerate_v to_o it_o them_z to_z baptism_n they_o never_o learn_v it_o other_o of_o christ_n nor_o of_o any_o sound_a christian_a nor_o may_v any_o christian_a more_o think_v himself_o bind_v to_o urge_v it_o and_o use_v it_o as_o they_o do_v because_o they_o do_v so_o than_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o be_v a_o montanist_n because_o tertullian_n be_v so_o or_o to_o hold_v rebaptisation_n of_o they_o that_o before_o be_v baptize_v of_o heretic_n because_o cyprian_n do_v so_o your_o next_o man_n be_v origen_n to_o who_o 12._o homily_n without_o any_o further_a addition_n and_o to_o diverse_a other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n without_o name_v unto_o we_o any_o of_o these_o place_n you_o send_v we_o for_o abrenuntiation_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o baptise_a his_o forehead_n wherein_o it_o be_v your_o hap_n to_o show_v as_o great_a negligence_n and_o ignorance_n as_o may_v be_v for_o origen_n write_v many_o time_n 12._o homily_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o his_o work_n whereas_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o your_o kind_n of_o quote_v of_o he_o that_o you_o think_v he_o have_v do_v so_o but_o once_o and_o yet_o in_o none_o of_o these_o 12._o homily_n that_o he_o write_v find_v i_o these_o two_o ceremony_n mention_v and_o as_o for_o the_o diverse_a other_o place_n in_o his_o work_n that_o you_o speak_v of_o when_o you_o shall_v vouchsafe_v to_o name_v they_o your_o answer_n will_v be_v as_o easy_o make_v next_o be_v chrysostome_n of_o who_o you_o allege_v two_o place_n his_o 12._o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n cap._n 4._o and_o his_o first_o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o both_o these_o only_a for_o renuntiation_n in_o the_o first_o whereof_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n make_v in_o the_o forehead_n but_o not_o express_o in_o baptism_n and_o in_o the_o other_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o renuntiation_n indeed_o but_o so_o there_o be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o the_o former_a whereby_o again_o one_o may_v see_v how_o you_o never_o turn_v to_o these_o place_n and_o read_v they_o yourself_o and_o beside_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o either_o through_o ignorance_n or_o negligence_n or_o both_o you_o father_n that_o upon_o your_o former_a note_a place_n which_o you_o shall_v attribute_v to_o the_o late_a as_o here_o that_o upon_o origen_n which_o you_o shall_v have_v leave_v to_o chrysostom_n and_o so_o show_v your_o error_n in_o both_o but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o if_o you_o have_v not_o be_v at_o all_o thus_o oversee_v against_o we_o or_o for_o you_o more_o then_o for_o we_o see_v both_o these_o ceremony_n or_o rite_n be_v retain_v and_o use_v among_o we_o in_o far_o better_a manner_n then_o with_o you_o now_o follow_v augustine_n out_o of_o who_o you_o quote_v we_o in_o psalm_n 31._o aug._n lib._n 15._o contra_fw-la julianum_fw-la pelagianum_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o item_n de_fw-fr nuptiis_fw-la &_o concupiscentiâ_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 20._o in_o johannem_fw-la tract_n 33._o in_o canonicam_fw-la johannis_n tract_n 3._o &_o troth_n 6._o &_o de_fw-la ecclesiast_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la cap._n 31._o de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 7._o &_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 11._o &_o libro_fw-la de_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la initiantur_fw-la sacris_fw-la that_o be_v eleven_o place_n in_o all_o wherein_o yet_o you_o have_v more_o gross_o shame_v yourself_o then_o in_o the_o former_a for_o first_o of_o all_o in_o these_o eleven_o place_n there_o be_v but_o three_o wherein_o i_o find_v any_o mention_n of_o any_o of_o your_o ceremony_n and_o that_o be_v in_o his_o first_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n against_o julian_n in_o his_o first_o book_n and_o twenty_o chapter_n de_fw-fr nuptiis_fw-la &_o concupiscentiâ_fw-la and_o in_o his_o thirty_o one_o chapter_n de_fw-fr ecclesiasticis_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la and_o lay_v all_o these_o three_o together_o and_o there_o be_v mention_v only_o three_o that_o be_v exorcism_n exufflation_n and_o abrenuntiation_n whereof_o we_o use_v one_o aswell_o as_o you_o namely_o abrenuntiation_n and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o two_o thereof_o you_o yourselves_o have_v but_o the_o first_o and_o therefore_o why_o may_v not_o we_o aswell_o give_v over_o both_o the_o other_o as_o you_o have_v do_v the_o first_o of_o they_o second_o you_o send_v we_o indefinite_o to_o his_o fifteen_o book_n as_o you_o do_v before_o to_o origens_n twelve_o homily_n not_o tell_v we_o what_o 15._o book_n you_o mean_v think_v belike_o that_o he_o have_v never_o write_v but_o once_o 15._o book_n of_o one_o title_n whereas_o every_o one_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o his_o work_n know_v the_o contrary_n if_o you_o say_v you_o mean_v his_o 15_o book_n against_o julian_n then_o therein_o you_o show_v as_o much_o ignorance_n for_o against_o he_o he_o write_v but_o 6._o three_o you_o father_n upon_o aug._n two_o book_n de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la &_o one_o the_o he_o qui_fw-la initiantur_fw-la sacris_fw-la whereas_o indeed_o in_o all_o augustine_n tome_n there_o be_v no_o book_n that_o simple_o &_o bare_o bear_v those_o title_n to_o be_v find_v he_o write_v one_o book_n de_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la &_o 4_o de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la ad_fw-la cathecumenos_fw-gr but_o in_o no_o 7_o nor_o 11_o chapter_n of_o any_o of_o these_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n for_o your_o purpose_n but_o none_o at_o all_o he_o have_v write_v that_o in_o title_n come_v any_o thing_n near_o the_o other_o you_o father_n upon_o he_o but_o i_o imagine_v that_o if_o your_o eyesight_n or_o memory_n have_v not_o fail_v you_o you_o shall_v
and_o will_v have_v quote_v these_o not_o in_o his_o name_n but_o in_o ambroses_n but_o yet_o than_o you_o take_v your_o mark_n amiss_o also_o for_o he_o have_v no_o book_n neither_o that_o simple_o carry_v these_o title_n indeed_o he_o have_v write_v five_o the_o fide_fw-la ad_fw-la gratianum_fw-la and_o one_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la orthodoxâ_fw-la contra_fw-la arrianos_fw-la and_o a_o book_n he_o have_v write_v the_o his_o qui_fw-la initiantur_fw-la mysteriis_fw-la and_o five_o de_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la but_o in_o no_o seven_o nor_o eleven_o chapter_n of_o any_o of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la or_o symbolo_fw-la have_v he_o any_o thing_n to_o serve_v your_o turn_n never_o man_n therefore_o be_v so_o abuse_v as_o you_o master_n albine_n be_v i_o think_v in_o take_v so_o few_o quotation_n of_o credit_n i_o will_v therefore_o henceforth_o advise_v you_o unless_o you_o be_v even_o resolve_v utter_o to_o lose_v your_o credit_n trust_v no_o more_o thus_o either_o other_o man_n eye_n or_o finger_n well_o basil_n and_o arnobius_n be_v yet_o behind_o let_v we_o see_v if_o you_o hit_v any_o rightly_a of_o your_o place_n out_o of_o they_o you_o cite_v basils_n 15_o and_o 75_o chapter_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it and_o arnobius_n upon_o the_o 27_o psalm_n neither_o of_o which_o you_o have_v right_o quote_v for_o there_o be_v but_o 30_o chapter_n in_o all_o basils_n book_n de_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la as_o erasmus_n have_v translate_v he_o &_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v publish_v and_o arnobius_n upon_o the_o twenty_o seven_o psalm_n have_v not_o at_o all_o mention_v any_o ceremony_n about_o baptism_n basil_n in_o his_o fifteen_o and_o twenty_o seven_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n and_o arnobius_n upon_o the_o seventy_o five_o psalm_n make_v mention_n of_o abrenuntiation_n &_o of_o some_o other_o ceremony_n before_o mention_v by_o the_o other_o father_n but_o yet_o neither_o these_o nor_o all_o the_o other_o lay_v together_o that_o you_o have_v name_v either_o in_o the_o place_n mention_v by_o you_o nor_o any_o where_o else_o mention_v all_o the_o ceremony_n which_o you_o use_v by_o far_o though_o you_o will_v by_o your_o loud_a brag_a make_v your_o reader_n believe_v they_o do_v thus_o you_o see_v unless_o you_o have_v be_v dispose_v utter_o for_o ever_o to_o shame_v yourself_o you_o can_v not_o in_o so_o few_o quotation_n especial_o not_o set_v on_o your_o margin_n but_o in_o your_o line_n as_o they_o be_v the_o better_a to_o prevent_v wrong_a apply_v of_o they_o have_v be_v take_v with_o thus_o many_o gross_a oversighte_n may_v not_o any_o man_n worthy_o think_v you_o hereby_o judge_v that_o howsoever_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n be_v familiar_a with_o you_o that_o yet_o you_o be_v a_o very_a stranger_n in_o their_o work_n indeed_o of_o twenty_o place_n you_o have_v allege_v aright_o and_o to_o the_o purpose_n scarce_o five_o and_o of_o seven_o father_n belike_o because_o you_o will_v not_o deal_v partial_o with_o they_o your_o hap_n have_v be_v one_o way_n or_o other_o to_o err_v in_o quote_v of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o sure_o you_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v trust_v upon_o your_o bare_a word_n without_o any_o further_a examination_n of_o your_o quotation_n a_o other_o time_n you_o have_v deal_v so_o faithful_o and_o uprightlie_o in_o these_o and_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n withal_o as_o though_o you_o have_v most_o right_o quote_v and_o that_o they_o most_o pregnantlie_o have_v justify_v all_o your_o ceremony_n as_o you_o use_v they_o you_o confident_o tell_v your_o reader_n that_o if_o he_o will_v read_v these_o place_n he_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o do_v use_v the_o very_a ceremony_n that_o you_o do_v use_v and_o we_o so_o much_o myslike_v thus_o yet_o you_o can_v set_v a_o good_a face_n on_o the_o matter_n though_o you_o can_v do_v little_a else_o but_o in_o good_a earnest_n be_v it_o your_o meaning_n by_o these_o place_n to_o make_v man_n before_o that_o none_o be_v to_o be_v account_v right_o baptize_v unless_o unto_o he_o all_o these_o your_o ceremony_n which_o you_o talk_v of_o be_v use_v what_o say_v you_o then_o to_o christ_n baptism_n and_o the_o multitude_n baptize_v by_o john_n in_o jordan_z and_z after_z by_o the_o apostle_n sometime_o in_o one_o day_n in_o water_n that_o be_v next_o to_o hand_n sure_o i_o be_o that_o none_o of_o your_o ceremony_n that_o you_o strive_v for_o here_o so_o much_o which_o we_o mislike_v be_v use_v then_o to_o any_o of_o they_o and_o yet_o i_o be_o sure_a never_o be_v any_o with_o these_o ceremony_n of_o you_o better_o baptize_v than_o these_o be_v nay_o to_o press_v you_o a_o little_a further_o if_o these_o ceremony_n be_v so_o necessary_a as_o you_o pretend_v how_o chance_v it_o that_o above_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n that_o be_v long_o after_o any_o of_o the_o father_n you_o have_v name_v to_o countenance_v they_o withal_o we_o read_v in_o bedaes_n story_n so_o often_o mention_v as_o we_o do_v of_o so_o great_a multitude_n here_o in_o england_n by_o famous_a bishop_n baptize_v in_o one_o day_n in_o common_a river_n it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o they_o shall_v baptise_v so_o many_o in_o so_o short_a time_n as_o that_o story_n show_v they_o do_v and_o yet_o use_v to_o every_o one_o all_o the_o solemnity_n of_o ceremony_n that_o you_o here_o thus_o plead_v for_o it_o be_v clear_v they_o by_o that_o practice_n that_o for_o all_o this_o and_o whatsoever_o else_o any_o where_n either_o these_o or_o any_o other_o doctor_n before_o that_o time_n have_v write_v hereof_o that_o then_o there_o be_v no_o such_o danger_n imagine_v to_o be_v in_o omit_v of_o these_o as_o your_o tridentine_a council_n now_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v there_o be_v but_o for_o a_o general_a answer_n to_o all_o that_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o side_n have_v or_o can_v allege_v out_o of_o any_o father_n either_o for_o the_o justify_n your_o kind_n of_o use_v these_o your_o ceremony_n or_o any_o of_o the_o other_o three_o point_n that_o follow_v in_o this_o chapter_n as_o long_o as_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o warrant_v your_o do_n and_o opinion_n therein_o by_o the_o scripture_n which_o we_o be_v sure_a you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o do_v by_o the_o father_n leave_n though_o they_o be_v as_o pregnant_a for_o you_o as_o you_o pretend_v which_o they_o be_v not_o neither_o &_o that_o by_o the_o direction_n and_o advice_n of_o the_o best_a of_o themselves_o we_o will_v &_o may_v choose_v for_o all_o their_o writing_n whither_o we_o will_v like_v any_o whit_n the_o better_a of_o they_o or_o no._n for_o hierom_n say_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o man_n seek_v out_o and_o invent_v at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n without_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o though_o they_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o sword_n of_o god_n cut_v of_o upon_o the_o first_o of_o aggei_n and_o origen_n in_o his_o first_o homily_n upon_o hierom_n confess_v that_o their_o judgement_n without_o witness_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o no_o credit_n and_o hierom_n again_o upon_o the_o 98._o psalm_n write_v that_o all_o which_o they_o speak_v they_o be_v to_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o upon_o the_o 23._o of_o mat._n he_o say_v plain_o that_o which_o have_v not_o authority_n from_o the_o scripture_n as_o easy_o be_v despise_v as_o approve_v and_o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 2._o to_o tim._n hom._n 9_o say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n either_o to_o learn_v or_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o we_o shall_v learn_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o all_o other_o authority_n hilary_n say_v in_o his_o 7._o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n that_o it_o be_v short_a dark_a &_o troublesome_a and_o as_o for_o augustine_n he_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n have_v most_o plain_o teach_v we_o this_o in_o his_o 19_o epistle_n to_o hierom_n and_o also_o in_o his_o 111._o epistle_n to_o fortunatian_n where_o he_o plain_o show_v that_o he_o give_v no_o further_a credit_n to_o any_o man_n writing_n than_o he_o find_v they_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o the_o baptismo_fw-la contra_fw-la donatistas_n li._n 2._o cap._n 3._o he_o refuse_v to_o be_v press_v either_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o cyprian_a or_o any_o other_o man_n or_o council_n further_o then_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n their_o judgement_n be_v approve_v and_o he_o teach_v paulina_n in_o his_o 112._o epistle_n not_o to_o follow_v his_o authority_n or_o to_o believe_v a_o thing_n because_o he_o have_v say_v it_o but_o to_o believe_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n we_o say_v therefore_o with_o he_o lib._n 1._o cap._n 22._o de_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la &_o remissione_n let_v we_o yield_v &_o consent_v unto_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o can_v neither_o deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v
abrogate_a that_o order_n and_o have_v thence_o forth_o leave_v every_o one_o when_o he_o communicate_v iudicio_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la suae_fw-la as_o zozomen_n there_o plain_o affirm_v he_o do_v neither_o before_o that_o can_v one_o confessor_n have_v serve_v for_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o that_o great_a and_o famous_a city_n where_o i_o read_v in_o justinians_n time_n there_o be_v sixty_o minister_n but_o this_o be_v the_o plain_a truth_n it_o be_v use_v and_o exhort_v unto_o as_o a_o good_a profitable_a order_n to_o be_v use_v so_o long_o and_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o see_v it_o needful_a and_o a_o furtherance_n to_o virtue_n and_o godliness_n and_o this_o be_v certain_a the_o father_n by_o albine_n here_o cite_v for_o auricular_a confession_n speak_v only_o either_o for_o public_a confession_n of_o public_o know_v notorious_a sin_n before_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o else_o only_o to_o persuade_v man_n when_o they_o feel_v themselves_o sick_a of_o sin_n and_o grieve_v with_o the_o burden_n thereof_o in_o conscience_n then_o to_o confess_v such_o their_o sin_n unto_o some_o godly_a discreet_a minister_n that_o have_v both_o skill_n and_o will_n to_o comfort_v their_o distress_a soul_n in_o which_o case_n and_o manner_n we_o allow_v and_o like_v aswell_o as_o they_o that_o man_n shall_v so_o do_v and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n much_o use_v and_o practise_v among_o us._n there_o be_v last_o a_o confession_n of_o sin_n of_o one_o brother_n or_o christian_n to_o a_o other_o who_o he_o have_v offend_v to_o breed_v reconciliation_n again_o betwixt_o the_o party_n teach_v by_o christ_n matthew_n the_o five_o and_o eighteen_o chapter_n luke_n the_o seventeenth_o and_o james_n the_o five_o allow_v both_o by_o scripture_n and_o father_n with_o one_o consent_n and_o this_o before_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o at_o all_o other_o time_n we_o teach_v and_o use_v as_o very_o necessary_a other_o confession_n than_o these_o we_o neither_o find_v teach_v nor_o practise_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n nor_o new_a nor_o yet_o urge_v by_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n you_o name_n either_o in_o the_o place_n by_o you_o remember_v or_o else_o where_o and_o therefore_o you_o have_v but_o be_v abuse_v and_o now_o seek_v by_o the_o sound_n of_o their_o name_n to_o abuse_v other_o while_o you_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v because_o they_o speak_v of_o some_o of_o these_o kind_n of_o confess_v of_o sin_n or_o other_o in_o these_o place_n that_o therefore_o they_o speak_v for_o your_o lenten_a shrift_n or_o auricular_a confession_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o think_v of_o by_o any_o of_o they_o nor_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o late_a of_o they_o by_o any_o other_o writer_n of_o credit_n the_o question_n indeed_o betwixt_o you_o and_o we_o then_o in_o this_o point_n be_v not_o whither_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v confess_v at_o all_o before_o we_o receive_v for_o you_o see_v most_o willing_o we_o confess_v sundry_a way_n they_o may_v and_o aught_o but_o this_o be_v it_o whither_o such_o particular_a and_o special_a confession_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o circumstance_n thereof_o that_o we_o can_v possible_o by_o due_a premeditation_n have_v thereof_o remember_v in_o secret_a to_o a_o priest_n be_v by_o god_n ordinance_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o all_o of_o both_o sex_n once_o in_o the_o year_n at_o the_o least_o or_o no._n we_o hold_v the_o negative_a and_o you_o the_o affirmative_a that_o sin_n have_v be_v and_o may_v again_o be_v in_o secret_a confess_v to_o such_o as_o be_v faithful_a minister_n and_o that_o the_o so_o do_v some_o time_n be_v very_o good_a and_o profitable_a we_o deny_v not_o you_o see_v but_o either_o to_o imagine_v such_o a_o necessity_n as_o you_o teach_v thereof_o or_o to_o bind_v to_o such_o a_o full_a enumeration_n of_o all_o at_o any_o time_n be_v the_o thing_n we_o say_v which_o you_o can_v never_o prove_v either_o by_o scripture_n or_o father_n for_o your_o own_o gratian_n bring_v sundry_a authority_n before_o that_o lateran_n council_n when_o first_o this_o your_o opinion_n of_o the_o absolute_a necessity_n thereof_o to_o salvation_n be_v agree_v upon_o as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o he_o de_fw-la paenitentiâ_fw-la distinct_a 1._o some_o for_o the_o necessity_n and_o some_o to_o the_o contrary_a thereof_o and_o in_o the_o end_n cap._n quamuis_fw-la conclude_v thus_o to_o which_o of_o these_o opinion_n one_o shall_v rather_o stick_v i_o leave_v to_o the_o reader_n judgement_n for_o both_o part_n say_v he_o have_v astipulatores_fw-la sapientes_fw-la &_o religiosos_fw-la viros_fw-la that_o be_v favourer_n man_n that_o be_v both_o wise_a and_o religious_a and_o panormitan_n a_o great_a doctor_n of_o you_o dispute_v the_o matter_n that_o your_o confession_n be_v not_o by_o god_n law_n but_o by_o man_n and_o chrysostome_n that_o succeed_v nectarius_n so_o like_v his_o predecessor_n act_v of_o abrogate_a the_o order_n of_o secret_a confession_n to_o the_o confessor_n that_o he_o in_o his_o four_o sermon_n of_o lazarus_n say_v cave_n homini_fw-la dixeris_fw-la peccata_fw-la ne_fw-la tibi_fw-la opprobret_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v take_v heed_n that_o thou_o tell_v not_o thy_o sin_n to_o man_n lest_o he_o upbray_v thou_o with_o they_o neither_o confess_v they_o to_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n that_o he_o may_v publish_v they_o but_o confess_v they_o to_o god_n the_o lord_n and_o the_o like_a he_o write_v hom_n 31_o upon_o the_o 12_o of_o the_o hebrews_n and_o upon_o the_o fifty_o psalm_n as_o he_o count_v and_o else_o where_o often_o in_o his_o work_n and_o as_o for_o your_o special_a and_o particular_a enumeration_n of_o all_o sin_n and_o their_o circumstance_n that_o possible_o can_v be_v remember_v beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la a_o friend_n otherwise_o of_o you_o in_o his_o note_n upon_o tertullians_n book_n of_o repentance_n report_v how_o that_o even_a for_o the_o vexation_n and_o torment_n of_o conscience_n that_o that_o bread_n one_o geilerius_n a_o carthusian_n monk_n write_v a_o book_n which_o he_o entitle_v de_fw-la morbo_fw-la confessionis_fw-la of_o the_o sickness_n of_o confession_n against_o the_o morosity_n &_o scrupulosity_n bring_v in_o by_o thomas_n and_o scotus_n and_o other_o schoolman_n of_o who_o mind_n for_o that_o point_n beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la show_v himself_o to_o be_v and_o howsoever_o a_o number_n of_o your_o priest_n by_o their_o fruit_n have_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o of_o all_o other_o they_o will_v be_v loath_a that_o young_a woman_n shall_v not_o come_v to_o auricular_a confession_n unto_o they_o yet_o i_o can_v tell_v you_o basil_n in_o his_o no_o question_n think_v it_o not_o very_o decent_a that_o such_o shall_v come_v alone_o but_o rather_o advise_v that_o the_o young_a by_o the_o grave_n elder_a woman_n shall_v make_v their_o state_n know_v that_o by_o they_o they_o may_v receive_v comfort_n or_o direction_n what_o to_o do_v as_o they_o shall_v need_v but_o yet_o because_o i_o will_v be_v loath_a to_o omit_v any_o thing_n either_o to_o cause_v you_o master_n albine_n to_o think_v that_o you_o have_v say_v or_o allege_v any_o thing_n of_o weight_n to_o justify_v this_o your_o kind_n of_o confession_n withal_o or_o to_o cause_v the_o reader_n to_o suspect_v that_o these_o father_n who_o name_n you_o have_v bring_v we_o for_o this_o purpose_n in_o these_o place_n say_v more_o direct_o for_o you_o than_o they_o do_v let_v we_o particular_o examine_v your_o quotation_n always_o remember_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n as_o it_o be_v in_o this_o point_n betwixt_o us._n your_o first_o man_n be_v cyprian_a in_o his_o five_o sermon_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la wherein_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o persuade_v they_o that_o have_v either_o grievous_o fall_v from_o christianity_n to_o idolatry_n or_o that_o have_v but_o a_o secret_a purpose_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o themselves_o so_o to_o do_v effectual_o to_o repent_v thereof_o in_o pursuit_n of_o which_o his_o purpose_n in_o the_o end_n he_o come_v to_o that_o which_o it_o seem_v you_o aim_n at_o to_o note_v it_o as_o a_o argument_n of_o great_a faith_n and_o better_a fear_n in_o such_o that_o will_v though_o they_o have_v but_o think_v so_o to_o fall_v yet_o sorrowful_o and_o playnelie_o confess_v the_o same_o before_o the_o lord_n priest_n and_o so_o make_v exoniologesin_n that_o be_v public_a confession_n of_o their_o conscience_n show_v forth_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o mind_n seek_v holesone_n physic_n though_o for_o their_o small_a wound_n in_o comparison_n and_o therefore_o a_o little_a after_o he_o there_o earnest_o exhort_v every_o such_o offender_n in_o purpose_n or_o performance_n to_o confess_v their_o fault_n therein_o while_o they_o be_v here_o while_o their_o confession_n and_o repentance_n may_v be_v acceptable_a with_o the_o lord_n which_o place_n serve_v
well_o to_o prove_v that_o then_o of_o such_o notorious_a fault_n there_o be_v use_v and_o look_v for_o public_a and_o sorrowful_a confession_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o enumeration_n of_o all_o sin_n remember_v in_o secret_a in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o priest_n sure_o i_o be_o in_o that_o sermon_n before_o he_o come_v to_o these_o word_n contrary_a to_o your_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n in_o this_o very_a point_n he_o teach_v that_o veniam_fw-la peccatis_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o ipsum_fw-la commissa_fw-la sunt_fw-la solus_fw-la potest_fw-la ille_fw-la largiri_fw-la qui_fw-la peccata_fw-la nostra_fw-la portavit_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v he_o only_o can_v give_v we_o pardon_v for_o our_o sin_n that_o bear_v our_o sin_n &c._n &c._n add_v straight_o man_n can_v be_v great_a than_o god_n neither_o can_v he_o be_v a_o servant_n by_o his_o indulgence_n remit_v or_o forgive_v that_o which_o be_v grievous_o commit_v against_o god_n lest_o so_o to_o he_o that_o be_v fall_v this_o fault_n come_v unto_o his_o other_o that_o he_o forget_v that_o it_o be_v say_v long_o ago_o hier._n 17._o curse_a be_v that_o man_n that_o have_v his_o trust_n in_o man_n and_o therefore_o both_o immediate_o and_o through_o that_o sermon_n he_o be_v earnest_a to_o move_v they_o that_o be_v fall_v to_o fly_v to_o god_n in_o prayer_n in_o weep_v and_o mourning_n now_o indeed_o both_o for_o their_o better_a direction_n to_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n effectual_o and_o for_o the_o further_a declaration_n and_o testification_n of_o their_o repentance_n to_o be_v unfeigned_a he_o will_v have_v confession_n of_o such_o their_o fall_n to_o be_v make_v with_o all_o sorrowfulnes_n before_o the_o lord_n priest_n let_v this_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o his_o only_a be_v receive_v and_o your_o auricular_a confession_n will_v come_v short_a home_o for_o if_o none_o but_o such_o that_o have_v so_o fall_v as_o he_o there_o speak_v of_o shall_v confess_v such_o their_o fall_n and_o that_o only_a to_o that_o end_n that_o he_o teach_v without_o all_o opinion_n when_o they_o have_v do_v that_o any_o can_v absolve_v they_o but_o god_n your_o confessor_n and_o ghostly_a father_n as_o you_o term_v they_o may_v be_v set_v a_o beg_n for_o any_o live_n they_o can_v get_v by_o hear_v of_o confession_n the_o next_o you_o allege_v be_v origen_n upon_o the_o 37._o psalm_n and_o in_o his_o 2._o hom._n upon_o leviticus_fw-la wherein_o indeed_o he_o counsel_v those_o that_o have_v fall_v into_o any_o grievous_a sin_n though_o secret_a yet_o to_o seek_v out_o some_o discreet_a and_o skilful_a physician_n to_o open_v their_o disease_n and_o distress_n of_o mind_n unto_o that_o according_a to_o his_o counsel_n and_o advise_v they_o may_v do_v either_o in_o public_o confess_v of_o they_o or_o otherwise_o in_o repent_v of_o they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o most_o that_o can_v be_v make_v of_o any_o thing_n fate_v by_o origen_n in_o these_o two_o place_n but_o this_o his_o counsel_n may_v be_v follow_v thorough_o and_o yet_o you_o come_v very_o short_a of_o prove_v the_o necessity_n by_o god_n law_n of_o your_o auricular_a confession_n or_o special_a and_o precise_a enumeration_n of_o all_o the_o sin_n and_o circumstance_n thereof_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o priest_n the_o physic_n that_o they_o fight_v at_o the_o priest_n hand_n in_o these_o case_n be_v direction_n how_o to_o repent_v and_o to_o recover_v comfort_n under_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o such_o comfortable_a doctrine_n and_o counsel_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v they_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o god_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o you_o seek_v for_o at_o their_o hand_n be_v absolution_n to_o be_v pronounce_v by_o they_o unto_o you_o for_o your_o so_o confess_v so_o that_o neither_o for_o matter_n to_o be_v confess_v nor_o for_o the_o end_n thereof_o have_v you_o any_o warrant_n and_o countenance_n from_o they_o after_o origen_n augustine_n 2._o book_n the_o visitatione_n infirmorum_fw-la be_v produce_v in_o which_o book_n the_o author_n threaten_v damnation_n to_o such_o as_o have_v sin_v shun_v the_o judgement_n of_o man_n &_o yet_o take_v not_o occasion_n by_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n judgement_n which_o they_o can_v not_o shun_v to_o repent_v and_o amend_v but_o if_o they_o judge_v and_o amend_v themselves_o he_o do_v not_o so_o allen_n will_v not_o stand_v to_o it_o that_o those_o book_n be_v augustine_n write_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o erasmus_n censure_v thereof_o be_v that_o it_o be_v sermo_fw-la locutulei_fw-la nec_fw-la docti_fw-la nec_fw-la diserti_fw-la that_o be_v it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o some_o prattler_n neither_o learned_a nor_o eloquent_a yea_o he_o add_v what_o forehead_n or_o mind_n have_v they_o that_o thrust_v upon_o we_o such_o writing_n under_o the_o name_n of_o augustine_n and_o the_o divine_n of_o louvain_n say_v flat_o it_o be_v none_o of_o he_o &_o therefore_o with_o far_o more_o credit_n to_o your_o cause_n may_v you_o have_v let_v this_o testimony_n alone_o and_o never_o have_v mention_v it_o but_o whosoever_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o no_o more_o can_v be_v ground_v thereupon_o but_o that_o be_v think_v it_o good_a to_o further_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o party_n that_o he_o shall_v confess_v his_o sin_n that_o he_o have_v fall_v into_o and_o offend_v god_n church_n withal_o to_o the_o minister_n that_o by_o he_o he_o may_v be_v deal_v withal_o by_o correption_n admonition_n or_o consolation_n as_o he_o see_v good_a and_o the_o edge_n of_o his_o speech_n be_v not_o simple_o against_o such_o as_o do_v refuse_v to_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o god_n minister_n but_o only_o against_o such_o as_o refuse_v so_o to_o do_v do_v not_o repent_v for_o he_o say_v si_fw-la ea_fw-la confiteri_fw-la aut_fw-la emendare_fw-la noluerint_fw-la and_o again_o si_fw-la in_o malo_fw-la permanserint_fw-la that_o be_v if_o they_o will_v not_o confess_v they_o nor_o amend_v and_o if_o they_o continue_v in_o evil_a beside_o if_o the_o word_n in_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o you_o be_v well_o mark_v it_o will_v thereby_o sufficient_o appear_v in_o that_o there_o be_v then_o so_o many_o reason_n that_o stay_v man_n as_o there_o by_o that_o author_n word_n it_o seem_v there_o be_v from_o confess_v to_o the_o priest_n that_o it_o be_v not_o then_o think_v that_o so_o to_o confess_v sin_n be_v so_o necessary_a as_o you_o will_v now_o pretend_v you_o to_o be_v if_o it_o have_v be_v either_o thought_n to_o be_v simple_o necessary_a by_o god_n law_n or_o it_o then_o have_v be_v think_v and_o know_v to_o be_v a_o set_a law_n of_o the_o church_n to_o confess_v sin_n in_o secret_a to_o the_o minister_n why_o have_v not_o you_o nor_o yet_o any_o of_o your_o side_n bring_v we_o any_o ancient_a doctor_n that_o ever_o use_v either_o of_o these_o reason_n to_o persuade_v man_n unto_o it_o cyril_n in_o his_o 12._o book_n upon_o joh._n cap._n 56._o be_v the_o four_o man_n you_o cite_v for_o this_o purpose_n which_o place_n if_o you_o have_v ever_o read_v you_o shall_v have_v find_v he_o to_o set_v down_o this_o first_o as_o a_o most_o sure_a principle_n that_o only_a god_n be_v he_o that_o must_v loose_v a_o man_n from_o his_o sin_n for_o to_o who_o else_o say_v he_o shall_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o deliver_v transgressor_n of_o the_o law_n but_o unto_o the_o author_n of_o the_o law_n himself_o which_o position_n if_o it_o be_v receive_v there_o will_v be_v small_a have_v make_v to_o your_o ear_n shrift_n but_o then_o indeed_o it_o follow_v in_o he_o how_o then_o do_v christ_n give_v this_o divine_a power_n to_o his_o apostle_n whereunto_o his_o answer_n be_v that_o he_o give_v it_o they_o because_o he_o give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o they_o forgive_v sin_n which_o he_o show_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v by_o use_v their_o ministry_n to_o baptise_v man_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n by_o rebuke_v of_o sinner_n and_o by_o show_v they_o favour_n again_o as_o paul_n deal_v with_o the_o man_n of_o corinth_n so_o that_o you_o see_v his_o doctrine_n be_v there_o that_o man_n come_v to_o have_v their_o sin_n forgive_v they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v our_o ministry_n effectual_o to_o bring_v man_n to_o repentance_n where_o to_o make_v auricular_a confession_n to_o man_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n be_v not_o reckon_v up_o as_o any_o mean_n whereby_o in_o the_o apostle_n or_o by_o the_o apostle_n the_o holy_a ghost_n forgive_v any_o their_o sin_n but_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o use_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n in_o due_a season_n be_v note_v to_o be_v the_o mean_n he_o send_v we_o there_o you_o see_v to_o the_o example_n of_o paul_n deal_n with_o the_o man_n of_o corinth_n of_o
who_o repentance_n and_o receive_v again_o into_o god_n church_n and_o so_o to_o a_o livelie_a hope_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n we_o read_v but_o that_o either_o paul_n or_o any_o other_o minister_n have_v he_o before_o they_o to_o bring_v he_o to_o this_o by_o auricular_a confession_n we_o neither_o read_v nor_o can_v believe_v and_o therefore_o cyril_n be_v rather_o quite_o against_o you_o than_o any_o thing_n for_o you_o in_o this_o point_n in_o that_o place_n now_o last_o of_o all_o be_v hierom_n upon_o the_o ten_o of_o ecclesiastes_n where_o all_o that_o he_o say_v be_v this_o if_o the_o serpent_n the_o devil_n privily_o bite_v any_o and_o infect_v he_o none_n be_v privy_a thereunto_o with_o the_o poison_n of_o sin_n if_o he_o that_o be_v strike_v hold_v his_o peace_n and_o repent_v not_o nor_o will_v confess_v his_o wound_n to_o his_o brother_n or_o master_n the_o master_n that_o have_v a_o tongue_n to_o cure_v he_o easy_o can_v profit_n he_o who_o of_o we_o deny_v this_o that_o he_o that_o will_v neither_o speak_v and_o repent_v nor_o thus_o by_o confession_n seek_v for_o better_a physic_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o spiritual_a physician_n than_o he_o can_v give_v himself_o can_v easy_o be_v profit_v by_o such_o a_o physician_n yea_o that_o more_o be_v we_o say_v and_o hold_v that_o he_o that_o will_v neither_o repent_v betwixt_o god_n and_o himself_o nor_o yet_o seek_v to_o those_o to_o show_v his_o estate_n that_o be_v appoint_v to_o teach_v he_o how_o to_o repent_v be_v in_o a_o most_o fearful_a case_n but_o yet_o again_o we_o say_v that_o they_o that_o in_o such_o secret_a sin_n whereof_o hierom_n plain_o speak_v will_v with_o david_n acknowledge_v their_o sin_n unto_o god_n and_o not_o hide_v their_o iniquity_n psalm_n 32._o but_o forsake_v it_o they_o shall_v have_v mercy_n proverb_n 28._o though_o they_o never_o bewray_v those_o their_o sin_n to_o any_o priest_n or_o minister_n neither_o have_v hierom_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o these_o father_n in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n say_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o contrary_n what_o be_v you_o therefore_o the_o near_a for_o any_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v say_v to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o universal_a and_o special_a enumeration_n of_o all_o sin_n that_o can_v be_v remember_v with_o all_o the_o circumstance_n thereof_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o priest_n though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o well_o confess_v to_o god_n and_o repent_v of_o yea_o what_o have_v any_o of_o they_o speak_v in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n either_o to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n or_o universality_n of_o your_o kind_n of_o confession_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n you_o shall_v have_v prove_v by_o they_o or_o else_o you_o prove_v nothing_o in_o question_n or_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o let_v confession_n of_o sin_n unto_o they_o be_v free_a as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o time_n and_o in_o such_o case_n as_o man_n can_v otherwise_o so_o well_o get_v ease_n remedy_n and_o comfort_n against_o their_o sin_n we_o be_v very_o well_o content_v with_o they_o to_o persuade_v man_n that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a good_a and_o profitable_a way_n for_o they_o in_o sickness_n and_o in_o health_n to_o confess_v unto_o some_o discreet_a minister_n or_o minister_n what_o sin_n they_o be_v that_o so_o trouble_v they_o that_o so_o advise_v by_o they_o may_v be_v minister_v unto_o they_o according_o and_o this_o be_v the_o utmost_a that_o any_o of_o these_o place_n can_v have_v so_o much_o as_o any_o show_n to_o help_v you_o unto_o which_o be_v as_o far_o from_o you_o as_o chalk_n be_v from_o cheese_n you_o have_v make_v it_o as_o you_o have_v a_o matter_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o have_v stretch_v it_o to_o such_o a_o full_a special_a recital_n of_o all_o and_o that_o by_o all_o person_n and_o sex_n at_o a_o appoint_a time_n of_o the_o year_n as_o you_o have_v also_o but_o enough_o of_o this_o matter_n now_o therefore_o let_v we_o go_v on_o and_o see_v whither_o you_o have_v any_o better_a hold_n in_o the_o father_n for_o the_o other_o two_o point_n behind_o the_o next_o be_v pray_v to_o saint_n in_o paradise_n to_o help_v we_o with_o their_o prayer_n for_o the_o which_o you_o allege_v only_o the_o name_n of_o four_o origen_n chrysostome_n augustine_n and_o hierom_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o indeed_o that_o in_o any_o of_o his_o undoubted_a &_o know_a work_n to_o be_v his_o that_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v pray_v unto_o they_o for_o whereas_o you_o here_o have_v quote_v we_o three_o place_n of_o origen_n for_o this_o your_o purpose_n the_o two_o late_a i_o can_v think_v be_v he_o as_o for_o the_o last_o out_o of_o his_o 8._o book_n of_o ecclesiast_fw-la there_o be_v no_o such_o book_n father_v upon_o he_o either_o in_o any_o of_o his_o tome_n that_o i_o ever_o yet_o can_v see_v nor_o yet_o attribute_v unto_o he_o by_o tritenhemius_n who_o reckon_v up_o all_o that_o he_o be_v acquaint_v withal_o of_o he_o and_o as_o for_o that_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o his_o second_o book_n of_o job_n i_o grant_v whosoever_o be_v author_n of_o those_o tract_n he_o conclude_v the_o second_o tract_n with_o a_o gross_a popish_a prayer_n to_o job._n but_o certain_a it_o be_v those_o tract_n or_o book_n be_v never_o origens_n nor_o that_o prayer_n of_o his_o make_n or_o like_n my_o reason_n be_v these_o first_o the_o author_n thereof_o show_v himself_o a_o arrian_n in_o the_o first_o tract_n erasmus_n have_v observe_v that_o these_o of_o job_n be_v never_o but_o in_o latin_a whereas_o he_o write_v all_o his_o in_o greek_a and_o last_o because_o he_o himself_o if_o that_o prayer_n be_v he_o shall_v be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o for_o against_o celsus_n lib._n 8._o which_o book_n be_v his_o undoubted_o he_o answer_v the_o argument_n of_o celsus_n that_o it_o can_v offend_v the_o high_a god_n if_o the_o inferior_a god_n who_o celsus_n call_v daemon_n be_v his_o friend_n be_v worship_v with_o invocation_n to_o provoke_v they_o to_o solicit_v man_n cause_n with_o the_o high_a god_n which_o argument_n that_o heathen_a wretch_n there_o countenance_v with_o the_o fashion_n in_o prince_n court_n to_o solicit_v the_o prince_n by_o such_o as_o be_v about_o he_o even_o for_o all_o the_o world_n as_o you_o use_v to_o do_v your_o pray_v to_o saint_n tell_v he_o that_o one_o god_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v unto_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o as_o for_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n say_v he_o though_o they_o be_v god_n friend_n yet_o only_o god_n be_v to_o be_v please_v and_o please_v he_o and_o then_o also_o you_o please_v these_o pag._n 760._o and_o 774._o now_o in_o the_o other_o place_n which_o be_v the_o first_o you_o cite_v namely_o out_o of_o his_o 3._o homily_n upon_o the_o canticle_n all_o that_o he_o say_v savour_v any_o whit_n for_o this_o your_o purpose_n be_v this_o that_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o inconvenient_a to_o say_v they_o pray_v for_o we_o whereof_o likewise_o cap._n 13._o upon_o josua_n and_o upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n he_o speak_v doubtful_o and_o stammer_o as_o one_o not_o full_o resolve_v that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o therefore_o confident_o to_o be_v advouch_v and_o teach_v which_o i_o think_v be_v the_o sow_v of_o some_o seed_n towards_o this_o opinion_n of_o you_o but_o who_o be_v so_o simple_a but_o he_o may_v see_v that_o though_o this_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v a_o undoubted_a and_o certain_a thing_n that_o they_o pray_v for_o we_o yet_o thereupon_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o we_o here_o must_v or_o may_v pray_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o origen_n himself_o never_o gather_v so_o thereupon_o it_o may_v appear_v sufficient_o by_o his_o foresay_v answer_v to_o celsus_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v know_v well_o enough_o that_o origen_n be_v not_o think_v of_o the_o ancient_a father_n themselves_o a_o author_n of_o the_o credit_n that_o whatsoever_o he_o teach_v or_o think_v ought_v straight_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o true_a and_o sound_a for_o it_o appear_v plain_o in_o epiphanius_n tom._n 2._o haeresi_fw-la 64._o and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o his_o opinion_n of_o he_o be_v that_o he_o be_v not_o sound_v in_o doctrine_n and_o hierom_n ad_fw-la oceanum_n say_v flat_o of_o he_o thus_o i_o have_v praise_v origen_n as_o a_o interpreter_n but_o not_o as_o a_o teacher_n his_o wit_n not_o faith_n and_o further_o he_o say_v of_o he_o believe_v i_o that_o have_v experience_n his_o doctrine_n be_v poison_v disagree_v from_o the_o scripture_n offer_v violence_n unto_o they_o and_o eusebius_n out_o of_o aegesippus_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 32._o note_v that_o unto_o those_o time_n about_o which_o he_o begin_v to_o flourish_v the_o church_n remain_v
adoret_fw-la let_v no_o man_n adore_v mary_n i_o say_v not_o a_o woman_n but_o a_o man_n neither_o for_o this_o mystery_n be_v due_a to_o god_n than_o angel_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o this_o glory_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o the_o same_o epiphanius_n lib._n 1._o heres_fw-la 38._o write_v against_o the_o caian_o for_o their_o invocation_n of_o angel_n it_o shall_v seem_v therefore_o that_o petrus_n gnapheus_n who_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n in_o the_o 5._o general_a council_n be_v infect_v with_o some_o of_o these_o heresy_n for_o about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 470._o as_o it_o appear_v in_o nicephorus_n 15._o book_n and_o 28._o chapter_n he_o be_v busy_a in_o devise_v and_o urge_v how_o mary_n shall_v in_o the_o public_a lyturgie_n not_o only_o be_v honourable_o name_v but_o also_o call_v upon_o &_o pray_v unto_o but_o if_o we_o will_v know_v the_o antiquity_n of_o these_o heretic_n and_o of_o you_o their_o scholar_n epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 79._o send_v we_o for_o the_o original_n of_o their_o pedigree_n to_o the_o woman_n in_o jeremies_n time_n that_o back_v cake_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n and_o pour_v forth_o their_o offering_n to_o other_o god_n to_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o anger_n and_o therefore_o he_o call_v for_o jeremy_n to_o charm_v &_o to_o stay_v those_o adorer_n of_o mary_n that_o he_o write_v so_o against_o that_o they_o trouble_v the_o world_n no_o more_o in_o deed_n he_o say_v roundly_o to_o those_o idolatrous_a woman_n in_o his_o time_n in_o the_o person_n of_o god_n do_v they_o provoke_v i_o to_o anger_n say_v the_o lord_n and_o not_o themselves_o to_o the_o confusion_n of_o their_o own_o face_n and_o so_o go_v on_o in_o denounce_v god_n heavy_a vengeance_n against_o they_o for_o the_o same_o cap._n 2._o hier._n and_o therefore_o see_v you_o be_v so_o like_o they_o in_o the_o cause_n hereof_o take_v heed_n you_o be_v not_o enforce_v to_o be_v as_o like_v they_o in_o the_o punishment_n you_o have_v hear_v out_o of_o origens_n 8._o book_n to_o celsus_n how_o like_a herein_o you_o be_v to_o that_o idolater_n both_o for_o the_o matter_n of_o your_o practice_n and_o doctrine_n and_o for_o the_o reason_n you_o have_v to_o confirm_v the_o same_o and_o that_o he_o there_o show_v flat_o that_o he_o think_v that_o that_o be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o please_v god_n but_o rather_o to_o displease_v he_o to_o leave_v he_o and_o to_o run_v to_o his_o saint_n and_o angel_n to_o entreat_v they_o to_o be_v mean_n unto_o he_o for_o they_o and_o chrysostome_n also_o who_o be_v the_o second_o man_n that_o here_o you_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v be_v on_o your_o side_n to_o clear_v himself_o of_o all_o such_o impiety_n de_fw-fr muliere_fw-la cananea_n hom_n 12._o say_v thus_o tell_v i_o o_o woman_n how_o thou_o dare_v be_v a_o sinner_n go_v unto_o christ_n i_o know_v what_o i_o do_v say_v she_o as_o he_o make_v she_o to_o answer_v he_o see_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o woman_n say_v he_o she_o ask_v not_o james_n peter_n nor_o john_n yea_o in_o another_o homily_n of_o his_o tom_fw-mi 5._o de_fw-la profectu_fw-la euangelii_fw-la he_o further_o observe_v that_o when_o the_o disciple_n come_v and_o speak_v for_o she_o he_o answer_v i_o be_o not_o send_v but_o to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o israel_n but_o when_o she_o come_v herself_o that_o then_o she_o have_v her_o request_n so_o thereby_o there_o labour_v and_o in_o express_a word_n in_o that_o homily_n to_o encourage_v man_n direct_o and_o immediate_o as_o plain_o as_o we_o do_v to_o make_v their_o prayer_n to_o christ_n themselves_o and_o not_o by_o advocate_n and_o as_o for_o augustine_n the_o three_o man_n you_o name_n he_o have_v meetelie_o well_o already_o clear_v himself_o even_o in_o the_o very_a place_n you_o quote_v but_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o doubt_n let_v we_o hear_v he_o somewhat_o further_o to_o speak_v for_o his_o full_a purgation_n in_o this_o point_n in_o his_o fifty_o five_o chapter_n de_fw-la vera_fw-la religione_fw-la and_o in_o his_o 22._o book_n and_o 10._o chapter_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n he_o plain_o write_v that_o to_o build_v either_o temple_n or_o altar_n unto_o saint_n or_o angel_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a with_o you_o be_v flat_o unlawful_a and_o in_o the_o former_a of_o these_o place_n he_o say_v that_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v for_o imitation_n but_o not_o for_o religion_n add_v that_o which_o the_o high_a angel_n worship_v that_o must_v the_o low_a man_n worship_n and_o in_o the_o other_o he_o say_v that_o they_o never_o sacrifice_v nor_o build_v temple_n to_o saint_n and_o in_o the_o place_n you_o cite_v out_o of_o he_o he_o say_v which_o of_o the_o bishop_n say_v stand_v at_o the_o altar_n we_o offer_v to_o thou_o peter_n or_o paul_n etc._n etc._n where_o &_o in_o his_o 8._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n &_o cap._n 27._o he_o utter_o condemn_v as_o unlawful_a offering_n of_o any_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o martyr_n and_o yet_o more_o direct_o against_o you_o in_o his_o second_o book_n against_o the_o epistle_n of_o parm._n c._n 8._o he_o write_v thus_o if_o john_n shall_v have_v say_v these_o thing_n write_v i_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o sin_v not_o &_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n you_o have_v i_o for_o a_o advocate_n with_o god_n and_o i_o will_v entreat_v he_o for_o your_o sin_n as_o parmenian_n in_o a_o certain_a place_n say_v he_o put_v the_o bishop_n a_o mediator_n betwixt_o the_o people_n &_o god_n what_o good_a and_o faithful_a christian_a say_v he_o will_v have_v suffer_v he_o yea_o who_o will_v have_v take_v he_o for_o a_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o for_o a_o very_a antichrist_n ambrose_n also_o upon_o the_o first_o to_o the_o roman_n be_v as_o flat_a against_o any_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n &_o we_o beside_o christ_n jesus_n as_o any_o of_o these_o yea_o there_o he_o do_v as_o direct_o confute_v your_o ordinary_a reason_n of_o your_o get_v the_o better_a to_o god_n by_o these_o as_o to_o the_o prince_n by_o his_o noble_n as_o we_o tell_v you_o first_o that_o that_o be_v under_o the_o pretence_n of_o humility_n &_o reverence_n to_o the_o prince_n to_o make_v yourselves_o to_o the_o peril_n of_o your_o salvation_n guilty_a of_o high_a treason_n against_o he_o for_o it_o be_v to_o give_v that_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o the_o prince_n unto_o his_o noble_n thus_o to_o leave_v the_o creator_n to_o adore_v the_o creature_n and_o then_o further_o answer_v you_o that_o your_o reason_n hold_v not_o from_o prince_n court_n on_o earth_n to_o god_n in_o heaven_n for_o they_o be_v man_n say_v he_o &_o therefore_o to_o they_o man_n must_v so_o come_v because_o otherwise_o they_o know_v not_o who_o to_o trust_v but_o with_o god_n that_o know_v all_o thing_n to_o win_v his_o favour_n suffragatore_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la opus_fw-la sed_fw-la mente_fw-la devotâ_fw-la there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o one_o to_o speak_v for_o we_o but_o of_o a_o devout_a mind_n and_o therefore_o he_o go_v on_o and_o say_v that_o such_o as_o yet_o will_v adore_v their_o fellow_n servant_n or_o creature_n turn_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n into_o the_o similitude_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n again_o howsoever_o some_o friend_n of_o you_o under_o the_o name_n of_o athanasius_n have_v cause_v one_o to_o speak_v in_o your_o language_n say_v make_v intercession_n for_o i_o mistress_n lady_n queen_n of_o heaven_n yet_o athanasius_n indeed_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v how_o much_o he_o abhor_v that_o impiety_n in_o his_o oration_n against_o the_o arrian_n which_o all_o man_n know_v and_o confess_v be_v he_o first_o oratione_fw-la secundâ_fw-la say_v sancti_fw-la non_fw-la postulant_fw-la a_o creato_fw-la aliquo_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v the_o holy_a servant_n of_o god_n ask_v not_o of_o a_o creature_n to_o be_v their_o helper_n christ_n therefore_o who_o help_n they_o crave_v be_v true_a god_n and_o then_o again_o oratione_fw-la tertiâ_fw-la he_o write_v thus_o creatura_fw-la non_fw-la adorat_fw-la creaturam_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o creature_n adore_v not_o the_o creature_n therefore_o christ_n who_o be_v adore_v be_v god_n these_o argument_n of_o he_o have_v not_o be_v good_a neither_o will_v he_o ever_o have_v make_v they_o if_o he_o have_v think_v it_o lawful_a to_o honour_n and_o adore_v saint_n as_o you_o do_v or_o as_o you_o will_v by_o father_v the_o former_a kind_n of_o invocation_n of_o mary_n upon_o he_o make_v man_n believe_v he_o do_v and_o indeed_o paul_n take_v it_o for_o a_o thing_n that_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v he_o ronvere_n 10._o that_o none_o may_v pray_v unto_o any_o in_o who_o he_o may_v not_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o the_o
this_o life_n to_o prove_v both_o the_o popish_a purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a let_v we_o but_o take_v a_o view_n first_o in_o what_o sense_n they_o have_v speak_v thereof_o &_o how_o uncertaine_o and_o inconstant_o and_o to_o begin_v with_o origen_n both_o because_o he_o be_v the_o ancient_a &_o because_o he_o be_v first_o name_v in_o the_o very_a second_o place_n here_o quote_v by_o albin_n he_o speak_v of_o purge_v in_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n and_o in_o the_o other_o of_o purge_v in_o such_o fire_n as_o will_v consume_v in_o they_o that_o hold_v the_o foundation_n their_o wood_n hay_n &_o stubble_n that_o they_o build_v thereupon_o that_o so_o when_o their_o soul_n depart_v from_o their_o body_n they_o may_v go_v to_o heaven_n which_o with_o those_o unconsume_v they_o can_v which_o consume_v fire_n he_o say_v be_v god_n for_o his_o word_n in_o the_o latter_a place_n be_v these_o he_o that_o despise_v the_o purification_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n reserve_v himself_o to_o sorrowful_a &_o painful_a purification_n that_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n in_o torment_n may_v purge_v he_o who_o neither_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n nor_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v purge_v and_o in_o the_o other_o preach_v i_o be_o sure_a they_o will_v grant_v to_o man_n alive_a and_o not_o to_o the_o dead_a his_o word_n the_o better_a to_o make_v they_o to_o look_v while_o they_o be_v alive_a that_o they_o carry_v no_o wood_n hay_n nor_o stubble_n with_o they_o unconsume_v be_v these_o if_o after_o christ_n the_o foundation_n thou_o build_v thereupon_o not_o gold_n silver_n &_o precious_a stone_n only_o in_o the_o mind_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o such_o but_o also_o hay_n wood_n &_o stubble_n what_o will_v thou_o be_v do_v with_o thou_o when_o thy_o soul_n shall_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n whither_o will_v thou_o with_o thy_o wood_n hay_n &_o stubble_n enter_v in_o to_o the_o holy_a place_n and_o so_o defile_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n or_o for_o they_o tarry_v without_o &_o for_o the_o other_o lose_v thy_o reward_n which_o be_v not_o meet_v neither_o what_o follow_v then_o but_o the_o first_o for_o these_o fire_n be_v give_v thou_o to_o consume_v they_o but_o god_n be_v the_o consume_a fire_n of_o these_o whereupon_o a_o little_a after_o he_o exhort_v all_o man_n that_o have_v any_o such_o matter_n in_o they_o that_o they_o will_v know_v their_o own_o fault_n &_o in_o time_n amend_v they_o the_o first_o place_n be_v in_o his_o 8._o book_n and_o 11._o chapter_n upon_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o other_o in_o 12._o homily_n upon_o hieremie_n even_o as_o albine_n cit_v he_o now_o who_o see_v not_o by_o this_o that_o the_o purge_a place_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o second_o place_n be_v hell_n itself_o and_o that_o the_o other_o be_v in_o this_o life_n while_o god_n child_n warn_v in_o time_n while_o they_o be_v here_o do_v let_v the_o fire_n of_o god_n spirit_n both_o reveal_v unto_o they_o and_o consume_v in_o they_o all_o their_o unsuitable_a build_n to_o the_o foundation_n whither_o it_o be_v in_o religion_n or_o manner_n what_o place_n then_o be_v these_o unless_o the_o papist_n be_v grow_v now_o to_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o partition_n wall_n betwixt_o hell_n and_o their_o purgatory_n be_v quite_o pull_v down_o and_o all_o become_v very_a hell_n or_o else_o that_o their_o purgatory_n be_v in_o this_o life_n to_o allege_v either_o for_o purgatory_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a further_n touch_v origens_n fancy_n about_o purge_v after_o this_o life_n august_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 21._o c._n 17._o say_v that_o the_o very_a devil_n &_o his_o angel_n after_o certain_a grievous_a and_o long_a last_a punishment_n shall_v be_v free_v and_o deliver_v from_o those_o torment_n and_o join_v again_o in_o society_n with_o the_o holy_a angel_n as_o origen_n believe_v and_o upon_o luke_n hom_n 14._o origen_n himself_o say_v i_o think_v after_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a we_o all_o shall_v stand_v need_n of_o a_o sacrament_n to_o cleanse_v and_o purge_v we_o for_o none_o can_v arise_v again_o without_o his_o defiling_n and_o upon_o the_o 36._o ps_n hom_n 3._o he_o write_v that_o he_o think_v that_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o all_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o purge_a fire_n though_o he_o be_v paul_n or_o peter_n and_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v upon_o the_o num._n hom_n 25._o which_o if_o you_o understand_v of_o any_o purge_a fire_n of_o tribulation_n or_o of_o the_o inward_a effectual_a operation_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o lighten_v &_o to_o purge_v &_o consume_v our_o dark_a sinful_a and_o erroneous_a heart_n for_o so_o sometime_o he_o and_o other_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n speak_v then_o these_o place_n make_v nothing_o for_o your_o purgatory_n which_o be_v after_o this_o life_n if_o otherwise_o you_o understand_v he_o of_o some_o fire_n to_o purge_v after_o this_o life_n so_o neither_o be_v he_o any_o proctor_n for_o your_o purgatory_n to_o the_o which_o you_o send_v only_o the_o middle_a sort_n neither_o very_o good_a nor_o very_o bad_a a_o man_n therefore_o may_v well_o think_v that_o you_o be_v near_o drive_v for_o proof_n for_o your_o purgatory_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a when_o you_o run_v to_o these_o or_o any_o such_o place_n in_o origen_n that_o speak_v thereof_o so_o variablie_o and_o not_o only_o far_o from_o your_o sense_n but_o sometime_o even_o in_o your_o own_o judgement_n aswell_o as_o in_o we_o very_o heretical_o now_o as_o for_o augustine_n if_o what_o he_o have_v write_v of_o purgatory_n be_v well_o consider_v your_o argument_n from_o he_o will_v prove_v as_o weak_a as_o from_o origen_n for_o whereas_o some_o of_o you_o allege_v he_o upon_o the_o 103._o psal_n serm_n 3._o for_o purgatory_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o there_o speak_v of_o that_o purge_n by_o fire_n which_o he_o suppose_v will_v be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o all_o shall_v be_v on_o fire_n and_o the_o good_a separate_v from_o the_o bad_a which_o fancy_n he_o rather_o choose_v to_o fall_v into_o then_o to_o hold_v with_o origen_n that_o there_o be_v any_o purge_n in_o hell_n the_o same_o augustine_n most_o common_o understand_v that_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 3._o of_o the_o fire_n of_o tribulalation_n and_o affliction_n wkereby_o man_n be_v try_v and_o purge_v as_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o life_n as_o gold_n in_o the_o furnace_n and_o as_o for_o a_o mean_a place_n of_o purge_v any_o betwixt_o death_n &_o the_o judgement_n he_o write_v sometime_o confident_o that_o there_o be_v none_o such_o and_o sometime_o he_o leave_v it_o in_o doubt_n for_o in_o his_o five_o book_n hypognost_o against_o the_o pelagian_n he_o acknowledge_v heaven_n to_o be_v the_o place_n for_o the_o godly_a and_o hel-fire_n for_o the_o wicked_a but_o a_o three_o place_n say_v he_o we_o be_v altogether_o ignorant_a of_o neither_o do_v we_o find_v any_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o like_a sort_n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apostoli_fw-la ser_fw-mi 14._o he_o acknowledge_v these_o two_o again_o but_o a_o middle_a place_n he_o utterlie_o deni_v because_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n thereof_o in_o the_o gospel_n i_o know_v it_o be_v answer_v that_o when_o he_o say_v thus_o he_o set_v himself_o against_o the_o pelagian_o three_o place_n which_o they_o assign_v for_o infant_n die_v unbaptise_v but_o then_o yet_o i_o reply_v and_o say_v if_o he_o have_v be_v resolve_v of_o the_o popish_a three_o place_n purgatory_n he_o will_v and_o shall_v have_v say_v there_o be_v not_o four_o place_n and_o not_o no_o three_o if_o to_o this_o it_o be_v rejoin_v as_o i_o know_v it_o be_v by_o some_o that_o he_o dispute_v not_o there_o whither_o there_o be_v any_o more_o place_n than_o two_o before_o the_o last_o judgement_n but_o whither_o there_o be_v any_o more_o than_o two_o everlasting_a receptacle_n after_o that_o judgement_n also_o to_o continue_v and_o that_o in_o that_o sense_n only_o he_o be_v resolute_a there_o be_v but_o two_o how_o then_o will_v they_o shift_v that_o of_o his_o de_fw-la civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 13._o cap._n 8._o where_n devide_v all_o that_o die_v into_o good_a and_o bad_a immediate_o upon_o their_o death_n he_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a separate_v from_o their_o body_n be_v in_o rest_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o other_o be_v in_o pain_n while_o the_o body_n of_o those_o rise_v again_o to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o the_o other_o to_o everlasting_a pain_n which_o be_v the_o second_o death_n for_o here_o they_o can_v deny_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n &_o state_n of_o soul_n before_o the_o
contrariety_n betwixt_o the_o say_v two_o book_n themselves_o by_o the_o author_n crave_v to_o be_v bear_v withal_o and_o by_o his_o seem_a to_o justify_v in_o those_o book_n contrary_a to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n indeed_o sundry_a thing_n second_o let_v any_o man_n read_v 1._o mach._n 7._o &_o 12._o &_o the_o 2.4.3_o and_o 13._o and_o he_o shall_v thereby_o most_o plain_o see_v that_o in_o those_o time_n whereof_o those_o book_n contain_v the_o story_n there_o be_v wonderful_a gross_a corruption_n direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n creep_v in_o among_o the_o jew_n from_o the_o gentile_n and_o yet_o secure_o practise_v of_o they_o three_o this_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o neither_o josephus_n write_v the_o whole_a story_n of_o the_o maccabee_n nor_o yet_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n where_o the_o same_o story_n be_v handle_v make_v any_o mention_n of_o this_o fact_n of_o judas_n four_o if_o we_o look_v to_o his_o fact_n indeed_o as_o the_o author_n set_v it_o forth_o in_o greek_a we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o truth_n thereof_o be_v and_o be_v only_o this_o that_o he_o find_v two_o thousand_o slay_v that_o take_v upon_o they_o of_o their_o own_o head_n to_o fight_v with_o the_o jannite_n without_o commandment_n of_o their_o captain_n of_o a_o ambitious_a mind_n to_o get_v themselves_o a_o name_n &_o that_o under_o their_o garment_n they_o have_v thing_n hide_v consecrate_v to_o the_o god_n of_o the_o jannite_n every_o man_n then_o see_v that_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n they_o be_v slay_v thereupon_o first_o have_v call_v his_o people_n together_o he_o exhort_v they_o by_o that_o example_n to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o sin_n and_o to_o give_v glory_n to_o the_o lord_n for_o his_o righteous_a judgement_n execute_v upon_o they_o and_o to_o pray_v that_o the_o rest_n perish_v not_o for_o that_o their_o sin_n be_v like_a have_v in_o remembrance_n the_o story_n of_o achan_n josua_n 6._o and_o this_o thus_o according_a to_o his_o exhortation_n do_v he_o make_v a_o collection_n of_o two_o thousand_o drachma_n &_o send_v they_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o offer_v a_o sin_n offer_v which_o if_o he_o do_v to_o appease_v the_o lord_n wrath_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o burst_v out_o to_o the_o hurt_n of_o the_o rest_n as_o it_o do_v against_o the_o israelite_n at_o the_o besiege_v of_o ai_fw-fr josua_n the_o seven_o for_o the_o like_a sin_n in_o achan_n as_o it_o may_v be_v he_o do_v hitherto_o he_o do_v but_o well_o and_o with_o warrant_n from_o the_o twenty_o one_o of_o deutronomie_n and_o seven_o of_o josua_n but_o here_o he_o stay_v not_o but_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o author_n own_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d discourse_v with_o himself_o of_o the_o resurrection_n he_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o seek_v to_o make_v reconciliation_n for_o their_o sin_n that_o so_o they_o may_v have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o godly_a for_o who_o very_o godly_a he_o think_v that_o there_o be_v great_a hope_n lay_v up_o but_o if_o he_o have_v remember_v that_o he_o have_v neither_o commandment_n example_n nor_o promise_n in_o god_n book_n thus_o to_o encourage_v he_o to_o do_v and_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v you_o shall_v not_o do_v every_o one_o that_o which_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n but_o that_o which_o i_o command_v thou_o that_o only_o do_v thou_o shall_v add_v nothing_o thereunto_o nor_o take_v aught_o there_o from_o deut_n 12._o he_o shall_v not_o have_v follow_v his_o own_o discourse_n &_o imagination_n thus_o to_o have_v do_v without_o all_o warrant_n from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n he_o may_v have_v remember_v that_o of_o purpose_n the_o solemnity_n of_o burial_n be_v speak_v of_o &_o yet_o that_o never_o there_o be_v any_o mention_n either_o of_o any_o such_o thing_n command_v there_o to_o be_v do_v or_o remember_v to_o have_v be_v do_v yea_o that_o tobias_n the_o elder_n though_o there_o be_v much_o say_v of_o he_o to_o his_o commendation_n in_o burial_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o his_o history_n that_o yet_o there_o be_v not_o any_o mention_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n do_v by_o he_o and_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o note_v that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o judas_n machabeus_n it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o story_n after_o until_o now_o of_o very_o late_a day_n that_o any_o such_o thing_n be_v by_o any_o godly_a man_n attempt_v again_o further_o yet_o how_o can_v this_o serve_v to_o breed_v any_o credit_n to_o popish_a pray_v or_o sacrifice_v for_o the_o dead_a in_o purgatory_n see_v the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n &_o that_o they_o that_o die_v in_o deadly_a sin_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o story_n these_o do_v go_v not_o at_o all_o thither_o but_o straight_o to_o hell_n last_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o can_v see_v in_o the_o author_n word_n thorough_o consider_v it_o may_v be_v say_v for_o his_o credit_n that_o he_o show_v that_o judas_n machabeus_n do_v thus_o that_o he_o do_v very_o well_o &_o honest_o to_o think_v &_o hope_v of_o the_o resurrection_n &_o very_o godly_a to_o be_v persuade_v that_o then_o it_o shall_v be_v very_o well_o with_o those_o that_o die_v godly_a but_o that_o upon_o these_o cogitation_n he_o do_v thus_o for_o these_o he_o do_v not_o at_o all_o justify_v he_o but_o rather_o show_v that_o therein_o he_o follow_v his_o own_o reason_n and_o discourse_n and_o this_o be_v thus_o all_o the_o strength_n of_o this_o place_n be_v lose_v for_o a_o historiographer_n may_v and_o do_v set_v down_o often_o aswell_o the_o fault_n as_o commendable_a thing_n of_o famous_a man_n that_o they_o write_v of_o wherefore_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n for_o all_o this_o it_o remain_v firm_a and_o sound_a that_o i_o say_v before_o they_o can_v neither_o by_o scripture_n nor_o any_o sound_a ancient_a writer_n approve_v their_o sacrifice_a offer_v or_o pray_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n wherefore_o to_o go_v on_o now_o we_o be_v come_v to_o examine_v origens_n testimony_n which_o be_v two_o only_o here_o cite_v for_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a by_o albine_n namely_o his_o 12_o homily_n upon_o jeremy_n and_o his_o 8._o book_n upon_o the_o roman_n cap._n 11._o in_o which_o place_n let_v they_o be_v read_v never_o so_o often_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v find_v so_o much_o as_o mention_v of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a indeed_o in_o both_o of_o they_o there_o be_v some_o mention_n of_o a_o purge_a fire_n but_o as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o first_o entrance_n into_o this_o point_n when_o i_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o the_o author_n in_o these_o place_n none_o at_o all_o of_o the_o popish_a purgatory_n for_o in_o the_o first_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o fire_n that_o must_v consume_v our_o hay_n wood_n and_o stubble_n which_o he_o tell_v we_o be_v god_n who_o be_v a_o consume_a fire_n of_o such_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o other_o he_o speak_v express_o of_o the_o fire_n and_o torment_n of_o hell_n wherein_o say_v he_o he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v purge_v by_o the_o evangelicall_a and_o apostolic_a doctrine_n reserve_v himself_o to_o be_v purify_v thus_o thou_o may_v see_v good_a reader_n that_o which_o i_o admonish_v thou_o of_o before_o how_o they_o prove_v pray_v for_o the_o dead_a by_o mention_n of_o a_o purge_a fire_n though_o it_o be_v mention_v never_o so_o diverse_o and_o far_o from_o their_o sense_n as_o in_o these_o two_o place_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a it_o be_v whereby_o thou_o may_v see_v how_o with_o out_o all_o conscience_n they_o seek_v to_o abuse_v thou_o with_o fond_a reason_n and_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n belike_o though_o the_o scripture_n say_v in_o hell_n there_o be_v no_o redemption_n yet_o master_n albine_n believe_v by_o his_o allege_v the_o late_a of_o these_o place_n damascene_n tale_n of_o gregory_n get_n traian_n soul_n out_o of_o hell_n by_o prayer_n and_o that_o saint_n francis_n and_o other_o also_o have_v do_v and_o now_o can_v do_v the_o like_a or_o at_o least_o that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n have_v be_v fowe_o deceive_v that_o before_o now_o make_v it_o a_o distinct_a place_n from_o hell_n in_o earnest_n let_v they_o take_v heed_n who_o they_o have_v persuade_v hitherto_o &_o do_v hereafter_o that_o they_o go_v but_o thither_o and_o that_o they_o so_o they_o will_v take_v order_n they_o may_v be_v well_o pay_v for_o it_o will_v help_v they_o to_o ease_v there_o and_o out_o in_o the_o end_n that_o they_o find_v not_o indeed_o the_o popish_a purgatory_n they_o dream_v of_o in_o the_o end_n to_o prove_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o fire_n
thus_o see_v by_o the_o very_a testimony_n of_o those_o that_o be_v our_o enemy_n &_o that_o be_v your_o brethren_n as_o touch_v the_o seek_v to_o overthrow_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o principal_a pill●●s_n of_o your_o church_n be_v bawd_n thief_n and_o adulterer_n ruffian_n confess_v ruffian_n and_o yet_o what_o be_v more_o usual_a with_o papist_n then_o to_o cry_v out_o against_o our_o ill_a life_n though_o your_o life_n be_v such_o as_o you_o have_v confess_v why_o do_v you_o not_o first_o begin_v to_o reform_v yourselves_o to_o this_o intent_n that_o when_o we_o see_v that_o you_o have_v take_v the_o black_a out_o of_o your_o own_o eye_n we_o may_v be_v the_o better_a content_n that_o you_o shall_v spy_v the_o moat_n in_o we_o remember_v that_o our_o saviour_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o physician_n ought_v to_o cure_v himself_o the_o xli_o chapter_n we_o be_v very_o well_o content_v see_v you_o so_o willing_o confess_v it_o and_o that_o so_o often_o that_o you_o be_v count_v weak_a and_o sickly_a sheep_n and_o your_o pastor_n hireling_n but_o the_o other_o part_n of_o your_o speech_n that_o we_o be_v the_o sheep_n that_o be_v run_v astray_o from_o god_n sheepfold_n and_o our_o pastor_n be_v the_o raven_a wolf_n we_o most_o constant_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o religion_n deny_v it_o howsoever_o with_o you_o we_o must_v be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o manner_n there_o be_v fault_n in_o both_o and_o therefore_o how_o bold_o soever_o you_o affirm_v this_o see_v still_o you_o keep_v your_o old_a wind_v in_o have_v nothing_o to_o prove_v it_o but_o your_o own_o bare_a word_n our_o denial_n of_o it_o counteruail_v it_o well_o enough_o you_o though_o you_o have_v grant_v yourselves_o to_o be_v never_o so_o sick_a in_o manner_n and_o have_v teach_v we_o that_o religion_n must_v not_o be_v stain_v and_o think_v to_o be_v blemish_v for_o the_o lewd_a life_n of_o some_o of_o the_o professor_n yet_o your_o stomach_n so_o overflow_v it_o seem_v with_o choler_n against_o we_o and_o namely_o against_o that_o reverend_a father_n theodore_n beza_n that_o you_o can_v not_o be_v quiet_a until_o you_o have_v cast_v it_o up_o to_o ease_v your_o stomach_n a_o little_a you_o first_o tell_v we_o that_o by_o experience_n and_o read_v of_o the_o story_n of_o our_o martyr_n you_o be_v able_a to_o say_v so_o much_o of_o our_o lewd_a life_n as_o that_o we_o have_v not_o much_o amend_v the_o fault_n that_o we_o find_v in_o you_o and_o then_o you_o come_v to_o that_o where_o you_o long_o to_o be_v to_o discredit_v beza_n to_o who_o charge_n you_o say_v sundry_a heinous_a crime_n and_o that_o upon_o the_o report_n of_o tilemannus_fw-la heshusius_fw-la a_o bitter_a and_o intemperate_a enemy_n of_o he_o for_o the_o question_n among_o we_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o first_o this_o issue_n i_o dare_v and_o do_v join_v with_o you_o in_o whatsoever_o you_o have_v read_v or_o see_v of_o we_o that_o we_o have_v read_v and_o see_v more_o monstrous_a and_o horrible_a sin_n in_o the_o life_n of_o your_o most_o holy_a father_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n than_o you_o be_v able_a to_o charge_v all_o that_o ever_o profess_v our_o religion_n withal_o be_v there_o ever_o like_o savage_a cruelty_n among_o we_o one_o to_o another_o as_o i_o show_v before_o be_v among_o they_o about_o formosus_fw-la their_o pride_n have_v appear_v most_o monstrous_a in_o tread_v upon_o emperor_n neck_n and_o otherwise_o infinite_o in_o misuse_v of_o they_o as_o i_o have_v at_o large_a show_v chapter_n sixteenth_o their_o detestable_a sorcery_n necromancy_n and_o poison_v one_o another_o to_o come_v to_o the_o popedom_n above_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o by_o silvester_n the_o second_o and_o his_o follower_n set_v out_o by_o benno_n a_o cardinal_n in_o the_o life_n of_o hildebrand_n be_v such_o as_o we_o never_o read_v the_o like_a among_o the_o barbarous_a heathen_a their_o ambition_n to_o come_v to_o that_o place_n and_o their_o insatiable_a covetousness_n when_o they_o have_v get_v it_o have_v pass_v for_o thereby_o christendom_n have_v be_v more_o trouble_v with_o schism_n and_o war_n and_o christian_a kingdom_n otherwise_o have_v be_v more_o impoverish_v for_o these_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n then_o by_o all_o other_o quarrel_n and_o occasion_n incident_a whatsoever_o final_o for_o their_o filthy_a life_n i_o be_o persuade_v that_o there_o be_v few_o worse_a in_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n then_o sundry_a of_o they_o have_v be_v for_o sixtus_n the_o four_o in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o four_o hundred_o seventy_o four_o build_v stewe_a house_n of_o both_o kind_n and_o not_o long_o after_o paul_n the_o three_o register_v 45000._o whor_n that_o pay_v he_o monthly_o such_o a_o pension_n that_o by_o the_o year_n it_o come_v to_o 40000._o ducat_n and_o more_o and_o it_o be_v no_o small_a argument_n what_o filthy_a fruit_n their_o force_a single_a life_n both_o have_v and_o be_v likely_a to_o bring_v forth_o that_o in_o gregory_n time_n in_o certain_a fishpondes_fw-la there_o be_v find_v 6000._o child_n head_n these_o thing_n your_o own_o chronicler_n you_o know_v do_v make_v so_o clear_a that_o now_o every_o one_o almost_o can_v name_v and_o describe_v they_o as_o they_o have_v deserve_v for_o i_o own_o part_n i_o be_o even_o loath_a to_o defile_v my_o paper_n with_o the_o name_n of_o such_o filthy_a wretch_n as_o a_o number_n of_o they_o have_v be_v and_o see_v the_o notorious_a evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v such_o that_o you_o yourself_o do_v not_o here_o deny_v but_o that_o diverse_a of_o they_o have_v be_v lewd_a liver_n and_o therefore_o therein_o you_o have_v leave_v they_o without_o defence_n it_o be_v needless_a either_o to_o trouble_v myself_o or_o my_o reader_n any_o further_a with_o the_o rave_v in_o such_o a_o filthy_a dounghill_n to_o proceed_v therefore_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o you_o may_v neither_o draw_v argument_n from_o your_o writer_n of_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o our_o martyr_n nor_o from_o heshusius_fw-la a_o enemy_n to_o beza_n either_o against_o out_o martyr_n or_o against_o he_o for_o the_o report_n of_o a_o enemy_n you_o know_v be_v worthy_o suspect_v as_o partial_a and_o as_o for_o that_o which_o heshusius_fw-la object_n to_o beza_n he_o have_v it_o from_o baudwin_n and_o bolsacke_n and_o other_o such_o impure_a and_o filthy_a enemy_n and_o apostate_n who_o to_o win_v credit_n again_o with_o you_o when_o for_o their_o misdemeanour_n our_o church_n have_v cast_v they_o of_o care_v not_o what_o to_o write_v against_o caluin_n and_o beza_n though_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v never_o so_o stark_a a_o lie_n to_o who_o heshusius_fw-la through_o heat_n of_o contention_n carry_v to_o a_o desire_n to_o deface_v his_o adversary_n with_o whatsoever_o he_o can_v give_v too_o light_a credit_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n be_v to_o do_v but_o too_o too_o much_o in_o such_o case_n he_o write_v as_o he_o do_v as_o for_o his_o epigram_n wherewith_o he_o charge_v he_o they_o be_v make_v when_o he_o be_v but_o a_o youth_n of_o 16._o or_o 17._o year_n old_a publish_v by_o that_o he_o be_v 20._o then_o with_o the_o great_a like_n of_o yourselves_o and_o all_o this_o be_v before_o he_o be_v of_o our_o religion_n even_o while_o he_o be_v one_o of_o you_o and_o as_o he_o be_v you_o when_o he_o make_v they_o so_o since_o he_o be_v we_o he_o have_v diverse_a time_n himself_o publish_v his_o hearty_a repentance_n for_o the_o same_o and_o that_o in_o print_n as_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o a_o tragedy_n of_o abraham_n sacrifice_n and_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o poem_n and_o epigram_n with_o thirty_o psalm_n of_o david_n revise_v and_o correct_v and_o else_o where_o in_o his_o work_n and_o therefore_o for_o those_o the_o discredit_n be_v rather_o you_o than_o we_o but_o if_o he_o have_v continue_v in_o your_o side_n if_o he_o have_v go_v as_o far_o as_o ever_o do_v any_o not_o only_o in_o write_v filthy_a poem_n but_o also_o in_o sodomitry_n and_o whoredom_n itself_o all_o have_v be_v well_o enough_o for_o of_o such_o you_o have_v have_v good_a store_n and_o yet_o in_o good_a credit_n with_o you_o for_o beside_o that_o diverse_a of_o your_o pope_n as_o namely_o clement_a the_o 8_o paul_n the_o 3_o &_o julius_n the_o three_o be_v all_o notorious_o infamous_a in_o the_o story_n for_o their_o most_o filthy_a life_n johannes_n casa_n your_o pope_n legate_n and_o a_o archbishop_n in_o your_o synagogue_n write_v a_o book_n in_o the_o praise_n of_o sodomitry_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1549_o at_o venice_n which_o book_n since_o some_o of_o you_o to_o show_v what_o like_v you_o have_v of_o it_o have_v new_o publish_v
that_o which_o he_o shall_v this_o mark_n be_v evident_a upon_o they_o and_o not_o upon_o us._n but_o if_o by_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o talk_v of_o here_o and_o always_o else_o he_o understand_v as_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o he_o do_v their_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v most_o beggarly_a still_o he_o beg_v that_o alm_n that_o never_o a_o honest_a and_o wise_a man_n in_o the_o world_n will_v give_v he_o for_o in_o all_o these_o point_n here_o name_v by_o he_o that_o synagogue_n a_o long_a time_n have_v teach_v and_o do_v still_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o true_a and_o chaste_a spouse_n of_o christ_n that_o though_o nether_a seditious_o nor_o contentious_o yet_o vehement_o and_o earnest_o it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o all_o skilful_a painful_a and_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o cry_v out_o against_o she_o and_o she_o so_o do_v and_o thus_o only_o have_v we_o and_o do_v we_o labour_v to_o manifest_v unto_o the_o world_n their_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n in_o these_o point_n lest_o thereby_o to_o their_o perdition_n they_o shall_v be_v seduce_v by_o they_o otherwise_o whatsoever_o he_o say_v neither_o he_o nor_o all_o his_o faction_n shall_v ever_o he_o able_a to_o prove_v against_o we_o that_o we_o either_o deny_v any_o thing_n or_o hold_v otherwise_o of_o any_o point_n here_o reckon_v up_o by_o he_o than_o we_o have_v most_o sound_a and_o good_a warrant_n for_o both_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a and_o sound_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n but_o where_o as_o he_o say_v that_o we_o flat_o deny_v that_o christ_n have_v here_o upon_o earth_n any_o spouse_n or_o visible_a church_n to_o be_v hear_v speak_v perceave_v or_o see_v he_o shameful_o and_o untrue_o report_v y●_z of_o us._n only_o concern_v the_o visibility_n or_o not_o visibility_n of_o christ_n church_n this_o we_o hold_v and_o teach_v that_o who_o be_v the_o right_a member_n thereof_o whereof_o proper_o she_o do_v consist_v it_o be_v not_o discerneable_a by_o humane_a sense_n but_o know_v only_o unto_o god_n and_o unto_o those_o to_o who_o god_n give_v spiritual_a sense_n to_o discern_v it_o withal_o but_o if_o otherwise_o by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n here_o upon_o earth_n be_v understand_v general_o all_o those_o that_o by_o outward_a profession_n seem_v unto_o man_n to_o be_v thereof_o than_o we_o hold_v and_o confess_v that_o christ_n have_v always_o have_v here_o upon_o earth_n since_o the_o beginning_n and_o will_v have_v to_o the_o end_n a_o visible_a spouse_n and_o church_n to_o be_v both_o hear_v speak_v perceive_v &_o see_v though_o not_o always_o alike_o nor_o of_o all_o sort_n &_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o i_o have_v show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o first_o and_o four_o chapter_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o we_o deny_v be_v that_o it_o always_o have_v be_v and_o ever_o must_v be_v so_o visible_a and_o apparent_a both_o for_o multitude_n and_o government_n that_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v able_a thereby_o not_o only_o to_o discern_v it_o but_o from_o time_n to_o time_n down_o from_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o name_v the_o principal_a person_n by_o who_o orderly_a succession_n one_o to_o another_o wtout_fw-fr interruption_n it_o have_v be_v continue_v in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o now_o hereupon_o to_o infer_v that_o we_o simple_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v hear_v see_v or_o perceive_v argue_v that_o they_o that_o do_v so_o be_v grow_v so_o gross_a that_o they_o can_v neither_o hear_v see_v nor_o perceive_v that_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o manner_n of_o be_v of_o a_o thing_n &_o the_o simple_a be_v thereof_o john_n that_o never_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n here_o upon_o earth_n shall_v neither_o be_v hear_v see_v or_o perceive_v yet_o teach_v re._n 12._o that_o she_o will_v be_v drive_v by_o persecution_n of_o the_o dragon_n into_o the_o wilderness_n where_o for_o a_o time_n in_o comparison_n that_o she_o be_v before_o she_o shall_v be_v hide_v christ_n that_o have_v teach_v we_o that_o hell_n gate_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o his_o church_n mat._n 16._o yet_o foreshow_v that_o towards_o his_o second_o come_v true_a faith_n shall_v hardly_o be_v find_v upon_o earth_n luke_n 18._o and_o do_v we_o not_o read_v 2_o thessalonian_o 2._o and_o 1._o timothy_n 4._o to_o that_o end_n that_o before_o that_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a depart_n from_o the_o faith_n which_o by_o that_o which_o we_o read_v revelation_n 17_o and_o 18._o we_o may_v understand_v shall_v be_v so_o great_a and_o so_o far_o prevail_v that_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n there_o figure_v unto_o we_o antichrist_n and_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v have_v universality_n and_o all_o outward_a pomp_n that_o may_v be_v so_o on_o her_o side_n that_o she_o shall_v make_v king_n and_o people_n yea_o all_o nation_n drink_v with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n during_o the_o fulfil_n of_o which_o prophecy_n if_o it_o be_v hard_a for_o some_o either_o to_o hear_v or_o see_v the_o church_n or_o to_o understand_v where_o she_o be_v so_o that_o they_o can_v name_v the_o person_n successive_o that_o she_o consist_v of_o no_o marvel_n for_o distance_n of_o time_n and_o place_n and_o ignorance_n or_o unfaithfulnesse_n in_o chronicler_n join_v with_o a_o special_a care_n that_o antichrist_n will_v always_o by_o all_o likelihood_n have_v to_o keep_v from_o man_n all_o mean_n to_o make_v they_o to_o have_v knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n lest_o thereby_o in_o the_o end_n he_o shall_v fall_v into_o his_o consumption_n in_o respect_n of_o sundry_a former_a time_n and_o we_o that_o live_v now_o may_v make_v this_o impossible_a and_o yet_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v so_o do_v not_o simple_o say_v as_o he_o here_o charge_v us._n but_o god_n name_n be_v bless_v for_o it_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v never_o so_o drive_v into_o the_o wilderness_n by_o the_o dragon_n or_o oppress_v by_o antichrist_n but_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o four_o chapter_n of_o my_o foresay_v answer_n to_o albine_v some_o have_v so_o hear_v see_v and_o perceive_v where_o she_o be_v and_o who_o be_v her_o true_a member_n at_o all_o time_n that_o there_o be_v never_o time_n or_o state_n of_o the_o church_n so_o bad_a but_z that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o name_v some_o of_o her_o friend_n and_o where_o they_o live_v or_o die_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o her_o truth_n against_o antichristian_a abomination_n as_o for_o the_o other_o points_z here_o reckon_v up_o by_o he_o gentle_a reader_n though_o he_o will_v make_v thou_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o in_o every_o point_n as_o they_o teach_v they_o now_o have_v always_o before_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v nothing_o so_o as_o in_o great_a part_n i_o have_v show_v in_o answer_v of_o albine_n &_o as_o other_o thorough_o &_o universal_o have_v show_v of_o they_o all_o in_o several_a book_n write_v against_o they_o for_o their_o antichristian_a doctrine_n therein_o howbeit_o lest_o by_o his_o word_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o thou_o get_v leisure_n to_o peruse_v what_o we_o have_v write_v concern_v these_o point_n thou_o shall_v conceive_v worse_o of_o our_o doctrine_n they_o in_o any_o show_n we_o deserve_v understand_v that_o we_o preach_v against_o none_o of_o christ_n sacrament_n neither_o do_v we_o deny_v any_o sacrament_n of_o he_o in_o that_o sense_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o he_o appoint_v it_o neither_o do_v we_o deny_v christ_n real_a true_a &_o most_o certain_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o right_a receiver_n only_o a_o gross_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n to_o the_o mouth_n of_o every_o receiver_n fancy_v by_o they_o contrary_a both_o to_o scripture_n &_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n &_o of_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o presence_n that_o there_o we_o deny_v indeed_o we_o as_o zealous_o as_o we_o can_v preach_v against_o their_o mass_n deny_v it_o to_o be_v any_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n either_o for_o quick_a or_o dead_a much_o less_o for_o both_o because_o we_o have_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n that_o only_a christ_n be_v consecrate_v of_o his_o father_n as_o the_o fit_a priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o own_o person_n once_o for_o all_o to_o offer_v propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n &_o that_o we_o learn_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n that_o it_o be_v never_o institute_v to_o repeat_v that_o but_o with_o faith_n and_o thanksgiving_n to_o make_v a_o commemoration_n thereof_o and_o rather_o to_o offer_v and_o deliver_v christ_n to_o we_o they_o
to_o offer_v he_o again_o to_o his_o father_n if_o by_o penance_n he_o understand_v repentance_n we_o neither_o preach_v against_o it_o nor_o against_o any_o worthy_a fruit_n thereof_o for_o we_o most_o earnest_o call_v for_o both_o but_o if_o by_o penance_n be_v understand_v either_o voluntary_a or_o enjoin_v penance_n as_o they_o common_o take_v it_o join_v with_o a_o opinion_n thereby_o either_o to_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n past_a or_o to_o merit_v at_o god_n hand_n because_o we_o know_v that_o such_o penance_n and_o all_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o be_v abominable_a before_o god_n because_o thereby_o christ_n be_v rob_v of_o that_o honour_n of_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_a saviour_n in_o &_o by_o himself_o alone_o that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o than_o we_o grant_v as_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n we_o preach_v against_o it_o otherwise_o fast_v straightness_n of_o life_n watch_v and_o lawful_a vow_n to_o make_v we_o more_o ready_a &_o fervent_a in_o holy_a prayer_n we_o commend_v and_o urge_v indeed_o pray_v to_o saint_n because_o we_o have_v neither_o example_n commandment_n nor_o promise_n in_o god_n book_n to_o encourage_v we_o thereunto_o but_o all_o to_o the_o contrary_a we_o condemn_v as_o gross_a idolatry_n and_o likewise_o prayer_n for_o soul_n depart_v as_o they_o use_v it_o to_o relieve_v fowl_n in_o purgatory_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o sundry_a other_o we_o preach_v against_o but_o what_o we_o teach_v of_o these_o two_o point_n and_o what_o not_o and_o what_o reason_n we_o have_v for_o our_o so_o do_v and_o how_o quite_o void_a they_o be_v of_o all_o ground_n for_o they_o i_o refer_v thou_o to_o the_o 37_o chapter_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v where_o i_o have_v at_o large_a show_v these_o thing_n and_o thus_o much_o therefore_o for_o this_o 3_o sign_n the_o next_o be_v to_o bring_v a_o schism_n into_o the_o church_n contrary_a to_o paul_n exhortation_n 1._o cor_n 1._o and_o that_o such_o a_o schism_n as_o whereby_o not_o only_o one_o member_n shall_v be_v separate_v from_o a_o other_o but_o the_o whole_a mystical_a body_n from_o the_o true_a head_n christ_n jesus_n which_o we_o to_o have_v do_v in_o separate_a ourselves_o from_o their_o church_n &_o not_o they_o he_o assume_v and_o so_o conclude_v when_o the_o learned_a protestant_n can_v show_v the_o contrary_a that_o he_o will_v recant_v and_o not_o before_o still_o thus_o thou_o may_v see_v good_a reader_n that_o this_o man_n be_v no_o changeling_n for_o unless_o that_o be_v grant_v he_o which_o be_v the_o main_a point_n betwixt_o we_o that_o their_o church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n &_o their_o doctrine_n the_o sound_a catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n he_o have_v no_o ground_n or_o foundation_n for_o any_o thing_n he_o say_v for_o he_o can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o imagine_v that_o every_o one_o straight_o be_v author_n of_o such_o a_o schism_n as_o he_o here_o speak_v of_o that_o by_o doctrine_n draw_v other_o from_o every_o society_n or_o company_n invest_v themselves_o with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o brag_v that_o they_o have_v the_o truth_n for_o what_o will_v he_o then_o make_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o in_o their_o time_n draw_v so_o many_o after_o they_o from_o hold_v any_o long_a comm●●tion_n with_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o then_o i_o be_o sure_a brag_v as_o confident_o of_o both_o these_o as_o this_o man_n and_o his_o fellow_n do_v now_o or_o what_o will_v he_o say_v to_o those_o ancient_a catholic_n after_o liberius_n time_n that_o when_o arrianisme_n have_v in_o great_a part_n over_o run_v the_o world_n and_o the_o arrian_n for_o many_o year_n together_o brag_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o only_a 〈◊〉_d catholic_n disgrace_v they_o that_o be_v so_o indeed_o with_o the_o name_n of_o omousians_n that_o yet_o though_o they_o have_v get_v both_o bishop_n and_o emperor_n so_o many_o and_o so_o fast_o of_o their_o opinion_n that_o they_o have_v in_o ten_o several_a counsel_n go_v sentence_n of_o their_o side_n cease_v not_o labour_v and_o travel_v until_o they_o have_v draw_v man_n again_o to_o break_v from_o they_o and_o to_o join_v with_o the_o poor_a persecute_v &_o contempt_n the_o number_n that_o then_o yet_o persecute_v in_o the_o truth_n i_o be_o sure_a they_o 〈◊〉_d not_o for_o shame_n for_o all_o this_o count_v either_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o these_o ancient_a catholic_n antichristian_a heretic_n or_o schismatics_n and_o our_o draw_v of_o man_n by_o our_o doctrine_n now_o in_o these_o late_a day_n from_o they_o be_v nothing_o else_o in_o truth_n but_o a_o imitate_v as_o nigh_o as_o we_o can_v these_o renown_a and_o undoubted_a good_a precedent_n &_o example_n that_o so_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n according_a to_o saint_n paul_n pprophecy_n may_v fall_v into_o consumption_n 2._o thessalonian_o 2_o and_o that_o great_a babylon_n may_v yet_o at_o length_n as_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o joh._n revelation_n cap._n 14._o fall_v and_o come_v down_o for_o not_o only_o we_o see_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v a_o schism_n but_o such_o a_o apostasy_n even_o in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n that_o there_o be_v no_o remedy_n but_o that_o we_o must_v break_v of_o from_o she_o as_o we_o do_v or_o else_o we_o can_v never_o have_v communion_n indeed_o in_o christ_n with_o his_o true_a church_n though_o therefore_o we_o know_v and_o at_o the_o first_o know_v that_o peace_n unity_n and_o concord_n be_v precious_a thing_n and_o by_o all_o lawful_a mean_n to_o be_v labour_v for_o yet_o know_v withal_o as_o we_o do_v &_o do_v that_o it_o be_v unity_n in_o verity_n and_o not_o in_o error_n &_o impiety_n with_o christ_n &_o not_o with_o antichrist_n that_o be_v so_o much_o to_o be_v set_v by_o blame_v we_o not_o for_o choose_v rather_o according_a to_o these_o good_a example_n to_o have_v war_n with_o man_n then_z with_o god_n &_o discord_n with_o antichrist_n and_o all_o his_fw-mi bread_n than_o with_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n we_o grant_v they_o therefore_o that_o to_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n such_o a_o schism_n as_o shall_v make_v division_n not_o only_o among_o christ_n member_n but_o also_o of_o the_o body_n from_o the_o head_n be_v indeed_o a_o undoubted_a sign_n of_o antichristian_a heretic_n but_o whereas_o he_o take_v this_o for_o grant_v that_o this_o we_o have_v do_v in_o depart_v from_o they_o as_o we_o have_v that_o we_o deny_v for_o we_o teach_v man_n to_o hold_v &_o hold_v ourselves_o that_o faith_n &_o religion_n as_o we_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n that_o always_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v hold_v and_o therefore_o which_o when_o hardly_o both_o hold_v the_o lively_a member_n among_o themselves_o be_v unity_n and_o also_o knit_v they_o and_o their_o head_n christ_n so_o fast_o together_o as_o that_o no_o popish_a or_o antichristian_a tyranny_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o sever_v they_o and_o howesoever_o this_o proud_a challenge●_n think_v wt●●_n impossible_a thing_n for_o the_o learned_a protestant_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n such_o a_o schism_n as_o he_o speak_v of_o i_o the_o unlearnedst_a often_o thousand_o doubt_v not_o that_o i_o be_o very_a well_o able_a to_o do_v it_o for_o this_o be_v most_o certain_a and_o clear_a jesus_n christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n indeed_o be_v at_o this_o point_n be_v every_o way_n so_o able_a and_o willing_a as_o he_o do_v in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o by_o himself_o alone_o to_o go_v through_o with_o the_o office_n of_o a_o most_o perfect_a saviour_n of_o mankind_n that_o either_o so_o he_o must_v be_v believe_v in_o and_o trust_v unto_o for_o that_o matter_n or_o else_o he_o take_v himself_o antichristianlie_a rob_v of_o that_o 〈◊〉_d and_o glory_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o therefore_o will_v be_v no_o part_n of_o a_o saviour_n at_o all_o to_o such_o that_o this_o be_v most_o true_a appear_v because_o it_o be_v writ_v that_o god_n be_v so_o jealous_a of_o his_o own_o honour_n and_o glory_n that_o he_o will_v not_o abide_v that_o any_o shall_v therein_o be_v partaker_n with_o he_o or_o rob_v he_o of_o any_o iott_n thereof_o esay_n 42._o that_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n be_v already_o prepare_v matthew_n the_o twenty_o two_o that_o his_o name_n be_v the_o only_a name_n whereby_o come_v salvation_n act_n 4._o that_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d reu._n 1_o that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n &_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n heb._n 12._o that_o by_o one_o offering_n he_o have_v consecrate_v for_o
this_o as_o though_o you_o mean_v as_o honest_o as_o any_o man_n can_v desire_v in_o this_o 33._o cha._n of_o you_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o will_v have_v the_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o he_o that_o do_v indite_v they_o and_o therefore_o you_o allege_v that_o 2._o pet._n 1._o that_o no_o prophecy_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o any_o private_a motion_n or_o interpretation_n for_o the_o prophecy_n come_v not_o in_o old_a time_n by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereupon_o you_o insinuate_v unto_o we_o that_o you_o will_v have_v they_o interpret_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n which_o we_o be_v very_o well_o content_v wtal_a for_o indeed_o that_o only_a interpretation_n be_v sound_a and_o good_a that_o come_v from_o thence_o and_o that_o be_v always_o to_o be_v account_v to_o proceed_v but_o from_o a_o private_a motion_n that_o have_v not_o ground_n from_o thence_o though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o great_a and_o public_a person_n and_o never_o so_o many_o devise_n it_o receive_v it_o and_o hold_v it_o never_o so_o long_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o your_o interpretation_n though_o they_o be_v countenance_v with_o pope_n doctor_n and_o counsel_n and_o what_o else_o you_o will_v yet_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v as_o private_a interpretation_n unless_o they_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o testimony_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o they_o say_v you_o you_o challenge_v this_o holy_a ghost_n to_o lead_v you_o to_o the_o true_a sense_n how_o shall_v we_o believe_v that_o it_o dwell_v more_o in_o you_o they_o in_o all_o the_o universal_a church_n from_o christ_n passion_n to_o this_o time_n i_o answer_v you_o that_o we_o take_v no_o such_o thing_n upon_o us._n for_o we_o say_v if_o you_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n you_o speak_v of_o christ_n church_n which_o have_v from_o thence_o continue_v unto_o this_o day_n it_o have_v never_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o now_o lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n otherwise_o if_o thereby_o you_o understand_v only_o your_o own_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o state_n of_o it_o have_v be_v these_o late_a 500_o or_o 600._o year_n at_o the_o least_o we_o say_v as_o it_o have_v forsake_v the_o true_a christ_n and_o have_v set_v up_o another_o of_o a_o office_n of_o her_o own_o devise_v so_o have_v she_o be_v destitute_a of_o his_o spirit_n and_o have_v be_v guide_v but_o by_o a_o humane_a &_o foolish_a spirit_n but_o than_o you_o ask_v we_o where_o this_o spirit_n do_v rest_n before_o we_o be_v bear_v whereunto_o you_o think_v we_o can_v make_v no_o other_o answer_n but_o that_o 〈◊〉_d dwell_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o good_a answer_n what_o fault_n can_v you_o find_v in_o it_o be_v it_o not_o true_a do_v not_o god_n spirit_n dwell_v indeed_o in_o such_o yea_o and_o in_o none_o but_o such_o now_o whereas_o you_o think_v that_o if_o you_o shall_v ask_v we_o again_o where_o be_v those_o faithful_a one_o our_o answer_n only_o will_v be_v where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v and_o that_o we_o can_v give_v you_o no_o direct_a answer_n and_o so_o thereat_o you_o take_v your_o pleasure_n say_v that_o that_o be_v to_o play_v handy_a dandie_a &c_n &c_n though_o if_o we_o shall_v answer_v you_o no_o otherwise_o we_o may_v do_v so_o with_o better_a reason_n than_o your_o collier_n in_o hosius_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o he_o and_o some_o of_o you_o else_o may_v answer_v as_o he_o do_v who_o when_o he_o be_v ask_v how_o he_o do_v believe_v answer_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o be_v demand_v how_o the_o church_n believe_v answer_v as_o i_o believe_v for_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_o bind_v we_o when_o we_o be_v call_v to_o answer_v for_o our_o faith_n that_o we_o shall_v yield_v a_o reason_n thereof_o 1._o pet._n 3._o and_o so_o it_o bind_v we_o not_o to_o be_v always_o able_a to_o make_v demonstration_n who_o be_v the_o faithful_a and_o where_o they_o dwell_v from_o time_n to_o time_n yet_o you_o understand_v well_o enough_o if_o you_o be_v dispose_v that_o we_o both_o can_v and_o have_v give_v you_o a_o more_o particular_a answer_n and_o that_o we_o have_v tell_v both_o the_o name_n of_o the_o most_o famous_a person_n and_o also_o where_o they_o and_o their_o follower_n have_v live_v and_o dwell_v that_o believe_v as_o we_o do_v and_o therefore_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o we_o but_o to_o let_v your_o gibe_a go_v if_o in_o earnest_n you_o will_v have_v it_o try_v whither_o in_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n you_o or_o we_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o consequent_o whither_o you_o or_o we_o be_v like_a these_o heretic_n you_o speak_v of_o in_o misinterpret_v the_o scripture_n your_o interpretation_n and_o we_o must_v be_v examine_v which_o will_v stand_v best_a with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n wherein_o we_o be_v sure_a the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v speak_v and_o so_o they_o who_o interpretation_n be_v find_v best_a to_o agree_v therewith_o sentence_n must_v be_v give_v on_o their_o side_n that_o they_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o the_o other_o have_v it_o not_o for_o chrysostome_n write_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v this_o rule_n to_o try_v whither_o montanus_n and_o manicheus_fw-la have_v this_o spirit_n or_o no_o as_o they_o brag_v and_o hereby_o he_o prove_v that_o christ_n teach_v by_o this_o spirit_n because_o he_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n whereas_o the_o false_a teacher_n can_v not_o do_v so_o christ_n himself_o also_o by_o his_o own_o example_n have_v teach_v we_o when_o the_o question_n be_v betwixt_o two_o about_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n yea_o though_o he_o that_o bring_v the_o wrong_a sense_n be_v the_o very_a devil_n himself_o that_o this_o be_v the_o next_o best_a and_o ordinary_a way_n to_o stop_v his_o mouth_n and_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v bring_v a_o wrong_a sense_n to_o see_v whither_o it_o will_v stand_v with_o some_o other_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n or_o no._n for_o when_o the_o devil_n have_v allege_v the_o ninety_o one_o psalm_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o meaning_n thereof_o be_v that_o though_o christ_n shall_v throw_v himself_o down_o headlong_o yet_o his_o father_n promise_n be_v that_o he_o shall_v take_v no_o harm_n because_o by_o this_o sense_n sathan_n will_v have_v persuade_v he_o upon_o presumption_n upon_o his_o father_n protection_n to_o have_v tempt_v he_o christ_n prove_v that_o that_o can_v not_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n because_o it_o be_v write_v as_o it_o be_v deut._n 6._o thou_o shall_v not_o tempt_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o with_o this_o answer_n sathan_n as_o cunning_a and_o malicious_a as_o he_o be_v give_v over_o to_o reply_v any_o further_a for_o the_o justify_n of_o his_o sense_n math._n 4.7_o so_o also_o john_n 5._o in_o that_o great_a controversy_n touch_v the_o person_n and_o office_n of_o the_o messiah_n when_o as_o the_o ground_n thereof_o be_v that_o his_o enemy_n have_v false_o interpret_v the_o prophecy_n concern_v he_o yet_o christ_n for_o the_o determination_n thereof_o and_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v whither_o they_o or_o he_o bring_v the_o true_a interpretation_n thereof_o say_v search_v the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o when_o paul_n have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o berea_n it_o be_v note_v to_o the_o commendation_n of_o certain_a man_n there_o that_o they_o search_v the_o scripture_n daiele_v whither_o those_o thing_n be_v so_o by_o that_o mean_n labour_v to_o satisfy_v themselves_o in_o this_o great_a question_n whither_o paul_n or_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o messiah_n and_o this_o course_n all_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v follow_v as_o appear_v plentiful_o in_o their_o work_n in_o the_o confute_v of_o those_o heretic_n that_o you_o speak_v of_o and_o all_o other_o and_o consequent_o in_o determine_v whither_o they_o or_o themselves_o have_v the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o they_o have_v give_v we_o rule_n to_o help_v we_o in_o this_o case_n as_o for_o example_n tertullian_n against_o praxeas_n have_v give_v we_o this_o few_o place_n must_v be_v expound_v by_o the_o more_o augustine_n this_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o give_v light_n and_o open_v the_o meaning_n in_o his_o book_n of_o question_n quaest_n 69._o dark_a place_n be_v to_o be_v expound_v by_o more_o plain_a place_n that_o be_v the_o
our_o redemption_n upon_o the_o cross_n in_o take_v therefore_o bread_n a_o part_n &_o call_v it_o his_o body_n break_v &_o afterward_o wine_n and_o term_v it_o his_o blood_n shed_v for_o many_o to_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n it_o be_v his_o purpose_n that_o by_o the_o use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n until_o his_o come_n again_o his_o church_n shall_v set_v forth_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n and_o so_o the_o separation_n of_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o &_o you_o by_o this_o your_o devise_n invent_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o your_o helena_n transubstantiation_n make_v it_o to_o serve_v to_o a_o quite_o contrary_a end_n namely_o to_o teach_v the_o conjunction_n still_o of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n together_o and_o so_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n in_o effect_n to_o deny_v his_o death_n &_o passion_n of_o you_o therefore_o it_o may_v again_o most_o just_o be_v say_v that_o once_o christ_n say_v of_o your_o right_a forefather_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o his_o time_n you_o be_v they_o y_fw-fr strain_v a_o gnat_n and_o swallow_v a_o camel_n and_o that_o for_o your_o own_o tradition_n make_v no_o reckon_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n mat._n 15._o &_o 29._o &_o mar._n 7._o and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o while_o you_o and_o other_o of_o who_o you_o have_v learn_v all_o these_o ceremony_n of_o you_o have_v take_v upon_o you_o thus_o to_o add_v unto_o christ_n ordinance_n of_o baptism_n such_o a_o number_n of_o needle_n ceremony_n especial_o urge_v they_o and_o use_v they_o as_o you_o do_v all_o these_o wel●_n thereupon_o direct_o follow_v you_o seek_v to_o make_v the_o day_n light_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n even_o as_o dark_a as_o the_o night_n of_o the_o old_a by_o your_o new_a find_v figure_n and_o type_n you_o strong_o lead_v man_n to_o think_v that_o the_o simplicity_n of_o christ_n institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v not_o decent_a and_o sufficient_o full_a of_o majesty_n for_o the_o dignity_n of_o such_o a_o sacrament_n you_o by_o the_o multitude_n and_o pomp_n of_o your_o solemn_a ceremony_n darken_v and_o obscure_v these_o thing_n that_o be_v essential_a &_o necessary_a thereunto_o indeed_o you_o take_v the_o effect_n &_o inward_a grace_n appertein_v to_o the_o right_a use_n of_o baptism_n from_o it_o &_o communicate_v they_o wtout_o other_o commandment_n or_o promise_n from_o god_n to_o thing_n but_o of_o man_n invention_n &_o last_o forcible_o you_o thereby_o occasion_n man_n to_o think_v that_o the_o integrity_n &_o fullness_n of_o this_o sacrament_n depend_v upon_o these_o howsoever_o therefore_o you_o will_v seem_v from_o sundry_a place_n in_o aug._n here_o quote_v by_o you_o to_o fetch_v credit_n for_o they_o yet_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a which_o i_o have_v say_v as_o they_o be_v &_o they_o well_o consider_v see_v in_o augustine_n time_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o neither_o there_o be_v so_o many_o nor_o those_o that_o be_v so_o superstitious_o be_v then_o urge_v or_o use_v we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o he_o will_v if_o he_o be_v now_o alive_a to_o see_v and_o understand_v all_o these_o thing_n most_o vehement_o write_v and_o speak_v against_o you_o therein_o for_o speak_v but_o of_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o use_v of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o his_o time_n he_o great_o show_v his_o dislike_n then_o both_o of_o the_o multitude_n and_o manner_n of_o press_v they_o upon_o man_n say_v hoc_fw-la nimis_fw-la doleo_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o can_v but_o extreme_o sorrow_n for_o this_o that_o many_o thing_n which_o most_o holesom_o be_v command_v in_o the_o divine_a book_n be_v less_o care_v for_o and_o all_o thing_n be_v full_a of_o so_o many_o presumption_n epi._n 119._o and_o further_o he_o add_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n touch_v the_o same_o &_o quamuis_fw-la ista_fw-la contra_fw-la fidem_fw-la non_fw-la sint_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o though_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o against_o faith_n yet_o whereas_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n will_v have_v religion_n free_a burden_v with_o most_o few_o and_o most_o manifest_a sacrament_n to_o be_v observe_v these_o with_o servile_a burden_n to_o press_v it_o that_o more_o tolerable_a be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o although_o they_o know_v not_o the_o time_n of_o their_o liberty_n yet_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o burden_n of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o to_o humane_a presumption_n and_o therefore_o his_o opinion_n in_o the_o end_n be_v flat_a of_o all_o such_o that_o assoon_o as_o may_v be_v without_o all_o doubt_n they_o be_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n also_o yea_o pope_n stephanus_n as_o he_o be_v cite_v of_o gratian_n do_v 63._o quia_fw-la sancta_fw-la speak_v of_o humane_a order_n above_o the_o election_n of_o pope_n say_v plain_o that_o if_o any_o of_o his_o predecessor_n do_v some_o thing_n which_o then_o may_v be_v faultless_a and_o after_o they_o be_v turn_v into_o error_n and_o superstition_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o your_o ceremony_n which_o we_o mislike_v in_o you_o most_o flat_o sine_fw-la tarditate_fw-la antiquâ_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la magnâ_fw-la authoritate_fw-la destruantur_fw-la a_o poste●s_n that_o be_v without_o any_o slackness_n and_o with_o great_a authority_n let_v they_o of_o they_o that_o come_v after_o be_v destroy_v which_o assertion_n of_o he_o he_o do_v ground_n upon_o the_o example_n of_o good_a ezechias_n in_o break_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n which_o moses_n have_v make_v etc._n etc._n and_o whereas_o you_o under_o your_o tridentine_a curse_n will_v bind_v all_o church_n to_o the_o strict_a observe_v of_o all_o these_o your_o solemn_a ceremony_n you_o know_v or_o at_o least_o shall_v that_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n in_o such_o thing_n and_o to_o the_o practice_n and_o experience_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n annicet_fw-la and_o polycarp_n the_o east_n church_n and_o the_o west_n you_o know_v a_o long_a time_n free_o differ_v about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o observation_n of_o easter_n and_o yet_o pacem_fw-la say_v irenaeus_n in_o universâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v both_o part_n throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n keep_v and_o maintain_v christian_n peace_n euseb_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 23._o and_o so_o likewise_o there_o he_o show_v that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n great_a difference_n about_o the_o fast_o before_o easter_n both_o for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o continuance_n and_o otherwise_o &_o yet_o that_o thereby_o rather_o in_o his_o opinion_n the_o unity_n of_o faith_n be_v commend_v then_o hinder_v and_o of_o gregory_n answer_n to_o leander_n touch_v the_o dip_v of_o the_o baptize_v once_o or_o thrice_o the_o answer_n be_v as_o it_o be_v &_o be_v report_v by_o your_o own_o gratian_n de_fw-fr consecr_n do_v 4._o that_o howsoever_o the_o party_n be_v once_o or_o thrice_o dip_v it_o be_v to_o be_v count_v baptize_v you_o may_v learn_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o necessity_n as_o you_o imagine_v to_o have_v general_o throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n one_o precise_a form_n of_o rite_n &_o ceremony_n to_o be_v keep_v that_o touch_v less_o the_o substantial_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n than_o this_o do_v that_o gregory_n can_v say_v to_o fortify_v that_o answer_n of_o his_o in_o unâ_fw-la fide_fw-la nihil_fw-la officit_fw-la sanctae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la diversa_fw-la that_o be_v the_o diversity_n of_o custom_n or_o fashion_n do_v not_o hurt_v the_o church_n continue_v in_o one_o faith_n and_o our_o chronicle_n do_v plain_o testify_v that_o neither_o eleutherius_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n 180._o though_o king_n lucius_n here_o send_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o roman_a law_n to_o frame_v his_o people_n by_o will_v bind_v he_o thereunto_o nor_o yet_o the_o foresay_v gregory_n answer_v augustine_n the_o monk_n question_n will_v tie_v he_o then_o for_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n here_o to_o the_o ceremony_n and_o custom_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o first_o send_v lucius_n for_o his_o direction_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v without_o exception_n and_o not_o to_o the_o roman_a law_n which_o may_v he_o confess_v be_v reprove_v and_o the_o other_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o augustine_n three_o demand_n how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o faith_n be_v but_o one_o the_o ceremony_n and_o custom_n be_v so_o diverse_a as_o that_o there_o be_v one_o manner_n of_o mass_n at_o rome_n &_o a_o other_o in_o france_n will_v he_o without_o respect_n of_o place_n out_o of_o many_o church_n to_o choose_v the_o best_a order_n and_o who_o so_o will_v read_v socrates_n 5._o book_n and_o the_o 18.19.20.21_o &_o 22._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o he_o shall_v there_o find_v not_o only_o in_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n diverse_a fashion_n rite_n
and_o ceremony_n note_v by_o he_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n insomuch_o that_o in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n not_o only_o he_o write_v that_o altogether_o true_o and_o in_o all_o observance_n of_o godly_a prayer_n two_o church_n can_v not_o be_v find_v that_o do_v full_o agree_v among_o themselves_o but_o also_o that_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n &_o christian_n peace_n be_v preserve_v &_o maintain_v among_o they_o the_o like_a may_v be_v see_v in_o zozomen_n 7._o book_n &_o 29._o chapter_n your_o own_o tridentine_a catechiser_n of_o your_o parish_n priest_n can_v see_v as_o i_o note_v before_o that_o touch_v dip_v the_o party_n to_o be_v baptize_v in_o water_n pour_v it_o upon_o he_o or_o sprinkle_v he_o with_o it_o so_o that_o every_o one_o follow_v therein_o that_o order_n that_o he_o see_v in_o use_n in_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o be_v it_o be_v not_o material_a which_o way_n be_v use_v for_o which_o of_o they_o soever_o be_v use_v so_o say_v he_o this_o sacrament_n may_v right_o be_v minister_v so_o much_o the_o stranger_n be_v it_o that_o both_o you_o here_o and_o he_o there_o &_o your_o whole_a tridentine_a council_n shall_v so_o peremtory_o seek_v to_o bind_v all_o church_n and_o person_n to_o the_o strict_a keep_n and_o observe_v of_o all_o your_o foresay_v rite_n and_o ceremony_n in_o the_o ad_fw-la minister_a of_o the_o same_o further_n concern_v this_o point_n i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o for_o your_o pleasure_n i_o have_v turn_v to_o these_o place_n which_o you_o quote_v for_o this_o purpose_n as_o i_o find_v by_o compare_v of_o you_o with_o they_o that_o they_o mention_v you_o have_v many_o that_o they_o speak_v never_o a_o word_n of_o in_o these_o place_n as_o namely_o your_o consecrate_v of_o your_o water_n and_o chrism_n so_o long_o before_o your_o deal_n with_o the_o party_n at_o the_o church_n door_n your_o put_n of_o salt_n into_o his_o mouth_n your_o dress_n his_o nostril_n and_o ear_n withspettle_v and_o your_o give_v he_o a_o wax_n candle_n burn_v into_o his_o hand_n so_o thereby_o and_o by_o view_n of_o some_o other_o place_n in_o they_o i_o plain_o see_v that_o you_o have_v now_o give_v over_o the_o use_n of_o some_o which_o then_o be_v use_v upon_o the_o like_a ground_n that_o the_o rest_n be_v which_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v from_o they_o for_o first_o tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr coronâ_fw-la militis_fw-la which_o be_v the_o second_o place_n you_o quote_v as_o there_o he_o mention_n thrice_o dip_v renounce_v of_o the_o devil_n his_o pomp_n and_o angel_n which_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o allow_v and_o use_v with_o he_o so_o he_o say_v that_o be_v take_v from_o out_o of_o the_o water_n we_o taste_v before_o hand_n the_o temper_n of_o milk_n and_o honey_n and_o from_o the_o time_n of_o our_o baptism_n for_o a_o week_n we_o abstain_v from_o daily_a wash_n and_o all_o these_o do_v he_o ground_v a_o like_a say_v harum_fw-la &_o aliarum_fw-la disciplinarum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v of_o these_o discipline_n if_o thou_o require_v the_o law_n of_o the_o scripture_n thou_o shall_v find_v none_o tradition_n shall_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v the_o author_n custom_n the_o confirmer_n and_o faith_n the_o observer_n &_o yet_o you_o have_v leave_v these_o two_o last_o long_o ago_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o i_o can_v learn_v and_o augustine_n a_o other_o of_o your_o author_n in_o this_o case_n in_o three_o of_o the_o place_n name_v by_o you_o mention_n exufflation_n which_o you_o have_v give_v over_o as_o he_o do_v some_o other_o that_o you_o retain_v and_o the_o same_o author_n upon_o the_o 65._o psalm_n show_v that_o in_o their_o exorcism_n they_o use_v fire_n because_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o psalm_n pass_v through_o fire_n and_o water_n thou_o shall_v come_v to_o a_o refresh_n and_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n ad_fw-la cathecumenos_fw-gr de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 1._o he_o say_v that_o before_o baptism_n be_v use_v beside_o the_o catechism_n exorcism_n prayer_n and_o canticle_n in_o sufflation_n sackcloth_n bow_v of_o the_o neck_n &_o humility_n of_o the_o foot_n and_o hierom_n upon_o the_o 55._o of_o esay_n and_o against_o the_o luciferian_o show_n further_o that_o then_o be_v use_v the_o taste_n of_o wine_n and_o honey_n wherefore_o if_o the_o doctor_n and_o father_n mention_v of_o some_o of_o your_o ceremony_n bind_v you_o to_o think_v the_o use_n thereof_o lawful_a and_o necessary_a still_o why_o shall_v not_o their_o authority_n be_v of_o as_o great_a force_n for_o these_o which_o you_o see_v they_o ground_n aswell_o as_o they_o do_v the_o other_o and_o if_o their_o mention_v and_o thus_o ground_v of_o these_o notwithstanding_o you_o will_v be_v at_o liberty_n to_o leave_v these_o why_o may_v not_o we_o aswell_o be_v at_o our_o liberty_n to_o leave_v off_o some_o of_o the_o other_o that_o we_o find_v most_o needle_n and_o most_o to_o have_v be_v abuse_v by_o you_o to_o obscure_v and_o darken_v the_o simple_a institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n will_v you_o follow_v the_o father_n as_o far_o as_o you_o listen_v and_o leave_v they_o when_o you_o listen_v and_o may_v no_o body_n but_o you_o do_v so_o moreover_o in_o look_v upon_o this_o occasion_n into_o the_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n and_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n i_o must_v needs_o advertise_v thou_o christian_n reader_n that_o i_o find_v great_a variety_n in_o the_o enumeration_n of_o ceremony_n about_o this_o sacrament_n in_o they_o and_o likewise_o great_a odds_n betwixt_o the_o opinion_n and_o conceit_n that_o some_o of_o the_o father_n show_n they_o have_v of_o they_o from_o that_o that_o other_o of_o as_o good_a credit_n as_o they_o have_v whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a not_o only_o that_o they_o be_v not_o use_v alike_o all_o in_o every_o place_n but_o in_o some_o place_n and_o time_n more_o and_o in_o some_o less_o but_o also_o that_o some_o use_v they_o to_o one_o end_n and_o some_o to_o another_o so_o that_o no_o certain_a rule_n either_o for_o the_o ceremony_n themselves_o or_o for_o the_o manner_n or_o end_n of_o the_o use_n of_o they_o can_v be_v deduce_v from_o thence_o whereupon_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o for_o any_o thing_n write_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n hereof_o so_o that_o the_o essential_a part_n and_o thing_n belong_v hereunto_o which_o have_v express_v warrant_n from_o the_o institution_n thereof_o be_v observe_v first_o and_o then_o next_o according_a to_o the_o practice_n and_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o time_n next_o after_o they_o necessary_a instruction_n and_o explanation_n to_o and_o of_o the_o right_a use_n thereof_o with_o convenient_a prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n meet_v to_o be_v use_v in_o such_o a_o action_n be_v use_v and_o that_o also_o in_o due_a time_n and_o place_n by_z to_z &_o before_o fit_a person_n any_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o any_o kingdom_n by_o the_o provincial_a authority_n that_o it_o have_v may_v free_o reject_v so_o many_o of_o the_o other_o rite_n &_o ceremony_n as_o it_o shall_v think_v good_a and_o likewise_o retain_v so_o many_o of_o they_o as_o she_o find_v may_v fit_o be_v retain_v for_o order_n and_o comeliness_n without_o place_v any_o opinion_n of_o necessity_n holiness_n or_o of_o merit_n in_o they_o and_o therefore_o forasmuch_o as_o our_o church_n careful_o have_v take_v this_o course_n in_o these_o three_o point_n and_o follow_v the_o same_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o these_o father_n that_o you_o have_v name_v consent_n upon_o about_o the_o administer_a of_o this_o sacrament_n but_o we_o full_o do_v observe_v the_o same_o and_o here_o in_o england_n especial_o what_o fault_n can_v you_o find_v of_o the_o 5._o thing_n your_o father_n mention_n we_o retain_v &_o use_v though_o not_o with_o any_o superstitious_a intention_n as_o you_o do_v 2_o of_o they_o the_o rest_n we_o have_v cut_v of_o according_a both_o to_o s._n august_n advice_n &_o your_o pope_n stephanus_n judgement_n before_o note_a because_o the_o multitude_n before_o be_v too_o great_a for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o they_o be_v grow_v into_o gross_a abuse_n among_o you_o no_o essential_a or_o necessary_a thing_n to_o be_v do_v be_v omit_v with_o we_o and_o we_o have_v beside_o full_o enough_o for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n wherein_o we_o live_v in_o which_o time_n it_o be_v more_o likely_a in_o such_o ceremony_n rite_n and_o fashion_n for_o we_o to_o err_v rather_o in_o retain_v too_o many_o then_o in_o abolish_n too_o many_o but_o because_o neither_o you_o shall_v say_v nor_o your_o reader_n think_v y_o these_o father_n who_o name_n you_o bring_v we_o to_o countenance_v all_o your_o ceremony_n which_o you_o use_v about_o baptism_n